Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n apostle_n bishop_n ephesus_n 3,999 5 11.0253 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A16913 A reply to Fulke, In defense of M. D. Allens scroll of articles, and booke of purgatorie. By Richard Bristo Doctor of Diuinitie ... perused and allowed by me Th. Stapleton Bristow, Richard, 1538-1581. 1580 (1580) STC 3802; ESTC S111145 372,424 436

There are 55 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

do_v err_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o successor_n after_o they_o to_o this_o time_n no_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n clear_o rule_v over_o the_o case_n to_o the_o contrary_a part_n but_o rather_o the_o more_o it_o be_v scan_v the_o more_o continul_o it_o appear_v that_o their_o part_n be_v still_o to_o be_v follow_v and_o the_o contrary_a part_n still_o to_o be_v condemn_v and_o accurse_a ¶_o the_o four_o chapter_n that_o he_o charge_v the_o say_a primitive_a true_a church_n with_o sundry_a error_n wherewith_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o will_v nor_o can_v charge_v us._n here_o i_o have_v to_o present_v he_o with_o a_o other_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v grant_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a church_n rather_o than_o to_o the_o old_a father_n for_o so_o much_o as_o he_o will_v confess_v we_o to_o be_v free_a from_o diverse_a error_n that_o he_o charge_v they_o withal_o most_o of_o they_o also_o be_v so_o great_a and_o so_o gross_a that_o none_o of_o the_o error_n that_o he_o impute_v to_o we_o can_v be_v think_v comparable_a by_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o man_n that_o be_v any_o whit_n indifferent_a and_o not_o altogether_o blind_v with_o a_o huge_a beam_n of_o partiality_n and_o let_v the_o reader_n lie_v this_o to_o the_o last_o chapter_n before_o and_o confer_v all_o diligent_o together_o that_o he_o confess_v i_o say_v that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o company_n which_o err_v not_o only_o some_o principal_a member_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o it_o and_o which_o err_v obstinate_o and_o moreover_o which_o err_v the_o gross_a error_n that_o can_v be_v and_o they_o in_o no_o small_a number_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o company_n may_v be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o in_o deed_n also_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o that_o no_o piece_n of_o this_o nor_o all_o this_o together_o will_v serve_v he_o he_o i_o say_v to_o prove_v our_o company_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o then_o afterward_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v what_o better_a or_o what_o other_o stuff_n he_o have_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o and_o if_o he_o have_v any_o such_o either_o better_a or_o other_o than_o this_o refuse_v a_o god_n name_n to_o be_v of_o our_o church_n and_o seek_v after_o he_o thy_o salvation_n where_o else_o thou_o can_v find_v it_o well_o then_o to_o come_v to_o those_o other_o error_n that_o be_v as_o he_o say_v the_o primitive_a church_n and_o be_v not_o we_o and_o to_o begin_v at_o the_o top_n 35._o ar._n 35._o d._n allen_n require_v the_o protestant_n to_o declare_v when_o the_o true_a church_n decay_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v say_v fulke_n first_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o arise_v many_o heresy_n which_o do_v not_o a_o little_a trouble_n the_o church_n secondlye_o but_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n while_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v earnest_o occupy_v in_o resist_v of_o horrible_a heresy_n by_o the_o craft_n of_o satan_n some_o error_n and_o abuse_n creep_v into_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o at_o the_o first_o because_o they_o be_v small_a and_o man_n occupy_v in_o great_a matter_n be_v either_o not_o espy_v or_o not_o regard_v and_o how_o declare_v he_o this_o justinus_n martyr_n be_v in_o this_o error_n that_o the_o angel_n lust_v after_o woman_n and_o therefore_o be_v turn_v into_o devil_n what_o more_o irenaeus_n affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n live_v here_o .50_o year_n and_o what_o more_o also_o both_o he_o and_o papias_n the_o disciple_n of_o s._n john_n hold_v this_o error_n that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v a_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o resurrection_n here_o in_o flesh_n and_o what_o of_o all_o this_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a see_v these_o ancient_a father_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o stain_v with_o error_n that_o the_o church_n in_o their_o time_n can_v not_o be_v free_a from_o the_o same_o again_o it_o seem_v also_o that_o the_o church_n in_o justinus_n his_o time_n be_v in_o some_o error_n about_o second_a marriage_n and_o divorcemente_n after_o all_o which_o he_o conclude_v in_o the_o end_n and_o so_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o true_a church_n decay_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n where_o the_o diligent_a reader_n mark_v that_o he_o use_v decay_v and_o err_v indifferent_o one_o for_o the_o other_o as_o for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v there_o of_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o preparative_n to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o therefore_o i_o note_v it_o there_o pag._n supra_fw-la pag._n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o also_o of_o the_o time_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n let_v we_o proceed_v and_o come_v down_o lower_v cyprian_n time_n be_v such_o a_o time_n say_v he_o as_o cyprian_a and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n decree_v in_o council_n 287._o pur._n 287._o that_o those_o which_o be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v baptise_a again_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o such_o time_n but_o that_o he_o and_o all_o his_o fellow_n might_n and_o do_v err_v in_o some_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o low_a again_o under_o the_o emperor_n 15._o ar._n 15._o constantius_n constans_n and_o valence_n the_o true_a church_n be_v great_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n what_o time_n also_o liberius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o same_o heresy_n straight_o after_o that_o time_n do_v saint_n hierome_n flourish_v who_o amongst_o other_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n he_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o he_o he_o charge_v not_o only_o pag._n supra_fw-la pag._n as_o i_o allege_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n that_o he_o be_v almost_o fall_v into_o the_o heresy_n of_o tertullian_n in_o condemn_v second_a marriage_n 46._o pur._n 419._o ar._n 46._o but_o also_o thus_o in_o a_o other_o place_n consider_v what_o perilous_a assertion_n these_o be_v that_o the_o lamb_n be_v every_o where_o and_o that_o the_o martyr_n be_v everye_o where_n this_o be_v to_o destroy_v the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o geve_v divinity_n unto_o the_o martyr_n i_o doubt_n not_o but_o saint_n jeronym_n if_o he_o have_v quiet_o consider_v these_o absurdity_n monitor_n he_o lack_v but_o such_o a_o monitor_n will_v have_v revoke_v they_o as_o erroneous_a and_o heretical_a but_o while_o he_o rather_o follow_v affection_n then_o judgement_n you_o may_v see_v how_o he_o be_v deceive_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v the_o third_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o saint_n augustine_n one_o of_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o 89._o ar._n 89._o it_o he_o charge_v thus_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o three_o cap._n 23._o determine_v that_o all_o prayer_n at_o the_o altar_n shall_v be_v direct_v only_o to_o the_o father_n and_o not_o to_o the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whether_o this_o be_v a_o error_n to_o define_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o pray_v to_o god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v every_o man_n judge_v and_o to_o put_v more_o weight_n to_o this_o his_o accusation_n he_o add_v but_o you_o will_v except_v that_o this_o be_v a_o provincial_a synod_n and_o not_o a_o general_n council_n but_o i_o answer_v you_o it_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_a council_n because_o it_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n in_o trullo_n but_o of_o all_o other_o most_o insolent_o he_o insult_v and_o triumph_v against_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o minister_a the_o blessed_a sacrament_n to_o infant_n 87._o ar._n 87._o i_o will_v prove_v unto_o you_o say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v false_o interpret_v diverse_a sentence_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o which_o she_o have_v do_v it_o can_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o she_o may_v do_v it_o one_o than_o for_o example_n s._n augustine_n be_v in_o this_o error_n that_o he_o think_v infant_n must_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o be_v deceive_v by_o false_a interpretation_n of_o this_o scripture_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n joh._n 6._o this_o error_n and_o false_a interpretation_n he_o affime_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o western_a church_n and_o to_o pope_n innocent_a himself_o contra_fw-la dvas_fw-la epist_n pelag._n ad_fw-la bonifacium_fw-la li._n 2._o cap._n 4._o &_o contra_fw-la julianum_fw-la li._n 1._o cap._n 2._o again_o in_o a_o other_o place_n where_o d._n allen_n admonish_v his_o reader_n say_v pose_v m
scient_a quia_fw-la ego_fw-la dilexi_fw-la te_fw-la and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o which_o all_o if_o you_o also_o do_v know_v you_o will_v not_o say_v thus_o in_o one_o place_n to_o we_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o superstition_n of_o angel_n begin_v to_o be_v receive_v there_o be_v one_o step_n of_o your_o way_n 287._o pur._n 287._o which_o you_o hold_v even_o to_o this_o day_n colos_n 2._o iiij_o of_o abstinence_n from_o fleshmeat_n and_o from_o marriage_n now_o to_o another_o error_n common_a to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o we_o 2._o supra_fw-la ca._n 3._o pa._n 2._o divi_z 2._o you_o say_v in_o the_o same_o third_o chapter_n and_o confess_v that_o they_o count_v aerius_n a_o heretic_n for_o teach_v against_o our_o prescript_n fastingdaye_n and_o so_o jovinianus_n likewise_o for_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n and_o from_o marriage_n and_o for_o licens_v thereupon_o votary_n and_o priest_n to_o marry_v you_o on_o the_o other_o side_n charge_v the_o father_n and_o say_v 419._o pur._n 419._o that_o they_o take_v prescript_n time_n of_o fast_v and_o unmeasurable_a so_o you_o term_v it_o extol_v of_o sole_a life_n in_o the_o clergy_n from_o the_o manichee_n tacianiste_n &_o montaniste_n but_o you_o bring_v no_o proof_n thereof_o 45._o ar._n 45._o only_o this_o you_o have_v in_o another_o place_n augustine_n by_o authority_n of_o philaster_n charge_v the_o same_o aerius_n with_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n if_o this_o be_v a_o heresy_n then_o be_v all_o papist_n heretic_n which_o count_v abstinence_n from_o flesh_n a_o holy_a fast_o still_o you_o take_v richard_n for_o robert_n these_o three_o heresy_n condemn_v flesh_n &_o marriage_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o ill_a god_n and_o not_o to_o the_o good_a god_n according_a to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o valentinian_o before_o they_o so_o write_v s._n augustine_n of_o the_o tocianiste_n or_o eucratites_n nuptias_fw-la damnant_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o condemn_v marriage_n 53._o august_n ad_fw-la quoduult_n haer_fw-mi 25.40_o 53._o and_o esteem_v of_o they_o all_o a_o like_a as_o of_o fornication_n and_o other_o pollution_n neither_o admit_v they_o to_o their_o number_n any_o that_o use_v marriage_n be_v it_o man_n or_o be_v it_o woman_n non_fw-la vescuntur_fw-la carnibus_fw-la easque_fw-la omnes_fw-la abominantur_fw-la they_o eat_v no_o flesh_n but_o count_v all_o flesh_n abominable_a he_o have_v there_o of_o apostolici_fw-la or_o apotactite_n likewise_o say_v eucratitis_fw-la isti_fw-la simile_n sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n these_o be_v like_a to_o the_o eucratites_n they_o receive_v not_o into_o their_o society_n they_o that_o use_v marriage_n and_o have_v propriety_n such_o as_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v both_o monk_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n very_o many_o sed_fw-la ideo_fw-la isti_fw-la haeretici_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o therefore_o these_o be_v heretic_n because_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o they_o which_o use_v these_o thing_n that_o they_o do_v not_o use_v now_o say_v he_o of_o the_o aerian_o afterward_o some_o say_v that_o these_o do_v not_o admit_v into_o their_o society_n but_o only_o such_o as_o contain_v they_o from_o marriage_n and_o have_v renounce_v all_o propriety_n be_v therein_o like_a to_o the_o eucratites_n or_o apotactites_n yet_o from_o flesh_n meat_n epiphanius_n say_v not_o that_o they_o abstain_v but_o philaster_n lay_v to_o they_o also_o this_o abstinence_n what_o abstinence_n and_o how_o from_o fleshmeate_n but_o such_o as_o in_o those_o eucratites_n he_o have_v say_v afore_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o this_o aerius_n of_o his_o master_n call_v eustathius_n 33._o gang._n con_v can._n 1.19_o soc._n li._n 2._o cap._n 33._o have_v this_o heresy_n to_o who_o therefore_o concilium_fw-la gangrense_n say_v anathema_n and_o to_o all_o that_o hold_v the_o like_a to_o wit_n that_o a_o christian_a use_v marriage_n and_o eat_a flesh_n in_o regnum_fw-la dei_fw-la introire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n et_fw-la spem_fw-la non_fw-la habeat_fw-la nor_o have_v aught_o to_o hope_n for_o though_o withal_o he_o teach_v jeiunia_fw-la praescripta_fw-la aversanda_fw-la that_o the_o prescript_n fast_n shall_v be_v detest_v dominicisque_fw-la diebus_fw-la ieiunandum_fw-la and_o to_o fast_o on_o sunday_n iiij_o of_o ceremony_n and_o liturgy_n 91._o ar._n 91._o next_o after_o this_o you_o charge_v the_o ancient_a church_n with_o approve_v ceremony_n that_o be_v as_o you_o think_v unprofitable_a and_o hurtful_a because_o s._n augustine_n complain_v they_o of_o presumption_n and_o because_o many_o of_o they_o be_v now_o abrogate_a i_o may_v here_o and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n exclaim_v against_o you_o as_o you_o do_v often_o against_o d._n allen_n upon_o light_a cause_n for_o not_o quote_v your_o testimony_n and_o that_o you_o have_v not_o read_v they_o in_o the_o author_n but_o take_v they_o out_o of_o some_o blind_a or_o wilful_a collector_n but_o to_o spare_v word_n all_o that_o i_o can_v and_o let_v the_o thing_n only_o to_o cry_v against_o you_o do_v not_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o very_a same_o epistle_n and_o the_o very_a same_o chapter_n whence_o your_o place_n be_v take_v of_o certain_a that_o be_v more_o earnest_n for_o their_o own_o private_a observation_n 19_o au._n ep_v 119._o ad_fw-la januar._n cap._n 19_o then_o for_o god_n commandment_n as_o that_o against_o drunkenness_n say_v constant_o tamen_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la vel_fw-la bonam_fw-la vitam_fw-la non_fw-la approbat_fw-la yet_o the_o church_n of_o god_n approve_v not_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v against_o the_o faith_n or_o against_o good_a life_n and_o there_o also_o plain_o distinguish_v those_o presumption_n from_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v either_o contain_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o find_v in_o the_o statute_n of_o bishop_n counsel_n or_o fortify_v by_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n say_v also_o in_o the_o epistle_n next_o afore_o to_o the_o same_o man_n 5._o au._n ep_v 118_o ad_fw-la januar_fw-la cap._n 5._o that_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n use_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o most_o insolent_a madness_n only_o to_o call_v in_o question_n whether_o that_o thing_n shall_v be_v so_o use_v neither_o if_o some_o such_o usage_n be_v afterward_o abrogate_a do_v it_o follow_v thereof_o 15._o pur._n 265.393.400_o tertul._n de_fw-fr cor._n mil._n hier._n adve●_n lucif_n act._n 15._o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v before_o unprofitable_a or_o hurtful_a or_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n though_o tertullian_n affirm_v it_o &_o s._n hierome_n also_o even_o in_o tertullia_n word_n or_o else_o that_o the_o church_n be_v blasphemous_a which_o abrogate_v they_o as_o you_o conclude_v for_o there_o may_v be_v good_a cause_n both_o of_o that_o afore_o and_o of_o this_o after_o as_o you_o see_v even_o in_o that_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v record_v also_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o not_o eat_v blood_n nor_o flesh_n that_o have_v not_o the_o blood_n let_v out_o of_o it_o likewise_o in_o that_o custom_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 11._o 1._o cor._n 11._o for_o man_n public_o to_o pray_v and_o prophecy_n or_o preach_v bareheaded_a which_o of_o bishop_n in_o old_a time_n and_o now_o also_o of_o doctor_n yea_o in_o many_o country_n of_o all_o preacher_n be_v not_o observe_v what_o ordinary_a authority_n the_o church_n have_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o same_o it_o have_v still_o and_o also_o the_o same_o spirit_n to_o understande_v what_o be_v the_o immutable_a ground_n of_o religion_n and_o what_o tradition_n how_o and_o upon_o what_o cause_n may_v be_v change_v of_o every_o particular_a to_o give_v a_o reason_n require_v a_o special_a work_n by_o itself_o but_o general_o the_o quick_a witted_a may_v consider_v that_o in_o a_o nation_n when_o the_o fullness_n thereof_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n thorough_o root_v there_o may_v just_o &_o must_v néedeful_o be_v a_o great_a mutation_n in_o the_o ceremony_n special_o of_o baptismus_fw-la adultorum_fw-la and_o missa_fw-la catechumanorum_fw-la and_o so_o to_o plant_v the_o evangelicall_a article_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o apostle_n upon_o sunday_n and_o in_o quinquagesima_fw-la do_v forbid_v solemn_a fast_a and_o solemn_a genuflexion_n and_o the_o church_n afterward_o much_o more_o straict_o what_o time_n the_o manichée_n &_o other_o heretic_n put_v all_o their_o strength_n to_o pluck_v up_o again_o the_o apostle_n plant_v but_o now_o all_o such_o heresy_n be_v by_o such_o diligence_n of_o the_o church_n quite_o confound_v and_o that_o marvelous_a article_n so_o fasten_v in_o all_o christian_a heart_n as_o it_o be_v wonderful_a special_o know_v what_o resistance_n and_o rebellion_n it_o have_v suffer_v now_o i_o say_v the_o church_n may_v
exaudition_n partly_o of_o curinge_n be_v do_v in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o body_n of_o geruasius_n and_o protasius_n martyr_n which_o lie_v hide_v so_o many_o year_n they_o be_v martyr_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v reveal_v as_o if_o they_o will_v ask_v they_o may_v hear_v of_o many_o unto_o ambrose_n and_o that_o at_o the_o same_o body_n one_o that_o have_v be_v many_o year_n blind_a very_o well_o know_v in_o the_o city_n of_o millayne_n receive_v his_o eye_n and_o eye_n sight_n or_o because_o such_o a_o man_n have_v a_o dream_n and_o such_o a_o man_n in_o spirit_n hear_v a_o voice_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o side_n of_o donatus_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v go_v out_o from_o the_o side_n of_o donatus_n where_o he_o add_v of_o these_o miracle_n and_o vision_n say_v whatsoever_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n otherwise_o not_o be_v they_o do_v in_o donates_n side_n or_o in_o luther_n or_o in_o caluine_n non_fw-la ideo_fw-la ipsa_fw-la manifestatur_fw-la catholica_fw-la quia_fw-la haec_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la siunt_fw-la but_o not_o thereby_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n make_v manifest_a because_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o she_o you_o translate_v it_o that_o she_o be_v not_o prove_v thereby_o as_o though_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o also_o true_a allow_v miracle_n &_o vision_n whereby_o in_o the_o scripture_n also_o itself_o we_o see_v christ_n himself_o and_o so_o many_o other_o thing_n purposely_o prove_v lack_v weight_n and_o fashion_n of_o just_a probation_n whereas_o in_o deed_n he_o say_v no_o more_o of_o they_o than_o he_o say_v of_o scripture_n which_o be_v obscure_a not_o that_o it_o want_v authority_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n but_o that_o it_o do_v not_o make_v the_o church_n manifest_a require_v therefore_o the_o donatist_n to_o bring_v such_o scripture_n as_o need_v no_o interpreter_n sicut_fw-la non_fw-la eget_fw-la interpret_v which_o we_o allege_v say_v he_o out_o of_o so_o many_o most_o manifest_a place_n for_o the_o church_n beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o thence_o grow_v on_o continual_o over_o all_o nation_n even_o till_o domesday_n such_o scripture_n do_v make_v the_o church_n manifest_a but_o so_o do_v not_o obscure_a scripture_n until_o the_o interpretation_n be_v allow_v neither_o miracle_n and_o vision_n until_o they_o be_v allow_v now_o the_o donatist_n will_v none_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o their_o time_n but_o both_o we_o and_o you_o confess_v it_o and_o therefore_o when_o we_o allege_v the_o miracle_n do_v in_o it_o you_o have_v not_o to_o except_v against_o we_o by_o this_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o that_o again_o because_o we_o also_o do_v appeal_v with_o he_o to_o such_o &_o the_o same_o scripture_n for_o manifest_a trial_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o my_o u●ry_n first_o demand_n be_v thereof_o though_o we_o use_v also_o other_o probation_n to_o show_v that_o scripture_n and_o all_o be_v for_o we_o and_o nothing_o for_o you_o as_o he_o also_o do_v where_o he_o say_v to_o the_o manichee_n upon_o the_o same_o matter_n 4._o aug._n con_v ep_v fund_z ca._n 4._o in_o catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n many_o thing_n there_o be_v which_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n lap_n most_o worthy_o do_v keep_v i_o there_o keep_v i_o consensio_fw-la consent_v of_o people_n and_o nation_n there_o keep_v i_o authoritas_fw-la authority_n by_o miracle_n begone_v nourish_v by_o hope_n by_o charity_n increase_v by_o antiquity_n make_v firm_a and_o sure_a there_o keep_v i_o successio_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la succession_n of_o priest_n from_o the_o very_o see_v of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n commit_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n even_o to_o the_o bishop_n that_o now_o be_v there_o keep_v i_o final_o 21._o john_n 21._o ipsum_fw-la catholicae_fw-la nomen_fw-la the_o very_a name_n catholic_a which_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o so_o many_o heresy_n this_o church_n alone_o have_v obtain_v ista_fw-la ergo_fw-la tot_fw-la etc._n etc._n these_o then_o so_o many_o &_o so_o great_a most_o dear_a bond_n of_o christian_a calling_n do_v well_o keep_v the_o man_n that_o beleve_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o as_o yet_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o believe_v to_o which_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n you_o pretend_v to_o answer_v say_v unto_o we_o all_o this_o you_o will_v say_v make_v exceed_v much_o for_o we_o 69.70_o ar._n 69.70_o yea_o but_o hear_v that_o which_o follow_v apud_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o with_o you_o manichée_n and_o protestant_n where_o there_o be_v none_o of_o these_o to_o allure_v i_o and_o keep_v i_o sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la there_o ring_v only_o a_o promise_a of_o truth_n then_o to_o your_o purpose_n as_o you_o think_v quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v show_v so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v not_o come_v in_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v i_o grant_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o what_o of_o this_o by_o this_o you_o may_v plain_o see_v quoth_v you_o that_o though_o consent_v and_o universality_n antiquity_n succession_n and_o the_o name_n catholic_a be_v good_a confirmation_n when_o they_o be_v join_v with_o the_o truth_n yet_o when_o a_o truth_n be_v sever_v from_o they_o it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v regard_v than_o they_o all_o as_o though_o s._n augustine_n grant_v that_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v sever_v from_o they_o where_o he_o plain_o say_v also_o most_o sincere_a wisdom_n syncerissimam_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la that_o be_v truth_n and_o understanding_n of_o it_o without_o all_o corruption_n to_o be_v in_o the_o say_a catholic_a church_n though_o the_o heretic_n will_v not_o believe_v so_o much_o but_o think_v that_o the_o catholic_n be_v gross_a head_n and_o blind_a follower_n of_o man_n commandment_n but_o themselves_o though_o destitute_a of_o all_o that_o shall_v move_v any_o man_n to_o be_v of_o their_o side_n yet_o to_o have_v the_o truth_n most_o manifest_o and_o without_o all_o doubt_n for_o that_o cause_n s._n augustine_n join_v with_o they_o in_o that_o book_n and_o answer_v their_o foundation_n as_o i_o do_v you_o in_o this_o book_n show_v that_o all_o this_o glorious_a talk_n of_o truth_n be_v but_o wind_n of_o vain_a word_n one_o such_o place_n more_o you_o allege_v twice_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 203._o ar._n 14._o pur._n 203._o de_fw-fr pastoribus_fw-la cap._n 14._o to_o a_o strayshepe_n seek_v the_o church_n what_o say_v you_o sir_n donatist_n partis_fw-la donati_n est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o piece_n of_o donatus_n have_v the_o church_n read_v i_o that_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n out_o of_o the_o shepherd_n voice_n for_o out_o of_o they_o do_v i_o recite_v ecclesiam_fw-la toto_fw-la orbe_fw-la diffusam_fw-la the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o any_o man_n piece_n but_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n sed_fw-la illi_fw-la codices_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la but_o thou_o say_v such_o man_n traitorous_o deliver_v the_o holy_a book_n to_o dioclesian_n minister_n and_o such_o man_n offer_v incense_v to_o the_o idol_n such_o a_o one_o and_o such_o a_o one_o quid_fw-la ad_fw-la i_o de_fw-la illo_fw-la &_o de_fw-la illo_fw-la what_o be_v that_o to_o i_o of_o such_o a_o one_o &_o such_o a_o one_o quia_fw-la nec_fw-la de_fw-la illis_fw-la vocem_fw-la pastoris_fw-la annuntias_fw-la for_o it_o be_v thyself_o that_o accuse_v they_o but_o tell_v i_o the_o shepherd_n voice_n if_o that_o voice_n accuse_v one_o i_o believe_v it_o alijs_fw-la non_fw-la credo_fw-la other_o accuser_n i_o do_v not_o believe_v sed_fw-la acta_fw-la profere_n but_o thou_o will_v bring_v forth_o court_n roll_n wherein_o their_o crime_n be_v register_v acta_fw-la profero_fw-la and_o i_o also_o bring_v forth_o court_n roll_n wherein_o the_o same_o man_n innocence_n be_v register_v credamus_fw-la tuis_fw-la crede_fw-la &_o tu_fw-la meis_fw-la shall_v we_o believe_v thou_o believe_v thou_o i_o also_o non_fw-la credo_fw-la tuis_fw-la noli_fw-la credere_fw-la meis_fw-la i_o do_v not_o believe_v thou_o and_o i_o geve_v thou_o leave_v also_o not_o to_o believe_v i_o auferantur_fw-la chartae_fw-la humanae_fw-la sonent_fw-la voces_fw-la divinae_fw-la let_v man_n court_n paper_n be_v remove_v and_o let_v god_n say_n be_v rehearse_v ede_fw-mi mihi_fw-la unam_fw-la scripturam_fw-la pro_fw-la parte_fw-la donati_n geve_v i_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o piece_n of_o donatus_n or_o of_o luther_n or_o of_o caluine_n or_o of_o any_o other_o break_a piece_n audi_fw-la innumerabiles_fw-la pro_fw-la orbe_fw-la terrarum_fw-la but_o for_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o rehearse_v innumerable_a
a_o sacrifice_n or_o no_o and_o how_o it_o be_v or_o be_v not_o we_o need_n not_o stand_v here_o about_o it_o as_o also_o because_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o no_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o martyr_n as_o you_o pretend_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o external_a sacrifice_n the_o definition_n whereof_o you_o may_v conceive_v by_o that_o little_a which_o i_o say_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 49._o and_o of_o one_o certain_a external_a sacrifice_n we_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o one_o god_n saint_n aug._n de_fw-fr ci_fw-fr li._n 8._o ca._n 27._o that_o prayer_n to_o saint_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o saint_n who_o be_v both_o the_o martyr_n god_n &_o we_o at_o which_o sacrifice_n they_o be_v name_v in_o their_o place_n and_o order_n in_o so_o much_o that_o by_o this_o one_o sacrifice_n he_o answer_v the_o pagan_n touch_v certain_a dish_n of_o meat_n bring_v by_o some_o christian_o to_o the_o martyr_n church_n even_o as_o i_o answer_v you_o touch_v prayer_n make_v to_o they_o non_fw-la autem_fw-la ista_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o that_o these_o be_v not_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o martyr_n he_o know_v that_o know_v the_o one_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n which_o be_v there_o offer_v to_o god_n those_o christian_n do_v mean_v no_o more_o but_o to_o have_v they_o there_o sanctify_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o martyr_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o martyr_n let_v the_o three_o example_n be_v of_o ceremony_n general_o such_o as_o he_o confess_v here_o cap._n 3._o pag._n 15._o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n also_o and_o two_o objection_n of_o his_o against_o they_o i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 45._o but_o now_o he_o will_v reprove_v they_o out_o of_o scripture_n also_o &_o first_o by_o his_o usual_a argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negative_a 19_o ar._n 19_o because_o they_o be_v destitute_a of_o god_n his_o word_n which_o only_o be_v able_a to_o give_v they_o strength_n and_o estimation_n and_o yet_o in_o other_o place_n clean_o contrary_a not_o only_a scripture_n but_o also_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o as_o where_o he_o say_v 21.42_o ar._n 21.42_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v allow_v without_o controversy_n on_o both_o side_n it_o do_v either_o proceed_v from_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n or_o from_o the_o primitive_a church_n 2._o ar._n 48._o just_a apol._n 2._o or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n mere_o indifferent_a and_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o cit_v justinus_n martyr_n who_o declare_v plain_o he_o say_v what_o order_n of_o service_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n our_o church_n use_v before_o papistry_n prevail_v as_o though_o the_o book_n or_o book_n of_o service_n be_v no_o more_o than_o these_o few_o line_n in_o justinus_n and_o yet_o also_o to_o see_v the_o blindness_n of_o this_o man_n so_o little_a as_o he_o bring_v out_o of_o that_o martyr_n yet_o be_v there_o plain_a against_o his_o communion_n book_n water_n mingle_v with_o wine_n but_o no_o one_o word_n against_o the_o mass_n book_n yea_o it_o be_v the_o very_a sum_n of_o the_o mass_n unless_o you_o be_v so_o foolish_a to_o think_v that_o the_o bishop_n sermon_n the_o receive_v of_o all_o present_a the_o carry_v of_o it_o to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a and_o the_o rich_a man_n offering_n may_v not_o be_v omit_v in_o any_o mass_n nor_o for_o any_o cause_n now_o let_v we_o here_o against_o ceremony_n 19_o ar._n 19_o your_o authority_n of_o scripture_n affirmative_o we_o detest_v and_o abhor_v all_o your_o beggarly_a ceremony_n which_o you_o count_v holy_a and_o solemn_a observation_n for_o we_o know_v that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o such_o thing_n but_o that_o the_o true_a worshipper_n must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o verity_n joa._n 4._o then_o belike_o you_o detest_v all_o ceremony_n and_o all_o outward_a thing_n those_o also_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o which_o erewhile_o you_o allow_v you_o see_v this_o reply_n and_o therefore_o in_o another_o place_n you_o will_v moderate_v the_o matter_n say_v the_o service_n of_o god_n have_v small_a need_n of_o furniture_n 51._o ar._n 51._o in_o outward_a thing_n for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n be_v not_o worship_v with_o outward_a pomp_n but_o with_o spiritual_a and_o inward_a reverence_n and_o as_o for_o other_o furniture_n that_o be_v necessary_a be_v decree_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o his_o successor_n notwithstanding_o the_o church_n be_v in_o better_a case_n before_o such_o furniture_n be_v grant_v then_o since_o like_o one_o that_o will_v not_o hold_v his_o peace_n and_o yet_o can_v tell_v what_o to_o say_v if_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n admit_v some_o outward_a furniture_n well_o enough_o then_o have_v you_o missense_v that_o text_n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o outward_a thing_n without_o the_o inward_a man_n please_v not_o god_n but_o for_o all_o that_o the_o inward_a man_n may_v use_v outward_a gesture_n outward_a word_n and_o other_o outward_a thing_n as_o christ_n himself_o his_o apostle_n and_o all_o the_o church_n ever_o do_v for_o so_o to_o do_v be_v to_o adore_v god_n who_o be_v a_o spirit_n in_o spirit_n &_o truth_n and_o touch_v the_o other_o text_n that_o you_o allege_v not_o but_o allude_v unto_o those_o weak_a &_o beggarly_a element_n gal._n 4._o be_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o old_a law_n special_o after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n who_o they_o shadow_v and_o much_o more_o the_o galathian_o be_v gentile_n to_o who_o they_o never_o parteyn_v and_o you_o wrest_v it_o against_o the_o ceremony_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o gracious_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o the_o order_n of_o they_o that_o can_v say_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la 15._o act._n 15._o it_o have_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o us._n like_o as_o against_o the_o lesson_n response_n versicles_n and_o such_o other_o distinction_n or_o variety_n in_o the_o service_n you_o allege_v matth._n 15._o 20._o ar._n 20._o in_o vain_a do_v they_o worship_v i_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n such_o be_v your_o ignorance_n in_o the_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o your_o malice_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n be_v those_o which_o be_v of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o god_n as_o those_o tradition_n of_o the_o two_o late_a elder_n hilleb_n &_o sammai_n be_v partly_o frivolous_a as_o those_o vain_a lotion_n partly_o also_o contrary_a to_o god_n commandment_n as_o that_o of_o corban_n 1._o tit._n 1._o whereupon_o s._n paul_n bid_v titus_n to_o be_v earnest_n wi●h_v the_o cretensian_o that_o they_o listen_v not_o to_o judaical_a fable_n &_o mandatis_fw-la hominum_fw-la and_o to_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n that_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n whereupon_o the_o invention_n also_o of_o luther_n caluine_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n be_v the_o precept_n of_o man_n and_o their_o follower_n worship_v they_o know_v not_o what_o joan._n 4._o 21._o pur._n 21._o and_o if_o they_o be_v also_o zealous_a it_o be_v without_o knowledge_n rom._n 10._o but_o so_o be_v not_o likewise_o the_o precept_n of_o they_o to_o who_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o 10._o luc._n 10._o despise_v i_o and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n command_v they_o of_o syria_n and_o cilicia_n 15.16_o act._n 15.16_o to_o keep_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o priest_n that_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n s._n augustine_n likewise_o here_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 45._o embrace_v the_o ceremony_n decree_v in_o counsel_n of_o bishop_n and_o much_o more_o they_o that_o be_v use_v throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o you_o falsify_v the_o council_n of_o laodicia_n when_o you_o say_v it_o decree_v 59_o conc._n lao_n ca._n 59_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v song_n or_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n no_o sir_n that_o do_v rather_o your_o friend_n paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la who_o reject_v the_o psalm_n and_o song_n which_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 24._o eus_n li._n 7._o c._n 24._o decantari_fw-la solent_fw-la be_v wont_a to_o be_v song_n say_v eusebius_n tanquam_fw-la recentiores_fw-la as_o be_v but_o late_o make_v and_o set_v out_o by_o man_n of_o late_a memory_n renew_v the_o heresy_n of_o artemon_n against_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o a_o certain_a catholic_a do_v there_o confute_v long_o afore_o ex_fw-la hymnis_fw-la a_o fidelibus_fw-la fratribus_fw-la antiquitus_fw-la perscriptis_fw-la concentu_fw-la quodam_fw-la 27._o eus_n li._n 5._o c._n 27._o by_o the_o hymn_n make_v of_o old_a in_o meet_a by_o faithful_a brethren_n he_o
occasion_n 24._o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n 7._o mot._n 21.38_o article_n 13._o heb._n 7._o in_o the_o 24._o demand_n be_v of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n i_o touch_v your_o apostasy_n at_o the_o very_a root_n for_o s._n paul_n say_v the_o priesthood_n be_v translate_v from_o aaron_n and_o they_o of_o his_o order_n to_o melchisedec_n or_o christ_n and_o they_o of_o his_o order_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v that_o your_o heresy_n of_o caluinisme_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a heresy_n that_o be_v a_o corruption_n of_o christianity_n in_o one_o or_o two_o point_n but_o a_o mutation_n of_o the_o whole_a new_a law_n almost_o of_o christ_n it_o come_v of_o this_o i_o say_v that_o you_o have_v make_v a_o mutation_n of_o the_o new_a priesthood_n and_o that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o new_a priesthood_n or_o priesthood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n i_o show_v because_o you_o have_v change_v our_o catholic_a priesthood_n for_o this_o priesthood_n wherein_o we_o serve_v come_v to_o we_o from_o no_o other_o but_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o priesthood_n that_o they_o delyver_v our_o forefather_n and_o we_o have_v to_o this_o day_n keep_v the_o same_o unchaunged_a to_o be_v perspicuous_a i_o come_v to_o particulares_fw-la first_o the_o very_a apostolic_a name_n episcopus_fw-la and_o presbyter_n note_n note_n that_o be_v bishop_n and_o priest_n we_o never_o go_v about_o to_o change_v they_o you_o have_v labour_v to_o change_v they_o into_o these_o superintendent_n and_o elder_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o apostolic_a order_n as_o it_o follow_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v change_v the_o aaronicall_a order_n because_o they_o change_v the_o former_a name_n pontifex_n &_o sacerdos_n for_o which_o we_o have_v no_o english_a i_o touch_v this_o here_o afore_o in_o the_o .6_o dem._n pag._n 231._o and_o you_o have_v not_o where_o answer_v it_o but_o i_o find_v where_o you_o have_v holpen_v it_o for_o whereas_o the_o father_n keep_v those_o new_a name_n 21._o isa_n 66._o s_o 21._o yet_o according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o esay_n use_v evermore_o also_o the_o former_a name_n consider_v that_o the_o new_a order_n no_o less_o than_o the_o old_a be_v a_o true_a species_n of_o that_o genus_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la &_o whereas_o we_o according_o do_v in_o translate_n put_v the_o english_a word_n priest_n not_o only_o for_o presbyter_n 283._o pur._n 283._o but_o also_o for_o sacerdos_n you_o sir_n translate_n a_o passage_n of_o s._n cyprian_n do_v put_v the_o priest_n twice_o where_o he_o put_v sacerdotes_fw-la but_o where_o he_o put_v presbyterum_fw-la you_o shun_v the_o word_n priest_n which_o be_v the_o very_a same_o and_o put_v your_o new_a invent_a word_n a_o elder_a second_o you_o help_v another_o argument_n of_o we_o where_o you_o say_v i_o will_v desire_v none_o other_o place_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n 297._o ar._n 29._o pur._n 297._o to_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a hierarchy_n which_o be_v the_o grete_a glory_n of_o their_o church_n than_o this_o place_n of_o paul_n eph._n 4._o he_o speak_v of_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n pastor_n &_o teacher_n but_o where_o be_v popish_a bishop_n priest_n deacon_n subdeacons_n exorcist_n cantor_n or_o lector_n acolytes_n ostiares_n by_o this_o you_o declare_v that_o you_o have_v change_v the_o order_n hierarchy_n or_o priesthood_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o as_o it_o be_v infinite_o 34._o eus_n li._n 6._o ca._n 34._o witness_v &_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o same_o degree_n be_v which_o here_o you_o call_v popish_a and_o do_v not_o s._n paul_n himself_o in_o other_o place_n make_v express_a mention_n of_o bishop_n priest_n &_o deacon_n and_o so_o you_o may_v aswell_o by_o your_o wise_a reason_n out_o of_o ephe._n 4._o overthrow_n s._n paul_n hierarchy_n who_o also_o in_o the_o name_n of_o deacon_n 1._o tim._n 3._o include_v subdeacons_n and_n the_o other_o inferior_n as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n tit._n 1._o he_o include_v likewise_o deacon_n themselves_o and_o the_o like_a be_v common_a in_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o yet_o because_o deacon_n or_o minister_n be_v a_o distinct_a order_n 251._o sup._n p._n 251._o do_v like_o better_a to_o call_v all_o under_o priest_n by_o the_o name_n of_o levite_n 383._o pur._n 383._o because_o that_o be_v the_o general_a term_n in_o the_o old_a law_n of_o all_o the_o variety_n of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o sacerdotes_fw-la &_o to_o call_v all_o to-togeth_a clerum_fw-la the_o clergy_n or_o in_o clericos_fw-la or_o in_o clericali_fw-la ministerio_fw-la constitutos_fw-la 66_o ●yp_n ep_v 66_o or_o ad_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la clericalem_fw-la promotos_fw-la all_o which_o term_v s._n cyprian_n have_v in_o one_o epistle_n with_o the_o name_n of_o episcopus_fw-la and_o presbyter_n &_o sacerdos_n common_a to_o they_o both_o and_o it_o be_v but_o your_o ignorance_n to_o think_v that_o s._n paul_n shall_v have_v name_v they_o eph._n 4._o consider_v that_o he_o speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n only_o of_o preacher_n ut_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la circumferamur_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o we_o be_v not_o now_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n whereas_o these_o other_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v two_o distinct_a office_n as_o you_o may_v see_v act._n 13._o where_o some_o preacher_n have_v not_o order_n as_o yet_o &_o 1_o tim._n 5._o where_o some_o good_a priest_n do_v not_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n three_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n &_o priest_n be_v make_v by_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o also_o with_o we_o it_o continue_v to_o this_o day_n but_o you_o be_v only_o of_o lay_v man_n make_n as_o of_o king_n and_o other_o civil_a magistrate_n i_o pass_v over_o the_o difference_n of_o live_v single_a &_o marry_v as_o a_o thing_n extrinsical_a &_o touch_v before_o in_o the_o .21_o dem._n 250._o pag._n 250._o four_o yourselves_o confess_v our_o order_n to_o be_v good_a enough_o in_o that_o have_v be_v order_v by_o we_o you_o seek_v not_o to_o be_v reorder_v as_o cranmer_n parker_n grindall_n sand_n horn_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o we_o as_o you_o know_v account_v your_o order_n for_o no_o order_n 50.51_o ar._n 50.51_o to_o this_o you_o say_v you_o be_v high_o deceive_v if_o you_o think_v we_o esteem_v your_o office_n of_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n any_o better_a than_o the_o state_n of_o lay_v man_n for_o we_o receive_v none_o of_o they_o to_o minister_v in_o our_o church_n except_o they_o forswear_v your_o religion_n &_o so_o their_o admission_n be_v a_o new_a call_n to_o the_o ministry_n how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o you_o receive_v none_o otherwise_o i_o pass_v that_o over_o but_o sir_n order_n a_o new_a way_n to_o give_v order_n we_o also_o make_v your_o minister_n to_o abjure_v &_o yet_o after_o that_o they_o be_v but_o lie_v man_n still_o and_o i_o will_v ask_v you_o if_o two_o catholic_n abjure_v with_o you_o one_o a_o lay_z man_n the_o other_o a_o priest_n be_v they_o both_o priest_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la o_o your_o divinity_n o_o your_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n &_o matrimony_n we_o do_v not_o iterate_v they_o after_o you_o though_o we_o supply_v the_o ceremony_n because_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o priest_n be_v not_o the_o necessary_a &_o sole_a minister_n of_o they_o as_o he_o be_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n &_o of_o our_o lord_n body_n which_o be_v a_o sound_a cause_n than_o you_o of_o retain_v the_o form_n of_o word_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n take_v not_o their_o effect_n of_o the_o minister_n but_o of_o god_n for_o hereuppon_o you_o allow_v you_o say_v our_o baptism_n if_o that_o be_v enough_o what_o need_v abiur_v yea_o belike_o with_o you_o it_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n if_o a_o lay_v man_n or_o wooman_n also_o retain_v the_o word_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n take_v their_o effect_n of_o god_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o deny_v the_o priesthood_n and_o so_o to_o run_v headlong_o to_o apostasy_n as_o that_o also_o where_o to_o defend_v pilkinton_n not_o to_o be_v a_o mock_n bishop_n 72._o pur._n 343.428_o ar._n 72._o you_o bring_v no_o more_o but_o his_o excellent_a learning_n and_o diligent_a preach_n inuey_v against_o our_o catholic_a bishop_n as_o unlearned_a or_o unpreaching_a and_o therefore_o no_o bishop_n whereas_o in_o deed_n we_o that_o know_v both_o side_n by_o experience_n can_v true_o testify_v that_o in_o catholic_a country_n where_o your_o desolation_n can_v not_o yet_o remove_v the_o order_n of_o seculare_fw-la and_o religious_a preacher_n there_o be_v more_o preach_v to_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o stuff_n in_o so_o many_o church_n for_o so_o many_o in_o one_o year_n
then_o with_o you_o in_o ten_o and_o namely_o to_o declare_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 7._o sess_n 8._o c._n 7._o which_o in_o another_o place_n you_o cite_v to_o such_o as_o receive_v they_o five_o argument_n need_v not_o you_o say_v plain_o the_o spiritual_a priesthood_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_a man_n and_o woman_n 450.451.299_o pur._n 450.451.299_o 1._o pet._n 1._o as_o true_a it_o be_v and_o against_o all_o other_o priesthood_n of_o any_o christian_a man_n you_o say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n there_o be_v no_o priesthood_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n propitiatory_a but_o only_o the_o priesthood_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n heb._n 7._o by_o and_o by_o after_o make_v we_o as_o in_o a_o great_a absurdity_n to_o say_v christ_n be_v not_o only_o our_o high_a priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n for_o every_o hedge_n priest_n be_v of_o the_o same_o order_n why_o you_o call_v they_o hedge_v priest_n look_v you_o but_o this_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n certain_a christian_a man_n be_v priest_n otherwise_o then_o lay_v man_n and_o woman_n as_o the_o apostle_n s._n timothy_n s._n hierome_n s._n cyprian_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o then_o there_o be_v some_o other_o priesthood_n besides_o the_o spiritual_a priesthood_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o and_o therefore_o again_o you_o have_v take_v away_o the_o priesthood_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n six_o and_o last_o if_o to_o salve_v this_o deadly_a sore_n you_o will_v invent_v some_o three_o kind_n of_o priesthood_n i_o say_v that_o the_o primitive_a or_o father_n priesthood_n be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n &_o to_o offer_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o bread_n &_o wine_n mass_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o melchisedech_n and_o christ_n do_v and_o therefore_o you_o be_v against_o the_o priesthood_n because_o you_o be_v against_o this_o priesthood_n argue_v &_o rail_v at_o it_o all_o that_o you_o can_v but_o we_o christian_n to_o who_o this_o priesthood_n be_v plain_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n none_o of_o you_o all_o be_v able_a to_o show_v any_o late_a origine_fw-la of_o it_o regard_v not_o your_o argument_n they_o be_v but_o objection_n and_o yet_o to_o defend_v the_o truth_n more_o full_o for_o our_o father_n and_o not_o only_o for_o ourselves_o we_o solve_v they_o every_o one_o but_o first_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v who_o adversary_n you_o be_v herein_o he_o shall_v hear_v s._n augustine_n the_o manichée_n have_v falsify_v s._n paul_n make_v he_o to_o say_v qui_fw-fr sacrificant_a 10._o au._n con_v ad_fw-la ver_fw-la leg_n &_o prophet_n li._n 1._o c._n 19.20_o 1._o cor._n 10._o daemonijs_fw-la sacrificant_a they_o which_o sacrifice_n do_v sacrifice_n to_o devil_n quasi_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la sacrificant_a non_fw-la sacrificent_fw-la nisi_fw-la daemonibus_fw-la as_o if_o all_o that_o sacrifice_n do_v not_o sacrifice_v but_o to_o devil_n he_o therefore_o show_v the_o apostle_n not_o to_o say_v qui_fw-fr sacrificant_a they_o which_o sacrifice_n but_o quae_fw-la sacrificant_a the_o thing_n that_o they_o sacrifice_n speak_v of_o the_o idolater_n they_o do_v sacrifice_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o you_o therefore_o be_v communicantes_fw-la with_o the_o devil_n if_o you_o eat_v of_o those_o sacrifice_n even_o as_o israel_n secundum_fw-la carnem_fw-la the_o judaical_a people_n eat_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n be_v thereby_o partaker_n of_o the_o altar_n in_o their_o temple_n deinde_fw-la secutus_fw-la adiunxit_fw-la ad_fw-la quod_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la iam_fw-la debeant_fw-la pertinere_fw-la then_o he_o follow_v and_o add_v to_o what_o sacrifice_n the_o corinthian_n now_o must_v pertain_v be_v christian_n and_o israel_n secundum_fw-la spiritum_fw-la say_v the_o chalice_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o do_v bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n ut_fw-la intelligerent_fw-la ita_fw-la se_fw-la iam_fw-la socios_fw-la esse_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la illi_fw-la socij_fw-la sunt_fw-la altaris_fw-la that_o they_o may_v understand_v themselves_o now_o to_o be_v communicantes_fw-la of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v communicantes_fw-la of_o their_o altar_n and_o then_o a_o few_o line_n after_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o most_o certain_a succession_n of_o bishop_n to_o our_o time_n and_o hereafter_o do_v continue_v et_fw-fr immolat_a deo_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la and_o do_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n body_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n 49._o psal_n 49._o for_o this_o church_n be_v israel_n after_o the_o spirit_n from_o who_o be_v distinguish_v that_o israel_n after_o the_o flesh_n who_o serve_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o sacrifice_n by_o which_o be_v signify_v the_o singular_a sacrifice_n which_o now_o israel_n secundum_fw-la spiritum_fw-la do_v offer_v iste_fw-la immolat_a deo_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 109._o psal_n 109._o this_o israel_n do_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n not_o after_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n but_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n noverunt_fw-la qui_fw-la legunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n 14._o gene._n 14._o the_o reader_n know_v what_o melchisedech_n do_v bring_v forth_o when_o he_o do_v bless_v abraham_n and_o now_o they_o be_v partaker_n thereof_o they_o see_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n now_o to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n over_o all_o the_o world_n 1_o mala._n 1_o et_fw-la quod_fw-la deum_fw-la non_fw-la paenitebit_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o where_o the_o psalm_n say_v god_n will_v not_o repent_v he_o it_o be_v a_o signification_n that_o he_o will_v not_o change_v this_o priesthood_n for_o he_o change_v the_o priesthood_n after_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n and_o not_o only_a s._n augustine_n but_o the_o whole_a rank_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v teach_v the_o same_o such_o a_o priesthood_n to_o be_v and_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n to_o offer_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n term_v it_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 295._o pur._n 295._o in_o so_o much_o that_o you_o also_o confess_v and_o say_v those_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n which_o compare_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o melchisedeches_n bread_n and_o wine_n which_o you_o say_v they_o call_v sometime_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n note_v that_o as_o though_o it_o make_v against_o transubstantiation_n which_o vain_a collection_n i_o have_v refute_v here_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 148._o and_o also_o add_v further_o and_o yet_o but_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n whether_o but_o for_o thanksgiving_n and_o not_o also_o for_o procure_v mercy_n i_o have_v here_o at_o large_a examine_v cap._n 9_o pag._n 196._o to_o 204._o but_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o we_o have_v now_o in_o hand_n for_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v and_o in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n no_o less_o proper_o than_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o propitiation_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v both_o i_o trow_v and_o therefore_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v the_o one_o what_o do_v that_o let_v but_o it_o may_v be_v the_o other_o also_o likewise_o a_o memorial_n sacrifice_n of_o christ_n passion_n no_o less_o than_o a_o prefigurative_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n though_o it_o be_v not_o call_v his_o very_a passion_n but_o by_o a_o similitude_n and_o therefore_o all_o that_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o augustine_n 292.316.320_o pur._n 292.316.320_o chrysostome_n cyprian_a irenée_n justine_n ambrose_n although_o they_o say_v all_o as_o you_o will_v have_v they_o that_o this_o be_v a_o memory_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o not_o his_o passion_n but_o only_o in_o a_o mystery_n be_v all_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n 292.294.320.321.326_o pur._n 292.294.320.321.326_o and_o therefore_o you_o have_v yet_o a_o better_a answer_n in_o store_n we_o confess_v you_o say_v that_o of_o the_o old_a writer_n it_o be_v common_o call_v a_o sacrifice_n but_o unproper_o and_o how_o do_v you_o show_v that_o because_o satyr_n because_o ambr._n ad_fw-la virg_n lapsan_n de_fw-fr virg_n l._n 1._o orat_fw-la in_o fr._n satyr_n one_o of_o they_o say_v of_o a_o virgin_n that_o to_o her_o death_n be_v unspotted_a that_o her_o parent_n may_v count_v she_o hostiam_fw-la vivam_fw-la a_o live_a sacrifice_n propitiatricem_fw-la suorum_fw-la videlicet_fw-la delictorum_fw-la a_o propitiatrix_n or_o procurer_n of_o mercy_n for_o their_o sin_n by_o make_v intercession_n for_o they_o to_o god_n in_o heaven_n you_o may_v as_o well_o argue_v that_o s._n paul_n in_o say_v christ_n body_n by_o death_n to_o be_v make_v a_o sacrifice_n heb._n 10._o speak_v
peace_n with_o christian_a charity_n and_o much_o more_o do_v provincial_a council_n yield_v to_o the_o general_a sine_fw-la ullis_fw-la ambagibus_fw-la without_o any_o more_o ado_n and_o much_o more_o again_o particular_a doctor_n and_o yet_o you_o with_o your_o swell_n of_o sacrilegious_a pride_n with_o your_o stubborness_n of_o arrogant_a ventosity_n with_o your_o contentiousnes_n of_o pevish_a envy_n will_v not_o yield_v neither_o to_z provincial_a nor_o to_o general_a council_n neither_o after_o their_o confirmation_n and_o receive_v so_o much_o more_o desperate_a than_o those_o donatist_n of_o who_o he_o speak_v as_o they_o have_v one_o doctor_n to_o wit_n s._n cyprian_n plain_o of_o their_o opinion_n and_o you_o have_v never_o a_o one_o and_o yet_o will_v neither_o yield_v to_o all_o the_o counsel_n together_o but_o against_o they_o all_o come_v in_o with_o your_o ambage_n and_o ask_v but_o where_o be_v their_o scripture_n as_o here_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 89._o think_v that_o you_o have_v a_o witty_a devise_n for_o this_o your_o tergiversation_n when_o you_o say_v 430._o pur._n 430._o the_o council_n that_o be_v receive_v be_v therefore_o receive_v because_o they_o decree_v true_o and_o not_o the_o truth_n receive_v because_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o counsel_n else_o why_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o be_v but_o one_o believe_v against_o ten_o counsel_n hold_v by_o the_o arrianes_n but_o that_o the_o nicene_n decree_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o all_o the_o rest_n against_o it_o you_o may_v aswell_o say_v the_o scripture_n that_o be_v receive_v be_v therefore_o receive_v because_o they_o be_v write_v true_o and_o not_o the_o truth_n receive_v because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n else_o why_o be_v the_o gospel_n according_a to_o matthew_n beléeve_v and_o not_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o the_o twelve_o but_o that_o the_o former_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o be_v not_o but_o we_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v once_o receive_v into_o the_o canon_n and_o the_o counsel_n be_v once_o receive_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a what_o soever_o they_o say_v must_v be_v beléeve_v to_o be_v truth_n and_o that_o then_o none_o but_o heretic_n do_v make_v exception_n against_o they_o and_o that_o you_o therefore_o be_v a_o heretic_n who_o not_o only_o against_o all_o counsel_n so_o receive_v for_o these_o 900._o year_n but_o also_o against_o the_o very_a nicene_n itself_o which_o you_o yourself_o receive_v do_v take_v your_o exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n and_o that_o as_o it_o be_v by_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n cap._n 9_o pag._n 179._o and_o 173.180_o 12._o motive_n 12._o 28._o see_v apostolic_a now_o for_o the_o see_v apostolic_a itself_o which_o as_o it_o be_v the_o confirmer_n so_o be_v it_o both_o the_o gatherer_n with_o the_o emperor_n help_n and_o also_o the_o precedent_n by_o the_o patriarch_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o sometime_o priest_n also_o be_v her_o vicar_n of_o all_o approve_a general_n counsel_n what_o soever_o 97._o soever_o ar._n 97._o you_o or_o any_o other_o heretic_n affirm_v to_o the_o contrary_a without_o any_o testimony_n i_o say_v in_o my_o 28._o demand_v that_o none_o ever_o but_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n do_v obstinate_o refuse_v either_o the_o faith_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o see_v behold_v two_o notable_a example_n one_o under_o pope_n victor_n about_o the_o question_n of_o easter_n the_o other_o under_o pope_n stephanus_n about_o the_o question_n of_o heretic_n baptism_n we_o shall_v catch_v this_o rat_n in_o they_o through_o his_o own_o rumble_v victor_n anno_fw-la 200._o 373._o ar._n 27.36_o pur._n 373._o say_v he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o go_v about_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o other_o church_n he_o pass_v the_o bond_n of_o his_o authority_n in_o excommunicate_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n then_o many_o bishop_n withstand_v he_o special_o ireneus_fw-la of_o lion_n and_o polycrates_n of_o ephesus_n as_o 23.24.25_o as_o eus_n li._n 5._o c._n 23.24.25_o witness_v eusebius_n but_o who_o say_v that_o he_o either_o usurp_a authority_n or_o pass_v the_o bond_n of_o his_o authority_n no_o doubt_n polycrates_n and_o his_o fellow_n of_o asia_n will_v so_o have_v say_v if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o your_o opinion_n about_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o if_o that_o bishop_n authority_n over_o all_o have_v not_o be_v in_o those_o primitive_a day_n a_o plain_a matter_n the_o story_n be_v thus_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n minor_a have_v receyve_v of_o s._n john_n evangelist_n to_o keep_v our_o lord_n pasch_fw-mi or_o easter_n day_n not_o always_o upon_o sunday_n but_o with_o the_o jew_n upon_o the_o 14._o of_o the_o moon_n in_o which_o custom_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v receive_v of_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n the_o other_o manner_n do_v tolerate_v they_o so_o long_o as_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o bury_v the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o observe_v the_o law_n but_o when_o they_o see_v that_o a_o 36._o a_o niceph._n li._n 4._o ca._n 36._o necessity_n be_v put_v therein_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o other_o manner_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o judaize_v heretic_n 14_o heretic_n tertul._n d●_n praes_n eus_n li._n 5._o ca._n 14_o blastus_n then_o lo_o they_o think_v good_a to_o tolerate_v they_o no_o long_o but_o s._n victor_n after_o that_o his_o 36._o his_o niceph._n li._n 4._o ca._n 36._o predecessor_n pius_n anicetus_n eleutherius_fw-la have_v send_v out_o decree_n against_o that_o manner_n and_o 22._o and_o eus_n li._n 5._o ca._n 22._o all_o bishop_n have_v ratify_v decretum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la the_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n see_v that_o they_o of_o asia_n neither_o so_o obey_v to_o walk_v unto_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n use_v severity_n when_o it_o be_v high_a time_n command_v they_o either_o to_o obey_v without_o any_o more_o ado_n or_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o church_n communion_n which_o censure_n of_o his_o do_v seem_v to_o sharp_a to_o s._n irenée_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o observance_n as_o now_o also_o if_o he_o will_v excommunicate_v they_o which_o receive_v not_o the_o counsel_n of_o trent_n it_o will_v seem_v likewise_o to_o many_o who_o notwithstanding_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n over_o all_o but_o what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o matter_n at_o length_n follow_v the_o first_o nicene_n council_n and_o confirm_v the_o same_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v command_v in_o their_o epistle_n to_o they_o of_o alexandria_n write_v this_o of_o the_o asianes_n also_o you_o shall_v understand_v 9_o apud_fw-la theod._n li._n 1._o ca._n 9_o that_o the_o controversy_n of_o easter_n be_v wise_o pacify_v in_o so_o much_o that_o all_o our_o brother_n that_o inhabit_v the_o east_n will_v now_o hereafter_o with_o one_o accord_n in_o keep_v the_o same_o follow_v the_o roman_n we_o and_o all_o you_o so_o they_o promise_v the_o council_n and_o who_o so_o refuse_v yet_o after_o that_o to_o do_v it_o be_v count_v obstinate_a heretic_n 37._o aug._n haer._n 29._o soc._n li._n 6._o ca._n 10.20_o ar._n 37._o both_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n name_v testarescaidecaticai_fw-mi that_o be_v quartadecimane_a some_o such_o be_v yet_o in_o asia_n in_o s._n chrysostom_n time_n be_v by_o he_o as_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n turn_v out_o of_o their_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o novatianes_n likewise_o say_v fulke_n towch_v the_o other_o case_n when_o pope_n stephanus_n threaten_v excommunication_n to_o helenus_n and_o firmilianus_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n because_o they_o think_v that_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o 4.5_o diony_n al._n ep_v ad_fw-la xystum_fw-la papan_n success_n ste._n apud_fw-la eus_n li._n 7._o ca._n 2.3_o 4.5_o he_o be_v mislike_v by_o dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n and_o diverse_a other_o godly_a bishop_n cyprian_a also_o reprove_v he_o very_o sharp_o for_o the_o same_o opinion_n accuse_v he_o of_o presumption_n and_o contumacy_n 74._o contumacy_n cypr._n ep_v 74._o epist_n ad_fw-la pompeium_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o 71._o to_o cyp._n epi._n 71._o quintus_n he_o say_v plain_o that_o peter_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o arrogant_a nor_o so_o presumptuous_a that_o he_o will_v say_v he_o hold_v the_o primacy_n and_o that_o other_o man_n shall_v obey_v he_o as_o his_o inferior_n you_o will_v make_v the_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o there_o say_v peter_n have_v not_o the_o primacy_n whereas_o he_o say_v express_o in_o the_o very_a same_o period_n petrus_n quem_fw-la primum_fw-la dominus_fw-la elegit_fw-la &_o super_fw-la quem_fw-la edificavit_fw-la eccleam_fw-it svam_fw-la peter_n who_o our_o lord_n choose_v the_o first_o and_o upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n neither_o he_o nor_o dionysius_n nor_o firmilianus_n deni_v the_o primacy_n
can_v doubt_v but_o this_o present_a plague_n and_o thraldom_n of_o the_o greek_n be_v fall_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o like_a or_o worse_o to_o fall_v upon_o the_o like_a for_o their_o depart_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v foretell_v they_o full_a often_o though_o you_o count_v it_o false_a and_o unreasonable_a so_o to_o say_v and_o why_o 396._o pur._n 396._o because_o the_o africans_n be_v plague_v and_o subvert_v for_o other_o sin_n so_o substantial_a be_v your_o reason_n as_o if_o you_o will_v say_v ten_o tribe_n be_v not_o subvert_v for_o their_o schism_n because_o the_o two_o tribe_n be_v subvert_v for_o other_o sin_n 29._o tradition_n 9_o motive_n 9_o the_o 29._o demand_n mention_v that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v to_o the_o church_n not_o only_a scripture_n as_o fulke_n will_v prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n here_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 100_o to_o 110._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 171._o to_o 183._o which_o all_o i_o have_v answer_v but_o also_o unwritten_a tradition_n whereof_o no_o one_o be_v against_o we_o and_o many_o of_o they_o so_o direct_o against_o the_o protestant_n that_o although_o he_o confess_v they_o as_o for_o example_n the_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o have_v the_o most_o approve_a father_n testimony_n to_o be_v tradition_n apostolic_a here_o cap._n 3._o pag._n 15._o to_o 20._o yet_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o deny_v that_o either_o they_o or_o any_o tradition_n at_o all_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n ca._n 7._o pa._n 80._o to_o 89._o so_o as_o never_o do_v the_o catholic_n i_o say_v in_o this_o demand_n but_o only_a heretic_n 383.409.412_o pur._n 383.409.412_o but_o against_o this_o i_o find_v that_o he_o allege_v a_o say_n of_o s._n irene_n as_o though_o by_o his_o judgement_n we_o rather_o be_v valentinian_n heretic_n who_o with_o the_o father_n here_o cap._n 3._o &_o 7._o pag._n 19_o &_o 84._o beside_o scripture_n do_v hold_v with_o tradition_n of_o unwritten_a verity_n and_o lord_n how_o he_o crow_v against_o d._n allen_n for_o allege_v the_o same_o say_n against_o the_o protestant_n upon_o their_o deny_v of_o the_o machabée_n not_o consider_v that_o by_o s._n irenée_n there_o they_o no_o more_o be_v heretic_n who_o will_v have_v tradition_n than_o they_o who_o will_v have_v scripture_n 2.3_o iren._n li._n 3._o ca._n 2.3_o s._n irenée_n himself_o as_o all_o catholic_n will_v have_v both_o but_o those_o old_a heretic_n will_v in_o effect_n say_v he_o have_v neither_o neque_fw-la scripture_n iam_fw-la neque_fw-la traditioni_fw-la consentire_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o will_v yield_v neither_o to_o the_o scripture_n nor_o to_o tradition_n for_o when_o they_o be_v confute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n they_o turn_v to_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o as_o though_o they_o be_v corrupt_v nor_o be_v not_o canonical_a and_o that_o they_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o that_o out_o of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v find_v the_o sincere_a truth_n by_o such_o as_o know_v not_o the_o tradition_n because_o that_o be_v not_o deliver_v by_o writing_n but_o a_o certain_a mingle_v mangle_v and_o the_o sincere_a truth_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n well_o then_o say_v the_o catholic_a let_v we_o hardly_o try_v by_o tradition_n what_o do_v they_o then_o they_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n either_o themselves_o know_v not_o all_o thing_n or_o that_o they_o teach_v their_o successor_n of_o one_o sort_n in_o open_a place_n and_o these_o man_n patriarch_n in_o secret_a of_o another_o sort_n cum_fw-la autem_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la iterum_fw-la traditionem_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o when_o again_o to_o that_o tradition_n which_o be_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v conserve_v in_o the_o church_n by_o succession_n of_o the_o priest_n we_o provoke_v those_o heretic_n who_o be_v adversary_n to_o tradition_n as_o the_o former_a be_v to_o scripture_n they_o will_v say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a than_o not_o only_o the_o priest_n but_o also_o the_o apostle_n have_v find_v the_o sincere_a truth_n aduersus_fw-la tale_n certamen_fw-la nobis_fw-la est_fw-la o_fw-la dilectissime_fw-la against_o such_o we_o have_v to_o fight_v o_o my_o dear_a who_o as_o slippery_a as_o snake_n seek_v on_o every_o side_n to_o fly_v what_o way_n shall_v we_o then_o take_v with_o they_o traditionem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la manifestatam_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la adest_fw-la perspicere_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la vera_fw-la velint_fw-la audire_fw-la he_o that_o listen_v to_o hear_v lie_n may_v seek_v to_o these_o heretic_n and_o the_o secret_a tradition_n which_o they_o pretend_v but_o all_o that_o will_v hear_v the_o truth_n may_v in_o the_o church_n see_v the_o apostle_n tradition_n which_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n et_fw-la habemus_fw-la annumerare_fw-la and_o we_o can_v rehearse_v they_o who_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n even_o unto_o us._n who_o teach_v nor_o know_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o man_n dote_v upon_o for_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v know_v strange_a mystery_n which_o they_o teach_v the_o perfect_a seorsim_fw-la &_o latenter_fw-la ab_fw-la reliquis_fw-la apart_o from_o the_o rest_n and_o privily_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v have_v commit_v they_o special_o to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v also_o the_o church_n and_o then_o because_o it_o be_v to_o long_o he_o say_v to_o rehearse_v all_o succession_n he_o reckon_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a and_o know_v to_o all_o man_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o tradition_n which_o she_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n come_v even_o unto_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n we_o report_v confundimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la eos_fw-la do_v confound_v all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n et_fw-la est_fw-la plenissima_fw-la haec_fw-la ostensio_fw-la and_o this_o be_v a_o most_o full_a demonstration_n that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o quicken_a faith_n which_o from_o the_o apostle_n be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n till_o now_o and_o deliver_v in_o truth_n loe_o now_o sir_n who_o have_v such_o ill_a grace_n to_o allege_v the_o doctor_n against_o himself_o for_o who_o deni_v here_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 165._o the_o authority_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v canonize_v by_o the_o church_n which_o himself_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n who_o also_o refuse_v the_o tradition_n and_o say_v i_o say_v not_o by_o those_o heretic_n pretend_v but_o even_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n even_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o not_o now_o only_o but_o then_o also_o when_v yourself_o do_v grant_v that_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o for_o we_o we_o reject_v neither_o the_o churches_n scripture_n nor_o the_o church_n tradition_n but_o answer_v all_o that_o you_o detort_v to_o maintain_v your_o heresy_n and_o restore_v it_o to_o the_o right_a meaning_n 30_o their_o own_o doctor_n 16._o motive_n 16._o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o all_o man_n and_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o they_o be_v against_o our_o protestant_n and_o in_o no_o point_n with_o they_o against_o we_o it_o be_v many_o way_n show_v by_o the_o aforesaid_a beside_o all_o these_o i_o note_v in_o the_o next_o demand_n also_o their_o own_o master_n and_o fellow_n namely_o luther_n and_o caluine_n to_o have_v condemn_v they_o such_o leader_n have_v our_o miserable_a country_n choose_v to_o follow_v forsake_v the_o sure_a guydance_n of_o god_n church_n in_o which_o our_o forefather_n together_o with_o the_o catholic_n of_o all_o other_o country_n so_o many_o age_n before_o prosper_v in_o earth_n and_o achieve_v to_o heaven_n 31.32.33_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v in_o three_o demand_n follow_v i_o do_v show_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_v teach_v by_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o the_o other_o father_n do_v make_v for_o we_o and_o against_o the_o protestant_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o fulke_n be_v fain_o to_o refuse_v those_o rule_n abuse_v a_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n as_o it_o be_v for_o only_a scripture_n against_o they_o here_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 80._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 180._o 15.26_o motive_n 10.11.28_o arti._n 15.26_o 34._o authority_n the_o protestant_n find_v the_o primitive_a church_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n here_o cap._n 2._o to_o be_v in_o many_o point_n so_o plain_o against_o they_o that_o they_o must_v confess_v it_o themselves_o as_o here_o cap._n 3_o do_v hold_v that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v universal_o and_o also_o do_v err_v cap._n 3.4_o and_o therefore_o make_v their_o exception_n against_o it_o also_o cap._n 7._o pa._n 89._o and_o that_o with_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n to_o warrant_v their_o so_o do_v cap._n 8._o pag._n 117._o unto_o which_o i_o have_v full_o answer_v hereupon_o in_o my_o 34._o dem._n i_o affirm_v
speak_v all_o be_v do_v still_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o the_o self_n same_o authority_n and_o with_o the_o same_o affection_n and_o discretion_n if_o the_o judge_n do_v not_o swerve_v from_o the_o church_n law_n 43._o succession_n 8._o motive_n 22._o article_n 8._o consequent_o in_o the_o next_o demand_n i_o say_v that_z the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v descend_v by_o lineal_a and_o continual_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o our_o church_n be_v so_o descend_v and_o that_o the_o protestant_n church_n be_v not_o so_o descend_v about_o this_o fulke_n do_v many_o way_n contradict_v himself_o as_o i_o will_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n because_o he_o can_v not_o tell_v what_o to_o say_v unto_o it_o yet_o to_o help_v he_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v and_o as_o i_o do_v use_v every_o where_n to_o frame_v his_o argument_n to_o his_o purpose_n and_o to_o bring_v they_o into_o some_o order_n he_o may_v say_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o true_a church_n although_o they_o have_v not_o succession_n second_o that_o we_o may_v lack_v the_o true_a church_n although_o we_o have_v succession_n to_o the_o first_o he_o may_v refer_v these_o word_n of_o his_o own_o unto_o d._n allen_n 26._o ar._n 26._o you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o any_o such_o orderly_a succession_n according_a to_o person_n and_o place_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o church_n that_o we_o shall_v show_v you_o the_o performance_n thereof_o in_o our_o church_n whether_o that_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v my_o first_o demand_n here_o will_v show_v which_o declare_v that_o s._n augustine_n have_v already_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o thence_o grow_v over_o all_o nation_n continual_o to_o the_o world_n end_n as_o also_o with_o our_o eye_n we_o see_v that_o unto_o this_o our_o time_n it_o have_v do_v and_o even_o the_o place_n which_o you_o go_v about_o to_o answer_v prove_v it_o plain_o continual_a succession_n of_o person_n in_o the_o ministry_n i_o say_v with_o d._n allen_n even_o until_o christ_n come_n again_o 4._o ephe._n 4._o christus_fw-la ascendens_fw-la etc._n etc._n christ_n ascend_v give_v gift_n to_o man_n some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o evangelist_n some_o prophet_n some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o the_o complete_n of_o the_o holy_a for_o the_o work_n of_o ministry_n for_o the_o build_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n donec_fw-la occurramus_fw-la omnes_fw-la etc._n etc._n until_o we_o meet_v all_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o perfect_a man_n in_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n plenitudinis_fw-la christi_fw-la of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v ephe._n 1_o of_o his_o church_n he_o say_v so_o express_o until_o the_o finish_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o you_o will_v not_o see_v you_o think_v better_a to_o cavil_n and_o say_v the_o office_n of_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n be_v not_o appoint_v to_o continue_v always_o in_o the_o church_n but_o for_o a_o time_n until_o the_o gospel_n have_v take_v root_n in_o the_o world_n why_o do_v you_o not_o say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o other_o two_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n if_o they_o at_o the_o least_o be_v appoint_v to_o continue_v always_o you_o see_v a_o succession_n of_o person_n and_o how_o can_v saint_n paul_n saying_n be_v otherwise_o verify_v unless_o some_o of_o those_o five_o shall_v always_o continue_v if_o not_o all_o as_o the_o word_n do_v rather_o import_v for_o you_o seem_v to_o deceyve_v yourself_o by_o think_v that_o none_o be_v apostle_n but_o the_o twelve_o none_o evangelist_n but_o the_o four_o none_o prophet_n but_o the_o foreteller_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v whereas_o in_o deed_n all_o the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v apostle_n as_o i_o note_v in_o the_o .28_o demand_n and_o also_o whosoever_o else_o be_v the_o first_o converter_n of_o any_o nation_n and_o all_o the_o expounder_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o prophet_n be_v evangelist_n and_o prophet_n which_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v if_o you_o have_v any_o skill_n in_o understand_v the_o scripture_n no_o difference_n be_v between_o these_o office_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o now_o but_o only_o that_o then_o they_o be_v give_v by_o miracle_n and_o now_o by_o order_n as_o touch_v the_o second_o you_o grant_v our_o church_n to_o have_v such_o continual_a succession_n and_o infer_v thereupon_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 5._o because_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o sight_n whereunto_o i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 8._o pag._n 144._o show_v that_o you_o do_v foul_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n to_o that_o false_a conclusion_n and_o namely_o that_o the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v again_o you_o argue_v if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a 27._o ar._n 27._o or_o any_o thing_n worth_a to_o rehearse_v the_o name_n of_o they_o that_o have_v orderly_o succeed_v in_o all_o age_n in_o the_o bishop_n see_v in_o a_o outward_a face_n of_o the_o church_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v able_a to_o name_n as_o many_o as_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o in_o as_o orderly_a succession_n what_o of_o that_o but_o only_o this_o that_o they_o therefore_o may_v better_o claim_v the_o church_n than_o you_o and_o yet_o in_o truth_n these_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a greek_n can_v no_o more_o show_v succession_n then_o you_o for_o your_o false_a bishop_n be_v now_o in_o the_o see_v of_o c._n pole_n of_o b._n bonner_n of_o b._n therlebie_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o i_o trow_v you_o will_v not_o thereby_o claim_v succession_n so_o these_o late_a greek_n have_v not_o succession_n but_o from_o they_o only_o who_o begin_v this_o separation_n of_o they_o and_o their_o heresy_n about_o the_o h._n ghost_n proceed_v etc._n etc._n for_o in_o saint_n gregory_n time_n which_o be_v enough_o they_o be_v in_o unity_n nam_fw-la de_fw-fr constantinopolitana_n ecclesia_fw-la 63._o greg._n li._n 7._o epist_n 63._o quis_fw-la eam_fw-la dubitet_fw-la sedi_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la esse_fw-la subiectam_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o as_o touch_v the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n say_v he_o who_o can_v doubt_v that_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o thing_n both_o our_o most_o clement_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n do_v daily_o profess_v 44._o apostolic_a church_n 23._o motive_n 23._o next_o unto_o this_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v we_o &_o not_o the_o protestant_n which_o believe_v the_o apostolic_a church_n because_o we_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n which_o have_v the_o see_v of_o the_o two_o most_o glorious_a apostle_n s._n peter_n &_o s._n paul_n &_o which_o be_v mean_v by_o those_o father_n who_o in_o their_o council_n add_v to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o créede_v the_o word_n apostolic_a thereby_o to_o specify_v the_o better_a the_o catholic_a church_n against_o such_o heretic_n as_o dare_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o have_v no_o colour_n to_o challenge_v the_o roman_a church_n namely_o that_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o sit_v in_o the_o apostle_n chair_n that_o be_v which_o orderly_o and_o canonical_o succéede_v the_o apostle_n for_o otherwise_o the_o donatist_n and_o some_o other_o we_o know_v have_v their_o mock_n bishop_n at_o rome_n in_o a_o corner_n who_o they_o send_v thither_o out_o of_o other_o country_n to_o lurk_v there_o for_o a_o stale_a to_o their_o simple_a people_n which_o thing_n among_o other_o may_v cause_v the_o father_n in_o their_o exposition_n of_o the_o créede_v to_o say_v rather_o the_o apostolic_a church_n then_o the_o roman_a church_n 96._o ar._n 96._o unto_o this_o fulke_n have_v two_o shift_n first_o he_o say_v you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o prove_v that_o peter_n be_v never_o bishop_n at_o rome_n and_o then_o where_o be_v all_o your_o brag_n of_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o succession_n &_o c_o see_v here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 3._o how_o he_o confess_v that_o s._n augustine_n and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o father_n do_v likewise_o allege_v against_o heretic_n the_o succession_n of_o that_o apostolic_a see_v and_o therefore_o consider_v to_o who_o and_o for_o who_o it_o be_v that_o now_o he_o say_v and_o then_o where_o be_v all_o your_o brag_n &c_n &c_n i_o will_v not_o desire_v a_o better_a cause_n to_o discredit_v quite_o these_o absurd_a protestant_n then_o that_o they_o deny_v s._n peter_n to_o have_v be_v ever_o at_o rome_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n be_v against_o they_o therein_o
with_o they_o who_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n have_v in_o their_o time_n the_o true_a church_n ten_o because_o all_o d._n allens_n article_n be_v in_o effect_n contain_v in_o my_o motive_n and_o demand_n i_o will_v examine_v what_o he_o answer_v not_o to_o my_o probation_n for_o to_o they_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o he_o light_o answer_v not_o as_o i_o say_v afore_o but_o even_o to_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o they_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o his_o answer_n will_v soon_o appear_v to_o be_v no_o answer_n i_o will_v examine_v whether_o at_o the_o leastwise_o he_o object_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n to_o the_o end_n that_o when_o thou_o shall_v see_v that_o all_o be_v so_o little_a or_o rather_o nothing_o at_o all_o thou_o may_v perceive_v that_o god_n for_o his_o church_n glory_n blind_v they_o to_o send_v such_o a_o book_n abroad_o which_o thou_o shall_v again_o more_o plain_o perceive_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n where_o i_o will_v lay_v forth_o his_o marvelous_a gross_a and_o palpable_a contradiction_n yea_o and_o in_o great_a number_n also_o and_o again_o as_o plain_o in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n where_o i_o will_v display_v certain_a strange_a and_o detestable_a position_n of_o he_o and_o also_o his_o ignorance_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o learning_n theologicall_n to_o the_o which_o i_o may_v but_o for_o prolixity_n join_v many_o ensample_n pertain_v to_o a_o falsarie_a put_v he_o in_o mind_n withal_o of_o his_o horrible_a blasphemy_n as_o himself_o also_o must_v confess_v they_o to_o be_v because_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v it_o but_o that_o the_o church_n against_o who_o he_o have_v pour_v they_o be_v the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o conclusion_n i_o will_v among_o some_o other_o thing_n advertise_v the_o reader_n what_o more_o may_v be_v desire_v for_o the_o full_a justify_n of_o the_o book_n of_o purgatory_n though_o this_o much_o be_v enough_o and_o superabundaunt_a but_o for_o justification_n of_o the_o article_n that_o no_o more_o can_v be_v desire_v but_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o perform_v of_o these_o our_o promise_n ar._n and_o pur._n in_o the_o margin_n signify_v the_o page_n of_o fulke_n book_n against_o the_o article_n and_o against_o purgatory_n ¶_o a_o reply_n to_o fulke_n in_o defence_n of_o m._n d._n allens_n scroll_n of_o article_n and_o book_n of_o purgatory_n ¶_o the_o first_o chapter_n that_o he_o confess_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v no_o salvation_n this_o i_o show_v brief_o and_o most_o plain_o by_o his_o own_o word_n as_o where_o he_o say_v the_o house_n of_o refuge_n or_o defence_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o church_n 108._o ar._n pag._n 108._o out_o of_o which_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o in_o who_o bosom_n it_o become_v every_o man_n to_o rest_n which_o shall_v look_v for_o the_o refuge_n and_o defence_n of_o god_n 83._o ar._n 83._o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n there_o be_v no_o man_n of_o what_o age_n or_o year_n soever_o he_o be_v that_o can_v be_v save_v except_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n again_o this_o we_o affirm_v that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n again_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o beside_o the_o true_a church_n 76._o ar._n 62._o ar._n 76._o there_o be_v a_o untrue_a church_n that_o practise_v those_o office_n of_o baptise_v and_o other_o spiritual_a action_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o any_o man_n and_o again_o no_o man_n alive_a 73._o ar._n 73._o that_o know_v what_o the_o true_a church_n mean_v will_v say_v that_o any_o man_n can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n receive_v any_o benefit_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o salvation_n therefore_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o out_o of_o this_o church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v this_o then_o be_v so_o confess_v as_o in_o our_o church_n it_o be_v also_o open_o practise_v first_o in_o baptism_n to_o take_v man_n in_o then_o in_o reconciliation_n if_o they_o go_v or_o be_v cast_v afterward_o out_o to_o receive_v they_o in_o again_o i_o will_v stand_v no_o long_o upon_o it_o but_o proceed_v further_o ¶_o the_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o confess_v the_o know_a church_n of_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o the_o know_v member_n thereof_o this_o likewise_o will_v be_v evident_a by_o his_o own_o word_n if_o the_o catholic_a ear_n can_v bear_v his_o blasphemy_n withal_o &_o first_o if_o we_o consider_v what_o he_o write_v of_o the_o roman_n and_o their_o bishop_n both_o since_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o and_o also_o afore_o he_o 35._o ar_n 35._o be_v ask_v what_o year_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v thus_o he_o answer_v we_o may_v well_o say_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v that_o year_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n first_o obtain_v his_o antichristian_a exaltation_n which_o be_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 607_o when_o boniface_n the_o three_o for_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o traitorous_a murderer_n and_o adulterous_a emperor_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o count_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o what_o after_o that_o since_o that_o time_n say_v he_o that_o devilish_a heresy_n have_v always_o increase_v in_o error_n until_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414._o whereupon_o in_o other_o place_n he_o say_v again_o 344_o ar._n 27._o pur._n 344_o from_o boniface_n the_o three_o all_o blasphemous_a heretic_n and_o antichriste_n and_o again_o or_o any_o succeed_a boniface_n the_o three_o which_o beside_o their_o abominable_a life_n be_v all_o heretic_n and_o antichriste_n and_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o old_a doctor_n by_o and_o by_o he_o add_v as_o in_o a_o antithesis_fw-la 405_o pur._n 405_o nay_o rather_o count_v upon_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v pillar_n of_o your_o church_n doctor_n of_o your_o learning_n and_o father_n of_o your_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v within_o these_o seven_o or_o eight_o hundred_o year_n by_o this_o that_o he_o say_v of_o the_o time_n after_o boniface_n the_o three_o you_o perceyve_v his_o confession_n as_o touch_v the_o time_n afore_o he_o yet_o to_o make_v it_o more_o plain_a he_o shall_v express_o make_v himself_o his_o own_o confession_n 194._o pur._n 194._o gregory_n be_v the_o last_o of_o all_o the_o romishe_a bishop_n in_o who_o be_v any_o spark_n of_o goodness_n because_o boniface_n his_o successor_n pag._n see_v pag._n and_o all_o the_o rest_n by_o gregory_n own_o judgement_n and_o prophecy_n be_v all_o antichristes_n and_o most_o manifest_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 372_o pur._n 372_o where_o d._n allen_n urge_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n by_o example_n of_o ireneus_fw-la cyprian_n tertullian_n optatus_n hierome_n augustine_n and_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n who_o confound_v therewith_o all_o heretic_n and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v then_o store_n of_o apostolic_a succession_n do_v ever_o choose_v out_o for_o the_o warrant_n of_o their_o faith_n from_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o roman_a seat_n and_o now_o when_o there_o be_v no_o apostolic_a church_n leave_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o it_o that_o they_o will_v not_o have_v we_o refer_v our_o faith_n to_o it_o which_o be_v ever_o of_o all_o other_o most_o free_a from_o falsehood_n to_o this_o fulke_n in_o his_o answer_n say_v that_o these_o man_n special_o name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n as_o it_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n so_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a after_o as_o for_o that_o which_o m._n allen_n count_v so_o strange_a it_o be_v for_o lack_v of_o skill_n and_o right_a judgement_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n that_o move_v those_o ancient_a father_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n move_v we_o now_o to_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o heresy_n wherefore_o do_v they_o reverence_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n ask_v tertullian_n he_o answer_v long_o true_a doctrine_n in_o the_o true_a church_n how_o long_o because_o it_o have_v by_o succession_n retain_v even_o until_o his_o day_n that_o faith_n which_o it_o do_v first_o receyve_v of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o apostolic_a church_n this_o answer_n he_o learn_v of_o his_o master_n caluine_n who_o in_o his_o institution_n first_o put_v down_o our_o allegation_n say_v 2.3_o cal._n ins_n li._n 4._o ca._n 2_o nu_fw-la 2.3_o magnifice_fw-la illi_fw-la quidem_fw-la svam_fw-la nobis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la commendant_fw-la allegant_fw-la enim_fw-la
eam_fw-la apud_fw-la se_fw-la initio_fw-la sana_fw-la doctrina_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la martyrum_fw-la bene_fw-la fundatam_fw-la perpetua_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la successione_n conseruatam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ne_fw-la intercideret_fw-la commemorant_fw-la quanti_fw-la hanc_fw-la successionem_fw-la fecerint_fw-la irenaeus_n tertullianus_n origenes_n augustinus_n &_o alij_fw-la that_o be_v they_o in_o deed_n set_v forth_o unto_o we_o their_o church_n very_o glorious_o for_o they_o allege_v that_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n well_o found_v amongst_o they_o with_o sound_n doctrine_n and_o with_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n it_o be_v by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n preserve_v from_o decay_v they_o report_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n origene_n augustine_n and_o other_o how_o high_o they_o esteem_v this_o succession_n and_o then_o he_o put_v hereunto_o his_o own_o answer_n say_v cum_fw-la extra_fw-la controversiam_fw-la esset_fw-la nihil_fw-la a_o principio_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la illam_fw-la aetatem_fw-la mutatum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a case_n that_o from_o the_o begin_n even_o until_o that_o time_n nothing_o be_v change_v in_o doctrine_n the_o holy_a doctor_n take_v in_o argument_n that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o all_o new_a error_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n which_o even_o from_o the_o very_a apostle_n themselves_o have_v be_v inviolable_o and_o with_o one_o consent_n retain_v this_o grant_v both_o of_o the_o master_n and_o of_o his_o scholar_n as_o more_o by_o a_o great_a deal_n then_o in_o this_o chapter_n we_o need_v the_o true_a church_n not_o only_o to_o have_v continue_v so_o long_o itself_o but_o also_o to_o have_v keep_v inviolable_o and_o general_o with_o one_o accord_n the_o true_a faith_n and_o true_a doctrine_n which_o of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o she_o have_v receive_v the_o like_a he_o confess_v of_o our_o own_o country_n also_o 49._o ar._n 49._o where_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o the_o briton_n before_o augustine_n who_o saint_n gregory_n send_v from_o rome_n to_o convert_v the_o english_a in_o our_o say_a country_n of_o britanny_n come_v in_o with_o romish_a service_n have_v they_o not_o trow_v you_o authentical_a service_n which_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o which_o confession_n let_v it_o be_v add_v out_o of_o s._n bede_n story_n that_o the_o 25._o the_o bed_n hist_o li._n 2._o ca._n 4.2_o &_o li._n 3._o ca._n 25._o great_a point_n wherein_o the_o christian_a bryton_n and_o our_o apostle_n s._n augustine_n differ_v be_v about_o the_o keep_v of_o easter_n day_n and_o that_o also_o not_o so_o great_a as_o in_o old_a time_n between_o s._n victor_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o christian_n of_o asia_n as_o this_o man_n ignorant_o pag._n ignorant_o pur._n 371._o here_o ca._n 10._o pag._n somewhere_o affirm_v that_o be_v to_o say_v not_o whether_o it_o shall_v be_v always_o keep_v with_o the_o jew_n upon_o the_o very_a day_n of_o the_o full_a moon_n according_a to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o 29._o the_o aug._n heresi_fw-la 29._o tessaresdecatite_n or_o quartadecimani_fw-la for_o that_o observation_n 28._o observation_n eus_n in_o vita_fw-la const_n li._n 3._o ca._n 28._o britanny_n as_o the_o emperor_n 28._o emperor_n eus_n in_o vita_fw-la const_n li._n 3._o ca._n 28._o constantinus_n witness_v detest_v no_o less_o than_o other_o province_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n but_o only_a upon_o what_o supra_fw-la what_o beda_n supra_fw-la sunday_n it_o shall_v be_v keep_v so_o then_o this_o be_v their_o great_a difference_n and_o yet_o therein_o also_o the_o right_a observation_n be_v that_o which_o be_v bring_v from_o rome_n as_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v you_o see_v what_o grant_v this_o man_n must_v make_v as_o to_o britanny_n so_o likewise_o to_o rome_n at_o that_o time_n to_o wit_n not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n but_o withal_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v though_o in_o this_o chapter_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v we_o look_v no_o more_o but_o for_o the_o true_a church_n which_o same_o true_a church_n he_o grant_v again_o many_o other_o way_n unto_o the_o roman_n and_o their_o bishop_n in_o that_o he_o geve_v it_o to_o sundry_a notable_a personage_n and_o company_n that_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o in_o one_o church_n with_o the_o say_a roman_n as_o to_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o counsel_n to_o the_o martyr_n monk_n and_o other_o christian_n not_o only_o that_o frequent_v those_o cryptes_n or_o holy_a vault_n under_o the_o heathen_a and_o persecute_v emperor_n but_o also_o that_o gather_v themselves_o afterward_o in_o those_o magnifical_a new_a temple_n under_o the_o christian_a catholic_a emperor_n and_o final_o to_o those_o catholic_a emperor_n themselves_o even_o to_o mauritius_n who_o live_v with_o s._n gregory_n 60._o ar._n 60._o of_o the_o doctor_n his_o confession_n be_v this_o the_o most_o approve_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n epiphanius_n hilarius_n chrysostamus_n jeronymus_n ambrose_n augustinus_n etc._n etc._n be_v doubtless_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n again_o 71._o ar._n 71._o the_o church_n of_o the_o arian_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o athanasius_n and_o a_o time_n a_o such_o be_v his_o skill_n in_o the_o story_n of_o that_o time_n few_o other_o that_o be_v banish_v and_o persecute_v be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n again_o 59_o again_o ar._n 59_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o irenaeus_n two_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a authentical_a writer_n that_o the_o church_n next_o unto_o the_o apostle_n have_v and_o again_o 434._o again_o pur._n 434._o the_o old_a doctor_n have_v their_o measure_n of_o god_n spirit_n cyprian_a and_o cornelius_n be_v both_o endue_v with_o god_n spirit_n and_o both_o martyr_n again_o 405._o pur._n 405._o the_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n augustine_n ambrose_n chrysostome_n basill_n etc._n etc._n again_o it_o be_v a_o good_a argument_n 27._o ar._n 27._o that_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v never_o hide_v since_o it_o first_o spring_v up_o in_o so_o much_o that_o you_o can_v name_v all_o the_o notable_a person_n in_o all_o age_n in_o their_o government_n and_o ministry_n and_o especial_o the_o succession_n of_o xv_o of_o a_o proper_a distribution_n the_o pope_n in_o all_o age_n to_o be_v we_o and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n &_o doctor_n to_o be_v he_o sapientes_fw-la confitentur_fw-la &_o non_fw-la abscondunt_fw-la patres_fw-la suos_fw-la quoth_v eliphaz_n against_o job._n cap._n xv_o pope_n you_o can_v rehearse_v in_o order_n upon_o your_o finger_n but_o our_o church_n which_o have_v not_o have_v so_o many_o register_n chronicler_n and_o remembrancer_n have_v perhaps_o few_o but_o yet_o honest_a man_n to_o name_n we_o can_v name_n peter_n paul_n etc._n etc._n justinus_n irenaeus_n cyprianus_n athanasius_n hilarius_n ambrose_n augustinus_n gyldas_n &c_n &c_n then_o as_o touch_v ancient_a counsel_n thus_o he_o say_v 97._o say_v ar._n 97._o the_o four_o best_a general_n counsel_n be_v gather_v by_o our_o church_n again_o 296._o again_o pur._n 430._o pur._n 296._o if_o any_o council_n decree_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v act._n 15_o and_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o diverse_a other_o we_o receive_v they_o with_o all_o humility_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n to_o this_o place_n of_o doctor_n and_o counsel_n pertain_v that_o also_o which_o he_o confess_v of_o the_o church_n that_o resist_v and_o overcome_v the_o old_a heresy_n as_o where_o d._n allen_n have_v say_v it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o shall_v outface_v god_n church_n she_o have_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n beat_v down_o your_o proudder_n the_o arrian_n the_o macedonian_n the_o anabaptiste_n as_o the_o donatist_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o your_o predecessor_n he_o answer_v 297._o 297._o you_o boast_v that_o your_o church_n have_v beat_v down_o our_o proudder_n the_o arrian_n macedonian_n anabaptiste_n it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o overthrewe_v those_o heretic_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n likewise_o 10._o ar._n 10._o i_o demand_v say_v d._n allen_n what_o church_n have_v mighty_o go_v through_o bear_v down_o &_o full_o vanquish_v all_o heresy_n in_o time_n past_a aswell_o against_o the_o bless_a trinity_n as_o other_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n i_o answer_v say_v fulke_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n have_v always_o resist_v all_o false_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o her_o duty_n be_v and_o fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o aid_n of_o god_n obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o triumph_v over_o they_o so_o do_v the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n confute_v heresy_n by_o the_o
whatsoever_o we_o do_v also_o to_o geve_v to_o they_o that_o be_v new_o baptize_v a_o temper_n of_o milk_n and_o honey_n and_o from_o the_o day_n of_o their_o baptism_n forbid_v daily_o wash_v all_o the_o week_n after_o v._o as_o touch_v purgatory_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o for_o purgatory_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a because_o his_o whole_a book_n be_v of_o that_o matter_n he_o be_v most_o profuse_a in_o charge_v that_o ancient_a true_a church_n both_o father_n and_o people_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o i_o must_v stand_v the_o long_o hereabout_o special_o because_o the_o reader_n shall_v see_v therein_o as_o in_o a_o notable_a example_n to_o what_o shameful_a confession_n against_o themselves_o they_o be_v drive_v whensoever_o they_o take_v in_o hand_n to_o answer_v thorough_o to_o any_o learned_a catholic_a that_o have_v thorough_o write_v of_o any_o controversy_n and_o first_o i_o will_v show_v what_o he_o say_v of_o particular_a doctor_n and_o their_o particular_a time_n second_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o some_o of_o those_o time_n three_o of_o the_o glorious_a original_n that_o they_o refer_v it_o unto_o and_o last_o of_o the_o shameful_a original_n or_o head_n that_o he_o refer_v it_o unto_o and_o they_o also_o for_o it_o i_o what_o he_o say_v of_o particular_a doctor_n and_o their_o particular_a time_n for_o it_o and_o for_o the_o first_o to_o begin_v alow_o and_o so_o go_v upwarde_o 158._o pur._n 158._o bernard_n say_v he_o be_v a_o very_a late_a writer_n and_o therefore_o his_o authority_n with_o we_o be_v of_o small_a account_n in_o such_o case_n as_o he_o follow_v the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o time_n i_o take_v this_o in_o the_o way_n without_o our_o compass_n yet_o not_o without_o good_a cause_n that_o confer_v the_o time_n both_o within_o and_o without_o those_o first_o .600_o year_n thou_o may_v behold_v how_o he_o charge_v both_o a_o like_a well_o then_o to_o come_v now_o into_o our_o compass_n 166._o pur._n 166._o of_o s._n gregory_n thus_o he_o say_v when_o the_o proof_n come_v you_o leap_v but_o 600._o year_n from_o christ_n to_o gregory_n dialogue_n from_o which_o time_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o you_o may_v have_v great_a store_n of_o such_o stuff_n and_o not_o afore_o that_o time_n likewise_o theodoret_n be_v a_o .100_o year_n before_o s._n gregory_n 123._o pur._n 123._o and_o what_o of_o he_o and_o his_o time_n oecumenius_n and_o theodoretus_n say_v he_o be_v writer_n about_o that_o time_n when_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n have_v great_o prevail_v again_o before_o that_o time_n from_o the_o year_n .430_o up_o to_o .360_o much_o about_o one_o time_n these_o do_v flourish_v augustine_n table_n see_v m._n rishtons_n table_n ambrose_n hierome_n paulinus_n efrem_fw-la chrysostom_n basil_n and_o epiphanius_n and_o what_o of_o they_o and_o their_o time_n i_o have_v already_o rehearse_v what_o he_o say_v of_o s._n augustine_n upon_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la 315.317_o pur._n 315.317_o that_o he_o will_v hold_v the_o common_a opinion_n receive_v in_o his_o time_n and_o that_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o maintain_v the_o superstition_n that_o be_v not_o thorough_o confirm_v in_o his_o time_n 349._o 349._o as_o again_o if_o he_o have_v diligent_o examine_v the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o time_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o will_v not_o so_o blind_o have_v defend_v it_o as_o he_o do_v in_o that_o book_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la and_o else_o where_o and_o again_o in_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 326._o 326._o the_o superstitious_a error_n of_o that_o time_n allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a general_o and_o special_a remembrance_n of_o some_o in_o the_o prayer_n as_o of_o monica_n &_o patritius_fw-la the_o parent_n of_o s._n augustine_n 78._o 78._o again_o but_o augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o amend_v fire_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o m._n allen._n he_o do_v so_o in_o deed_n but_o augustine_n have_v no_o ground_n of_o that_o fire_n but_o in_o the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o time_n 161._o 161._o and_o again_o concern_v augustine_n that_o error_n of_o purgatory_n be_v somewhat_o rifely_a bud_v up_o in_o his_o time_n then_o of_o paulinus_n 322._o 322._o purgatory_n in_o those_o day_n be_v but_o even_o a_o breed_n and_o yet_o not_o thorough_o shape_v out_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o such_o other_o superstitious_a ceremony_n as_o be_v use_v about_o the_o depart_a how_o handsome_o he_o agree_v here_o with_o himself_o i_o dissemble_v till_o 46.47_o till_o contr._n 46.47_o the_o 11._o chapter_n now_o of_o ambrose_n and_o other_o ambrose_n in_o deed_n allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o it_o be_v a_o common_a error_n in_o his_o time_n 262._o pur._n 320_o 262._o again_o but_o of_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a also_o we_o will_v not_o strive_v but_o that_o they_o be_v use_v before_o the_o time_n of_o beda_n ephraim_n &_o ambrose_n moreover_o chrysostome_n and_o jeronym_n allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a 370._o 194._o 370._o then_o of_o epiphanius_n because_o the_o old_a liturgy_n use_v to_o make_v memory_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a in_o christ_n he_o expound_v it_o according_a to_o the_o error_n of_o his_o time_n that_o this_o memory_n be_v a_o prayer_n for_o the_o sinner_n for_o the_o just_a as_o patriarch_n prophet_n &c_n &c_n a_o signification_n that_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o christ_n a_o simple_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v remember_v but_o this_o shift_n he_o be_v drive_v unto_o so_o s._n augustins_n exposition_n of_o the_o like_a practice_n 4._o 279.280_o august_n euc_fw-la 110._o &_o ad_fw-la dull_a q._n 4._o say_v when_o the_o sacrifice_n either_o of_o the_o altar_n or_o of_o any_o kind_n of_o alm_n be_v offer_v for_o all_o man_n depart_v and_o baptize_v for_o the_o very_a good_a they_o be_v gratiarum_fw-la actiones_fw-la thanks_o give_v for_o they_o that_o be_v not_o very_o evil_a they_o be_v propitiationes_fw-la procurement_n of_o mercy_n for_o the_o very_a evil_a although_o they_o be_v no_o succour_n to_o they_o be_v dead_a yet_o they_o be_v certain_a comfort_n to_o the_o live_n he_o condemn_v it_o likewise_o in_o these_o word_n these_o matter_n stand_v all_o upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n that_o any_o prayer_n be_v available_a for_o the_o dead_a which_o when_o it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o show_v who_o take_v profit_n by_o they_o who_o not_o and_o so_o much_o of_o that_o time_n yea_o and_o of_o more_o than_o that_o time_n where_o he_o say_v before_o the_o time_n of_o efrem_fw-la and_o ambrose_n let_v we_o now_o ascend_v to_o constantinus_n magnus_n his_o time_n who_o be_v the_o first_o full_a christian_a emperor_n and_o begin_v his_o reign_n soon_o after_o the_o year_n .300_o 313._o pur._n 313._o in_o the_o burial_n of_o constantinus_n say_v he_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o prayer_n for_o his_o soul_n according_a to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o time_n which_o be_v man_n be_v enough_o for_o any_o christian_a man_n the_o time_n even_o of_o the_o first_o nicen_n council_n also_o and_o he_o bury_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n at_o constantinople_n long_o afore_o that_o again_o about_o the_o year_n .200_o flourish_v tertullian_n and_o origines_fw-la of_o that_o time_n so_o he_o say_v after_o a_o certain_a say_n of_o origen_n allege_v by_o this_o place_n it_o be_v manifest_a 249._o pu._n 249._o that_o origen_n who_o notwithstanding_o here_o a_o little_a after_o we_o shall_v have_v for_o the_o founder_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o east_n church_n in_o his_o time_n acknowledge_v no_o purgatory_n pain_n again_o this_o one_o testimony_n of_o origen_n shall_v testify_v what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v concern_v purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o his_o day_n pag._n pag._n to_o origen_n place_n i_o must_v answer_v in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n but_o now_o do_v you_o say_v on_o i_o wot_v well_o superstition_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v somewhat_o forwards_o in_o as_o much_o as_o there_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n appoint_v to_o be_v set_v up_o where_o by_o the_o way_n may_v be_v note_v his_o chapter_n for_o the_o xii_o chapter_n ignorance_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o malice_n that_o he_o know_v not_o all_o the_o old_a heresy_n to_o have_v spring_v of_o the_o greek_n whereupon_o also_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n those_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n against_o they_o and_o not_o of_o the_o latin_n but_o contrawise_o the_o roman_a church_n special_o to_o be_v commend_v of_o the_o father_n iii._o vinc._n lir._n cap._n ix_o ruf._n in_o expo_n symb_n num_fw-la iii._o for_o maintain_v always_o most_o earnest_o susceptae_fw-la semel_fw-la religionis_fw-la integritatem_fw-la the_o purity_n of_o
come_n be_v in_o hell_n that_o abraham_n bosom_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o in_o the_o low_a part_n that_o only_a martyr_n and_o perfect_a man_n be_v privilege_v of_o god_n to_o go_v to_o paradise_n that_o all_o small_a offence_n must_v be_v punish_v after_o this_o life_n where_o the_o prison_n be_v and_o the_o uttermost_a farthing_n to_o be_v pay_v then_o for_o prayer_n a_o little_a after_o and_o therefore_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v think_v but_o that_o the_o montaniste_n upon_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o opinion_n not_o content_a with_o the_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o the_o church_n then_o have_v by_o perverse_a emulation_n of_o the_o gentile_n heathenish_a oblation_n of_o thanks_o give_v also_o be_v heathenish_a and_o yet_o be_v but_o oblation_n of_o thanks_n give_v they_o add_v also_o prayer_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o they_o that_o be_v dead_a whereof_o tertullian_n make_v mention_v and_o that_o you_o may_v not_o doubt_v whether_o he_o charge_v we_o alone_o or_o also_o the_o ancient_a father_n with_o all_o this_o go_v to_o his_o word_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o same_o place_n in_o this_o chapter_n by_o i_o afore_o begin_v thus_o and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a corruption_n of_o those_o ancient_a time_n that_o if_o the_o gentile_n or_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n they_o will_v draw_v it_o into_o use_n etc._n etc._n after_o all_o this_o he_o conclude_v in_o the_o end_n say_v wherefore_o it_o be_v leave_v that_o montanus_n and_o his_o fellow_n be_v the_o first_o that_o teach_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v profitable_a and_o again_o therefore_o aërius_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o hold_v our_o opinion_n but_o montanus_n before_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o hold_v your_o opinion_n thorough_o marry_o you_o have_v play_v the_o man_n in_o deed_n and_o perform_v i_o trow_v every_o jot_n of_o the_o vaunt_a promise_n that_o you_o make_v a_o little_a before_o when_o you_o say_v 410._o pur._n 410._o that_o we_o can_v not_o read_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v hear_v of_o purgatory_n among_o the_o pagan_n carpocratian_o heracleonite_n and_o montaniste_n of_o who_o heresy_n and_o pestilent_a practice_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n that_o be_v as_o your_o own_o mouth_n have_v here_o confess_v the_o church_n at_o the_o far_a by_o s._n augustine_n time_n have_v patch_v up_o her_o purgatory_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o by_z and_o by_o i_o shall_v declare_v thus_o i_o have_v show_v how_o he_o note_v the_o true_a church_n for_o so_o many_o particular_a error_n of_o we_o as_o about_o ceremony_n about_o the_o cross_n about_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n about_o fastingdaye_n and_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n about_o sole_a life_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o vow_v of_o virginity_n about_o merit_n of_o the_o same_o &_o of_o abstinence_n about_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n about_o purgatory_n and_o relief_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o much_o addict_v thereunto_o that_o they_o count_v the_o contrary_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n vj._n as_o touch_v the_o pope_n primacy_n to_o all_o these_o error_n i_o will_v yet_o add_v one_o more_o which_o he_o make_v so_o much_o of_o that_o he_o ascribe_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o church_n by_o he_o imagine_v to_o the_o same_o which_o for_o all_o that_o i_o will_v here_o show_v to_o be_v impute_v by_o he_o also_o to_o the_o true_a church_n that_o in_o the_o second_o chapter_n we_o hear_v he_o to_o confess_v it_o consist_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o pope_n superiority_n to_o begin_v therefore_o with_o he_o a_o high_a &_o come_v downward_o along_o the_o true_a church_n until_o it_o 36._o and_o yet_o no_o man_n then_o in_o the_o world_n that_o go_v out_o from_o the_o pope_n ar._n 47._o ar._n 36._o vanish_v quite_o away_o forsooth_o upon_o a_o sudden_a by_o force_n of_o a_o sum_n of_o money_n give_v &_o take_v of_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o and_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n thus_o he_o have_v first_o of_o pope_n victor_n victor_n go_v about_o to_o usurp_v authority_n over_o other_o church_n and_o again_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 200._o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o his_o authority_n in_o excommunicate_v of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n afterward_o he_o note_v cornelius_n and_o stephanus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o like_a in_o s._n cyprian_n time_n for_o meddle_v with_o africa_n asia_n and_o spain_n furthermore_o anastasius_n innocentius_n zozimus_n bonifacius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n all_o in_o a_o row_n challenge_v prerogative_n over_o the_o bishop_n in_o aphrica_fw-la by_o forge_v of_o a_o false_a canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o again_o celestinus_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n deal_v hardly_o with_o the_o novatians_n and_o there_o in_o the_o end_n by_o these_o example_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v or_o as_o he_o speak_v there_o a_o little_a before_o the_o pope_n authority_n first_o begin_v to_o advance_v itself_o in_o victor_n cornelius_n stephanus_n anastatius_fw-la innocentius_n zozimus_n bonifacius_n and_o caelestinus_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n of_o some_o of_o they_o again_o 255._o pur._n 255._o the_o nicen_n council_n the_o first_o and_o the_o best_a be_v corrupt_v with_o counterfect_v canon_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o maintain_v their_o usurp_a authority_n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n we_o shall_v hear_v he_o call_v the_o church_n in_o innocentius_n his_o time_n 148._o pur._n 148._o the_o company_n which_o have_v the_o pope_n for_o their_o head_n item_n the_o pope_n and_o all_o they_o that_o take_v his_o part_n final_o to_o come_v to_o s._n gregory_n time_n where_o d._n allen_n say_v thus_o so_o if_o thou_o will_v know_v whether_o that_o place_n that_o our_o adversary_n impudent_o do_v allege_v out_o of_o gregory_n the_o great_a against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 305.310.194_o pur._n 305.310.194_o be_v in_o deed_n write_v for_o their_o seditious_a purpose_n behold_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o same_o father_n and_o thou_o shall_v find_v himself_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n when_o he_o write_v it_o in_o all_o province_n christian_v throughout_o the_o world_n both_o by_o excommunication_n of_o bishop_n that_o govern_v not_o well_o by_o often_o citation_n of_o person_n in_o extreme_a province_n by_o many_o appeal_v make_v unto_o he_o by_o continual_a legacy_n to_o other_o nation_n send_v either_o to_o convert_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n or_o to_o govern_v they_o in_o their_o doubtful_a affair_n and_o by_o all_o other_o exercise_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n he_o in_o his_o answer_n be_v drive_v to_o say_v to_o this_o the_o practice_n of_o gregory_n although_o it_o be_v much_o more_o modest_a then_o of_o his_o successor_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v excuse_v but_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o doctrine_n whereby_o he_o reprove_v a_o other_o to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o that_o he_o be_v not_o altogether_o clear_v himself_o as_o though_o either_o he_o or_o any_o his_o successor_n use_v the_o stile_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o not_o all_o the_o clean_a contrary_n seruus_fw-la seruorum_fw-la dei_fw-la servant_n to_o god_n servant_n all_o this_o i_o have_v so_o copious_o allege_v out_o of_o he_o though_o not_o so_o copious_o as_o i_o may_v for_o these_o three_o purpose_n first_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v clear_o see_v that_o in_o so_o many_o point_n he_o confess_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n protestants_n to_o dissent_v from_o they_o who_o he_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n second_o that_o again_o he_o confess_v we_o in_o the_o same_o point_n to_o agree_v with_o the_o same_o three_o therefore_o and_o especial_o that_o he_o have_v not_o for_o these_o point_n and_o so_o neither_o for_o such_o as_o depend_v of_o these_o just_a cause_n to_o deny_v we_o the_o true_a church_n church_n note_v well_o whosoever_o seek_v the_o church_n which_o he_o so_o grant_v to_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o point_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n and_o as_o earnest_o or_o if_o he_o will_v even_o as_o obstinate_o as_o we_o do_v now_o condemn_v their_o adversary_n therein_o of_o heresy_n and_o so_o consequent_o of_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a church_n howsoever_o themselves_o rather_o be_v charge_v by_o he_o to_o have_v receive_v of_o old_a heretic_n their_o opinion_n but_o that_o contrariwyse_o we_o be_v for_o so_o much_o to_o be_v more_o excuse_v than_o they_o as_o we_o
and_o the_o same_o answer_n take_v you_o to_o that_o you_o object_n to_o we_o in_o like_a sort_n again_o in_o one_o of_o the_o place_n above_o note_a say_v of_o the_o colliridianes_n you_o learn_v to_o make_v image_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o worship_v they_o and_o she_o with_o offer_v of_o candle_n etc._n etc._n as_o they_o do_v of_o cake_n etc._n etc._n epiph._n li._n 3._o haer._n 79._o these_o collyridianes_n heresy_n be_v this_o that_o certain_a woman_n at_o a_o certain_a solemn_a time_n of_o the_o year_n certain_a day_n together_o do_v deck_v a_o square_a table_n and_o upon_o it_o offerebant_fw-la panem_fw-la etc._n etc._n they_o do_v offer_v a_o cake_n in_o the_o name_n of_o mary_n as_o if_o mary_n be_v either_o a_o god_n or_o a_o priest_n and_o woman_n her_o minister_n to_o sacrifice_v for_o she_o so_o say_v epiphanius_n confute_v they_o at_o large_a and_o show_v that_o woman_n can_v never_o sacrifice_v and_o that_o none_o but_o one_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v as_o god_n though_o our_o lady_n be_v most_o honourable_a sit_v in_o honore_fw-la maria_fw-la pater_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la adoretur_fw-la revera_fw-la sanctum_fw-la erat_fw-la corpus_fw-la mariae_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la deus_fw-la my_o purpose_n be_v here_o but_o to_o answer_v else_o if_o any_o man_n desire_v testimony_n for_o our_o image_n &_o for_o our_o use_n above_o they_o he_o may_v read_v d._n saunders_n book_n and_o many_o other_o of_o that_o matter_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o here_o that_o fulke_n himself_o have_v acknowledge_v pag._n supra_fw-la ca._n 3._o pag._n tertullian_n to_o hearse_n it_o as_o a_o thing_n then_o undoubted_a that_o our_o cross_n of_o ourselves_o which_o be_v a_o make_n of_o imagesa_n and_o a_o great_a religion_n to_o the_o same_o come_v unto_o we_o from_o the_o apostle_n by_o tradition_n and_o because_o we_o be_v thus_o come_v from_o image_n to_o the_o saint_n let_v we_o hear_v what_o more_o you_o have_v against_o the_o father_n and_o we_o in_o that_o behalf_n ij_o of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n you_o remember_v since_o the_o third_o chapter_n that_o by_o your_o own_o report_n the_o true_a church_n count_v vigilantius_n a_o heretic_n for_o deny_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n of_o which_o and_o of_o their_o image_n again_o pag_n supra_fw-la pag_n the_o case_n be_v all_o one_o but_o now_o you_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n opinion_n rather_o be_v heresy_n for_o thus_o you_o say_v to_o we_o for_o that_o matter_n 21._o ar._n 21._o of_o the_o ossenes_n you_o receive_v the_o superstition_n of_o relic_n for_o they_o use_v to_o take_v the_o spittle_n and_o other_o filth_n from_o the_o body_n of_o marthys_n and_o marthana_n which_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o elxai_n that_o be_v ergo_fw-la in_o peregrinatione_fw-la religion_n ergo_fw-la great_a saint_n with_o they_o and_o use_v they_o to_o cure_v disease_n as_o erasmus_n witness_v at_o caunterbury_n be_v keep_v the_o clout_n that_o thomas_n becket_n do_v occupy_v to_o wipe_v of_o his_o sweat_n &_o to_o blow_v his_o nose_n on_o which_o be_v kiss_v as_o holy_a relic_n and_o think_v also_o to_o be_v wholesome_a for_o sick_a folk_n epiph._n li._n 1._o tom._n 1._o haer._n 19_o this_o again_o make_v as_o much_o against_o our_o relic_n as_o the_o valentinian_o cross_n against_o our_o cross_n and_o the_o carpocratian_o image_n against_o our_o image_n epiphanius_n tell_v that_o this_o elxai_fw-mi be_v in_o traianus_n time_n a_o great_a master_n of_o that_o sect_n and_o that_o marthys_n his_o kinswoman_n and_o marthana_n his_o sister_n in_o the_o ossenes_n country_n be_v adore_v in_o their_o life_n time_n as_o go_n pro_fw-la dijs_fw-la adorabantur_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o say_v elxai_n his_o stock_n quarum_fw-la etiam_fw-la sputa_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o woman_n spittle_n also_o and_o other_o filthe_n of_o their_o body_n the_o foresay_a heretic_n in_o that_o country_n take_v to_o they_o in_o auxilium_fw-la videlicet_fw-la morborum_fw-la as_o to_o cure_v disease_n nihil_fw-la tamen_fw-la efficiebant_fw-la but_o yet_o without_o any_o effect_n at_o all_o as_o for_o erasmus_n he_o know_v now_o if_o he_o do_v not_o afore_o what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v religion_n in_o derision_n and_o you_o may_v remember_v from_o who_o body_n be_v carry_v to_o the_o sick_a sudaria_fw-la vel_fw-la semicinctia_n 19_o act._n 19_o and_o their_o disease_n and_o evil_a spirit_n go_v away_o therewith_o open_v your_o mouth_n also_o against_o those_o napkin_n and_o call_v they_o likewise_o clout_n for_o sweat_n and_o for_o the_o nose_n or_o rather_o do_v you_o apply_v they_o with_o good_a counsel_n to_o your_o disease_n also_o gentiles_n chris_n to._n ●_o de_fw-fr vita_fw-la bab_n contra_fw-la gentiles_n as_o s._n chrysostome_n apply_v they_o and_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o martyr_n babylas_n together_o unto_o the_o pagan_n declare_v thereby_o most_o excellent_o that_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v god_n see_v he_o can_v geve_v such_o pass_a power_n to_o the_o clothes_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o servant_n 22._o ar._n 22._o you_o say_v moreover_o to_o we_o of_o the_o cayanes_n you_o learn_v to_o call_v upon_o angel_n epiph._n li._n 1._o to._n 3._o here_o 38._o those_o heretic_n worship_v cain_n judas_n &_o such_o like_a &_o little_o esteem_v abel_n &_o such_o other_o yea_o and_o some_o of_o they_o also_o christ_n himself_o they_o say_v also_o that_o none_o can_v be_v save_v until_o they_o have_v go_v through_o all_o sin_n and_o therefore_o commit_v all_o abomination_n &_o refer_v they_o to_o this_o angel_n &_o that_o angel_n with_o this_o invocation_n o_o tu_fw-la angelo_n utor_fw-la tuo_fw-la opere_fw-la o_fw-la tu_fw-la potestas_fw-la ago_o tuam_fw-la actionem_fw-la o_o thou_o such_o a_o angel_n i_o work_v now_o thy_o work_n o_o thou_o such_o a_o power_n i_o now_o do_v thy_o action_n and_o this_o with_o they_o be_v call_v perfecta_fw-la cognitio_fw-la 27._o epip_n haer._n 26._o &_o 21._o &_o 27._o even_o doctorship_n itself_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o with_o the_o simoniani_n gnostici_fw-la and_o carpocratite_n who_o in_o their_o beastliness_n direct_v the_o like_o most_o horrible_a invocation_n to_o god_n himself_o who_o they_o term_v patrem_fw-la universorum_fw-la which_o be_v as_o substantial_a a_o argument_n against_o all_o invocation_n of_o god_n as_o the_o other_o be_v against_o the_o invocation_n of_o angel_n simon_n magus_n be_v you_o know_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n he_o invent_v many_o heaven_n and_o many_o name_n of_o angel_n place_v these_o in_o this_o heaven_n and_o those_o in_o that_o heaven_n with_o sundry_a sacrifice_n for_o man_n to_o offer_v by_o they_o that_o they_o may_v so_o be_v bring_v at_o length_n to_o the_o father_n of_o all_o and_o that_o none_o may_v otherwise_o be_v save_v 21._o epip_n haer._n 21._o except_o he_o learn_v hunc_fw-la mysticum_fw-la ductum_fw-la this_o mystical_a passage_n and_o how_o to_o offer_v such_o sacrifice_n by_o those_o angel_n to_o the_o father_n of_o all_o against_o these_o fable_n it_o be_v that_o s._n paul_n instruct_v the_o ephesian_n and_o colossian_n in_o those_o two_o epistle_n so_o like_a in_o word_n also_o 2._o colos_n 2._o that_o no_o man_n deceyve_v they_o with_o those_o invocation_n of_o angel_n religion_n non_fw-la tenens_fw-la caput_fw-la not_o hold_v the_o head_n jesus_n christ_n but_o otherwise_o hold_v he_o for_o the_o head_n that_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o father_n by_o the_o holy_a angel_n as_o by_o christ_n minister_n 1._o hebr._n 1._o who_o see_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n in_o infinite_a place_n and_o so_o do_v the_o church_n make_v all_o her_o petition_n all_o through_o christ_n our_o lord_n per_fw-la christum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la to_o none_o she_o commend_v she_o otherwise_o neither_o in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n so_o do_v we_o all_o pray_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v pray_v for_o one_o of_o another_o 3_o apoc._n 1_o apo._n 4._o v._n 5_o &_o 5._o ver_fw-la 6._o with_o heb._n 1_o for_o 14._o apo._n 1._o ver_fw-la 16.20_o heb._n 3._o for_o 1._o apo._n 19.22_o apoc._n 3_o and_o so_o pray_v s._n john_n say_v grace_n and_o peace_n to_o you_o from_o god_n the_o trinity_n and_o from_o the_o seven_o spirit_n that_o be_v before_o his_o throne_n and_o from_o jesus_n christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n put_v christ_n in_o the_o last_o place_n that_o he_o may_v so_o more_o handsome_o add_v the_o rest_n which_o he_o have_v to_o say_v there_o of_o he_o and_o this_o in_o that_o very_a book_n out_o of_o which_o the_o protestant_n abuse_v two_o place_n against_o the_o worship_v of_o angel_n forget_v also_o where_o in_o the_o same_o book_n god_n do_v promise_n to_o make_v the_o obstinate_a jew_n to_o come_v and_o to_o adore_v before_o the_o foot_n of_o one_o angel_n et_fw-fr
antiquary_n say_v against_o antiquity_n of_o who_o also_o for_o so_o say_v pamelius_n a_o far_o better_a antiquary_n than_o he_o say_v thus_o quod_fw-la quàm_fw-la sinistrè_n detorqueat_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la ad_fw-la dies_fw-la natalitio_n ethnicorum_fw-la nemo_fw-la ignorare_fw-la debet_fw-la etc._n etc._n rhenanus_fw-la turn_v this_o place_n of_o tertullian_n from_o the_o right_a meaning_n very_o untoward_o to_o the_o byrthdaye_n of_o the_o gentile_n howbeit_o in_o my_o judgement_n rhenanus_fw-la there_o may_v be_v better_o construe_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o oblation_n of_o christian_n be_v ever_o for_o their_o own_o birthdaye_n but_o that_o upon_o the_o byrthdaye_n of_o the_o martyr_n which_o the_o church_n do_v celebrate_v with_o the_o solemn_a oblation_n of_o the_o altar_n many_o of_o the_o people_n keep_v drunken_a feast_n as_o the_o gentile_n do_v every_o one_o upon_o his_o proper_a byrthday_n which_o drunken_a utas_z the_o church_n be_v fain_o to_o tolerate_v for_o a_o time_n but_o afterward_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o other_o follow_v do_v forbid_v it_o and_o change_v it_o into_o alm_n if_o you_o can_v show_v those_o canon_n we_o may_v be_v more_o certain_a of_o his_o meaning_n plain_n it_o be_v that_o he_o speak_v very_o confuse_o of_o birthdaye_n and_o plain_a again_o it_o be_v that_o such_o riot_v be_v use_v of_o some_o in_o paulinus_n who_o he_o there_o cit_v and_o s._n augustine_n time_n long_o after_o the_o nicene_n council_n ●_o see_v rhen●_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d tert._n add_v m●tyres_n num_fw-la ●_o and_o again_o most_o sure_a it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n always_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v use_v and_o no_o council_n ever_o do_v forbid_v the_o keep_v of_o the_o martyr_n birthday_n with_o oblation_n of_o the_o altar_n final_o rhenanus_fw-la in_o those_o annotation_n be_v full_a of_o escape_n &_o oversighte_n and_o note_v according_o by_o the_o learned_a of_o this_o time_n very_o much_o though_o no_o ill_a meaning_n beeres_n to_o carry_v home_o the_o corpse_n one_o error_n more_o you_o charge_v we_o withal_o about_o the_o dead_a touch_v their_o body_n as_o the_o former_a be_v touch_v their_o soul_n 22._o ar._n 22._o george_n the_o arian_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n invent_v beres_n to_o carry_v dead_a corpse_n charge_v all_o man_n to_o use_v they_o for_o his_o own_o advantage_n as_o do_v you_o papist_n your_o bear_v clothes_n and_o other_o toy_n for_o funeral_n pomp_n epiph._n li._n 3._o tom_n 1._o haer_fw-mi 76._o epiphanius_n do_v not_o say_v that_o george_n invent_v beres_n but_o that_o he_o devise_v to_o have_v they_o in_o a_o certain_a number_n his_o word_n be_v these_o to_o show_v the_o miserable_a covetousness_n of_o that_o man_n no_o trade_n almost_o so_o base_a no_o thing_n so_o mean_a whereof_o he_o seek_v not_o gain_v for_o so_o much_o as_o beres_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o devise_v to_o make_v the_o number_n of_o they_o certain_a &_o without_o those_o that_o he_o ordain_v no_o corpse_n of_o the_o dead_a special_o of_o stranger_n be_v bury_v non_fw-la propter_fw-la hospitalitatem_fw-la not_o for_o any_o charity_n towards_o stranger_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v for_o lucre_n sake_n for_o if_o any_o bury_v a_o corpse_n otherwise_o he_o come_v in_o danger_n now_o if_o this_o or_o the_o like_a miserablenes_n be_v in_o any_o bishop_n of_o we_o or_o you_o either_o to_o rack_n his_o people_n or_o to_o usurp_v the_o live_n of_o his_o clergy_n what_o be_v that_o against_o béere_n or_o bear_v clothes_n or_o comely_a pomp_n of_o funeral_n or_o against_o the_o church_n that_o use_v they_o special_o yourself_o also_o commend_v in_o your_o geneva_n church_n 22●_n pur._n 22●_n such_o ceremony_n as_o be_v convenient_a for_o the_o reverend_a lay_v up_o of_o the_o corpse_n unless_o you_o think_v it_o much_o for_o the_o church_n to_o reap_v their_o carnalia_fw-la to_o who_o she_o sow_v spiritualia_fw-la or_o will_v provide_v for_o yourself_o a_o beer_n &_o bear_v clothes_n against_o you_o shall_v be_v bury_v 9_o 1._o cor._n 9_o rather_o than_o to_o pay_v the_o common_a duty_n to_o your_o parish_n church_n thus_o have_v i_o follow_v you_o through_o all_o the_o error_n common_a to_o we_o with_o the_o ancient_a true_a church_n take_v as_o you_o say_v of_o the_o gentile_n or_o of_o heretic_n but_o as_o i_o have_v plain_o show_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o so_o nor_o so_o what_o more_o you_o have_v of_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o eight_o and_o nine_o chapter_n where_o i_o have_v promise_v to_o answer_v all_o your_o testimony_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o other_o about_o any_o matter_n to_o day_n in_o controversy_n and_o thither_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n for_o the_o last_o error_n also_o about_o the_o pope_n superiority_n have_v nothing_o here_o to_o be_v answer_v because_o though_o you_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v that_o error_n also_o yet_o you_o do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o take_v it_o of_o the_o gentile_n or_o of_o any_o heretic_n the_o second_o part_n concern_v the_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v cap._n 4._o to_o the_o father_n and_o not_o to_o us._n i_o touch_v the_o heresy_n which_o be_v in_o their_o time_n now_o follow_v the_o second_o sort_n of_o the_o church_n error_n that_o be_v those_o error_n which_o you_o lay_v to_o the_o ancient_a true_a church_n and_o not_o to_o we_o also_o to_o answer_v you_o thereunto_o likewise_o and_o that_o very_o brief_o what_o a_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o you_o charge_v the_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n with_o the_o heresy_n that_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o same_o church_n again_o in_o the_o three_o arian_n emperor_n time_n with_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v charge_v the_o same_o church_n now_o that_o be_v our_o roman_a church_n with_o your_o heresy_n for_o you_o say_v 45.46_o ar._n 15_o 35._o dem._n 45.46_o not_o only_a pope_n liberius_n of_o who_o i_o must_v answer_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n but_o the_o true_a church_n be_v great_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n and_o you_o bring_v in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o declare_v that_o even_o than_o the_o church_n decay_v count_v it_o also_o all_o one_o to_o err_v and_o to_o decay_v and_o yet_o of_o your_o own_o imagine_a church_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n bonifacius_n the_o three_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n you_o can_v say_v thus_o where_o she_o have_v not_o decay_v 31._o ar._n 16.15_o infra_fw-la ca._n 11_o cont_n 31._o but_o be_v always_o preserve_v d._n allen_n notwithstanding_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n always_o stand_v still_o and_o steadfast_a while_o all_o other_o congregation_n as_o arrian_n etc._n etc._n have_v decay_v must_v be_v control_v and_o tell_v of_o the_o persecution_n until_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n and_o of_o great_a detriment_n under_o julianus_n the_o apostata_fw-la and_o of_o a_o great_a eclipse_n under_o the_o barbarous_a goth_n etc._n etc._n beside_o the_o foresay_a infection_n under_o the_o three_o arrian_n emperor_n if_o amid_o those_o persecution_n and_o heresy_n it_o have_v not_o be_v always_o preserve_v than_o you_o may_v have_v say_v that_o it_o have_v decay_v you_o show_v well_o that_o hell_n gate_n have_v fight_v sore_o against_o it_o but_o you_o show_v not_o that_o they_o have_v at_o any_o time_n prevail_v yea_o the_o truth_n be_v &_o in_o my_o book_n of_o demand_n in_o the_o second_o demand_n you_o have_v it_o that_o the_o church_n always_o prevail_v according_a to_o christ_n promise_n and_o prediction_n and_o that_o so_o clear_o and_o so_o glorious_o that_o both_o the_o persecute_v roman_a emperor_n give_v over_o at_o length_n their_o obstinacy_n and_o vain_a kick_v against_o the_o prick_n submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o very_a same_o church_n which_o afore_o they_o persecute_v yea_o moreover_o continue_a christian_n even_o to_o this_o day_n and_o also_o all_o heresy_n arrian_n and_o other_o vanish_v quite_o away_o neither_o the_o persecution_n be_v ought_v else_o in_o effect_n but_o a_o occasion_n of_o innumerable_a martyr_n the_o commodity_n of_o who_o we_o hear_v a_o little_a 7._o supra_fw-la 55._o greg._n ●ral_a li._n 9_o 7._o before_o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n nor_o again_o the_o heresy_n ought_v else_o but_o a_o occasion_n of_o so_o many_o most_o worthy_a doctor_n both_o greek_a &_o latin_a and_o their_o most_o excellent_a write_n at_o which_o to_o this_o day_n all_o the_o late_a heretic_n do_v quake_v and_o tremble_v by_o which_o to_o this_o day_n the_o catholic_a church_n always_o conquer_v and_o triumph_v ij_o touch_v the_o error_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n irenee_n and_o s._n justinus_n which_o doctor_n if_o any_o of_o they_o have_v err_v in_o some_o thing_n or_o other_o yet_o this_o be_v notable_a that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o their_o error_n or_o
any_o one_o error_n of_o they_o they_o be_v of_o your_o side_n the_o luciferian_o and_o the_o donatist_n have_v for_o they_o the_o error_n of_o s._n cyprian_a and_o of_o his_o council_n in_o africa_n and_o therewith_o they_o urge_v the_o catholic_n very_o sore_a as_o we_o see_v in_o s._n hierome_n and_o in_o s._n augustine_n but_o the_o protestant_n i_o say_v have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o error_n of_o any_o father_n to_o urge_v we_o withal_o and_o to_o charge_v the_o church_n with_o the_o error_n of_o those_o father_n as_o you_o do_v what_o a_o thing_n again_o be_v that_o as_o if_o you_o will_v charge_v pope_n stephanus_n and_o the_o other_o catholic_n that_o err_v not_o with_o the_o foresay_a error_n of_o s._n cyprian_n for_o so_o you_o charge_v the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o papias_n justinus_n martyr_n and_o ireneus_fw-la with_o their_o error_n to_o show_v that_o it_o decay_v at_o least_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o at_o leastwise_o you_o will_v say_v some_o father_n have_v err_v in_o some_o thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o father_n may_v err_v why_o sir_n do_v we_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o every_o father_n deceive_v not_o the_o people_n 383.432_o pu●_n 383.432_o make_v not_o as_o though_o you_o have_v infringe_v the_o father_n authority_n when_o you_o have_v show_v that_o a_o father_n have_v err_v that_o be_v not_o the_o point_n between_o we_o therein_o we_o agree_v together_o but_o this_o it_o be_v that_o we_o charge_v you_o with_o that_o you_o resist_v their_o full_a and_o whole_a consent_n for_o to_o these_o we_o ascribe_v infallible_a truth_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n without_o any_o limitation_n at_o all_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o peter_n and_o his_o chair_n because_o it_o be_v the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o therefore_o again_o to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o general_n counsel_n confirm_v by_o peter_n successor_n because_o these_o two_o employ_v the_o whole_a church_n yea_o also_o to_o provincial_a counsel_n confirm_v by_o the_o same_o chair_n and_o therefore_o any_o one_o of_o these_o we_o say_v can_v not_o be_v against_o any_o other_o of_o these_o no_o more_o then_o canonical_a scripture_n can_v be_v against_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o again_o if_o against_o these_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o there_o be_v as_o it_o may_v be_v any_o doctor_n or_o doctor_n any_o provincial_a council_n or_o any_o general_n council_n it_o be_v therein_o with_o we_o of_o no_o authority_n as_o you_o see_v in_o saint_n cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n of_o africa_n but_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o plain_o against_o these_o the_o particular_a doctor_n and_o council_n be_v with_o we_o of_o great_a authority_n though_o some_o more_o than_o some_o according_a to_o the_o person_n number_n question_n and_o other_o circumstance_n and_o hereupon_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v not_o hasty_a as_o you_o be_v to_o charge_v they_o with_o error_n when_o they_o do_v not_o err_v nor_o also_o to_o reveal_v and_o to_o amplify_v their_o error_n when_o they_o do_v err_v but_o rather_o when_o you_o reveal_v they_o and_o amplify_v they_o to_o cover_v they_o and_o make_v the_o least_o of_o they_o 39.40_o iren._n li._n 2._o cap._n 39.40_o so_o far_o as_o truth_n will_v permit_v us._n now_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o see_v the_o gnostici_n say_v that_o christ_n begin_v to_o preach_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o thirty_o year_n and_o preach_v but_o one_o year_n and_o then_o suffer_v in_o the_o twelve_o month_n of_o the_o same_o year_n be_v so_o of_o the_o age_n of_o thirty_o year_n to_o signify_v their_o thirty_o aeones_n ireneus_fw-la have_v occasion_n hereby_o to_o rack_n the_o age_n of_o christ_n not_o only_o above_o thirty_o year_n but_o also_o toward_o .50_o year_n be_v able_a as_o he_o think_v to_o yield_v a_o good_a reason_n against_o their_o fabulous_a reason_n why_o christ_n will_v be_v so_o old_a which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o infante_n with_o infant_n and_o so_o forth_o till_o he_o be_v at_o length_n also_o a_o old_a man_n with_o old_a man_n as_o the_o sanctification_n and_o example_n of_o all_o age_n special_o because_o he_o think_v he_o have_v both_o the_o 8_o joan._n 8_o gospel_n and_o also_o tradition_n of_o his_o side_n have_v hear_v of_o saint_n johns_n scholar_n in_o asia_n that_o seniorem_fw-la aetatem_fw-la habens_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la docebat_fw-la our_o lord_n be_v of_o old_a age_n when_o he_o preach_v and_o think_v by_o old_a age_n they_o must_v have_v mean_v above_o .40_o towards_o .50_o howbeit_o the_o matter_n of_o itself_o be_v not_o great_a and_o then_o also_o it_o be_v much_o less_o again_o the_o gnostici_n reject_v the_o god_n creator_n withal_o his_o creation_n fine_a iren._n li._n ●…_n in_o fine_a as_o another_o god_n from_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n therefore_o be_v ireneus_fw-la glad_v if_o he_o can_v show_v that_o christ_n not_o only_o take_v his_o own_o flesh_n and_o make_v his_o own_o sacrament_n of_o the_o creator_n creature_n and_o raise_v from_o death_n his_o say_a own_o flesh_n and_o so_o will_v raise_v our_o flesh_n likewise_o but_o also_o that_o he_o will_v after_o our_o resurrection_n dwell_v here_o in_o the_o creator_n earth_n with_o we_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n 2●…_n apoc._n 2●…_n so_o well_o he_o like_v the_o creator_n and_o his_o creature_n special_o because_o he_o think_v the_o apocalypse_n of_o saint_n john_n to_o be_v on_o his_o side_n herein_o and_o have_v in_o deed_n on_o his_o side_n papias_n who_o either_o be_v scholar_n to_o saint_n john_n or_o rather_o scholar_n to_o his_o scholar_n v_o euseb_n li._n 3._o ca._n v_o but_o homo_fw-la ingenij_fw-la pertenuis_fw-la a_o man_n of_o a_o very_a slender_a wit_n as_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o gather_v of_o his_o write_n say_v eusebeus_n and_o therefore_o not_o altogether_o such_o a_o one_o as_o saint_n paul_n require_v ●…_n 2._o tim._n ●…_n speak_v of_o the_o scholar_n of_o his_o scholar_n timothy_n qui_fw-la idonei_fw-la erunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n such_o as_o shall_v be_v meet_a to_o teach_v other_o also_o because_o himself_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o understand_v apostolicas_fw-la interpretationes_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n exposition_n be_v make_v in_o mystical_a figure_n and_o dark_a parable_n howbeit_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o then_o so_o great_a until_o 233_o until_o eus_n li●…_n 7._o ca._n 19_o au._n de_fw-fr 〈…〉_o li._n 20._o ca●…_n 〈…〉_o see_v bib_n …_o cta_fw-la sixth_o se._n li._n 5._o not_o 233_o afterward_o the_o church_n condemn_v peradventure_o that_o opinion_n in_o the_o heretic_n call_v chiliastae_n or_o millenarij_fw-la who_o according_a to_o 〈…〉_o to_o au._n 〈…〉_o cerinthus_n the_o heretic_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n increase_v the_o error_n with_o 233_o with_o eus_n 〈◊〉_d 7._o ca._n 19_o au._n de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d li._n 20._o ca●_n 〈◊〉_d see_v bib_n …_o cta_fw-la sixth_o se._n li._n 5._o not_o 233_o intolerable_a augmentation_n of_o belly_n cheer_n and_o fleshe_o lust_n which_o they_o expect_v in_o those_o thousand_o year_n as_o the_o turk_n and_o jew_n do_v dionysius_n alexandrinus_n write_v against_o nepos_n for_o it_o as_o natum_fw-la as_o eus_n s●…_n hic_fw-la c_o …_o in_o dio_fw-mi …_o alex._n 〈◊〉_d per_fw-la esa_fw-la 18._o in_o p_o …_o justi_fw-la i●…_n pol._n ad_fw-la natum_fw-la eusebius_n have_v record_v and_o also_o saint_n hierome_n de_fw-fr viris_fw-la illust_n and_o therefore_o it_o seem_v some_o word_n to_o be_v lack_v in_o another_o place_n of_o he_o where_o now_o we_o read_v as_o though_o it_o be_v ireneus_fw-la against_o who_o dionysius_n write_v no_o more_o be_v it_o at_o that_o time_n a_o great_a matter_n for_o g_o justinus_n martyr_n to_o be_v overséene_a in_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o angel_n both_o because_o his_o whole_a drift_n there_o be_v notwithstanding_o this_o by_o word_n very_o true_a that_o one_o god_n make_v all_o but_o some_o of_o his_o angel_n do_v fall_v from_o he_o &_o usurp_v a_o tyranny_n over_o man_n till_o christ_n come_v to_o deliver_v we_o and_o therefore_o the_o same_o wicked_a angel_n do_v stir_v up_o their_o gentile_n now_o against_o the_o christian_n be_v man_n most_o innocent_a and_o the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o also_o because_o that_o place_n gen._n 6._o be_v the_o first_o place_n in_o the_o scripture_n where_o express_a mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o angel_n and_o of_o their_o sin_n for_o that_o place_n gene._n 3._o the_o serpent_n be_v crafty_a than_o any_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n how_o parabalicall_a it_o be_v but_o gen._n 6._o the_o septuaginta_fw-la in_o their_o authentical_a translation_n have_v then_o as_o s._n augustine_n witness_v
of_o god_n if_o you_o can_v you_o shall_v not_o compel_v we_o to_o tell_v you_o where_o when_o or_o how_o your_o heresy_n come_v in_o it_o chauf_v he_o that_o we_o show_v so_o plain_a a_o evidence_n against_o his_o side_n &_o he_o can_v not_o show_v the_o like_a against_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o fly_v again_o to_o his_o cold_a exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n as_o though_o to_o justify_v our_o doctrine_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o so_o sensible_o be_v not_o enough_o but_o most_o ridiculous_a of_o all_o it_o be_v to_o see_v he_o come_v in_o with_o this_o exception_n where_o d._n allen_n allege_v tertullian_n for_o this_o rule_n 42_o pur._n 4_o ar._n 42_o that_o doctrine_n say_v fulke_n which_o be_v first_o agreeable_a to_o tertullia_n rule_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o that_o which_o be_v late_a be_v false_a but_o how_o shall_v the_o first_o doctrine_n be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n be_v teach_v praesc_fw-la tert._n 〈…〉_o praesc_fw-la tertullian_n there_o have_v a_o other_o rule_n against_o such_o heresy_n as_o presume_a inserere_fw-la se_fw-la aetati_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la to_o say_v that_o their_o founder_n live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o this_o our_o rule_n he_o give_v against_o all_o such_o as_o rise_v any_o time_n after_o as_o aerius_n luther_n caluin_n etc._n etc._n bid_v we_o then_o to_o consider_v what_o be_v teach_v &_o beléeve_v immediate_o before_o they_o arise_v for_o the_o undoubted_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o their_o late_a doctrine_n be_v falsehood_n now_o then_o how_o ridiculous_a be_v it_o for_o fulke_n to_o run_v from_o tertullia_n meaning_n &_o yet_o to_o pretend_v that_o he_o agree_v to_o tertullia_n rule_n the_o same_o rule_n with_o a_o amplification_n also_o dem._n antiq_fw-la …_o dem._n &_o in_o the_o same_o meaning_n do_v likewise_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n geve_v to_o wit_n if_o any_o novelty_n arise_v at_o any_o time_n yea_o &_o prevail_v so_o much_o afterward_o in_o process_n of_o time_n as_o to_o make_v a_o universal_a corruption_n so_o that_o almost_o no_o country_n of_o christendom_n be_v free_a from_o it_o as_o this_o merchant_n boast_v at_o this_o day_n of_o the_o most_o of_o europe_n england_n scotland_n ireland_n 〈…〉_o ar._n 3._o infra_fw-la dem._n 〈…〉_o france_n germany_n denmark_n suetia_n bohemia_n polonia_n &_o a_o great_a number_n also_o in_o spain_n &_o italy_n that_o then_o we_o look_v unto_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o the_o time_n before_o such_o novelty_n prevail_v &_o before_o it_o arise_v as_o what_o be_v teach_v &_o beléeve_v immediate_o before_o luther_n begin_v these_o innovation_n and_o therefore_o alike_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v that_o he_o say_v we_o refuse_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n 3●…_n pur._n 3●…_n concern_v antiquity_n so_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o for_o witness_n under_o this_o antiquity_n we_o pass_v not_o for_o they_o why_o man_n the_o rule_n that_o you_o receive_v prove_v it_o the_o apostle_n i_o say_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o holy_a mass_n and_o of_o any_o other_o such_o article_n because_o it_o have_v such_o antiquity_n as_o i_o have_v now_o say_v and_o as_o vincentius_n mean_v and_o so_o much_o upon_o the_o rule_n of_o find_v out_o the_o first_o author_n of_o any_o doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o therefore_o to_o be_v heretical_a or_o not_o find_v they_o and_o the_o same_o therefore_o to_o be_v apostolical_a whither_o be_v to_o be_v refer_v that_o rule_n also_o of_o d._n allens_n that_o such_o as_o common_o by_o christian_a people_n be_v name_v heretic_n 7.8_o name_n they_o 7.8_o always_o prove_v in_o the_o end_n to_o be_v heretic_n in_o deed_n notwithstanding_o their_o crake_v of_o god_n word_n whereunto_o fulke_n exception_n be_v the_o self_n same_o again_o say_v 65._o ar._n 65._o the_o true_a christian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n which_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v name_v christian_n call_v heretic_n and_o in_o reproach_n protestant_n and_o caluiniste_n in_o that_o their_o faith_n agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n prove_v themselves_o in_o deed_n to_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o no_o heretic_n ij_o against_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n 362._o tradition_n dem._n 29._o pur._n 362._o now_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o make_v his_o say_a exception_n also_o against_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o he_o speak_v m._n allen_n refer_v the_o institution_n of_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o who_o will_v he_o be_v afeard_a to_o lie_v when_o he_o father_v such_o a_o blasphemy_n upon_o the_o apostle_n soft_a man_n be_v good_a to_o d._n allen_n for_o their_o sake_n that_o follow_v for_o you_o yourself_o go_v forward_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o say_v but_o who_o be_v witness_n that_o this_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n tertullian_n cyprian_n augustine_n jeronym_n and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o this_o you_o can_v not_o and_o therefore_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o come_v in_o with_o your_o stale_a exception_n say_v but_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o i_o once_o to_o pose_v the_o papist_n i_o will_v learn_v why_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v this_o doubtless_o institution_n plain_o or_o at_o leastwise_o obscure_o set_v forth_o by_o matthew_n mark_v luke_n or_o paul_n which_o all_o have_v set_v forth_o the_o story_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v at_o all_o to_o be_v put_v in_o writing_n why_o be_v it_o disclose_v by_o tertullian_n cyprian_n 387._o pur._n 387._o augustine_n &_o c_o likewise_o in_o a_o other_o place_n if_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n commandment_n why_o be_v there_o never_o a_o word_n thereof_o in_o their_o write_n if_o i_o be_v dispose_v to_o pose_v you_o this_o question_n will_v make_v you_o claw_n your_o poll_n a_o hundred_o time_n before_o you_o can_v imagine_v any_o collourable_a answer_n for_o right_o answer_v you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o make_v in_o deed_n a_o doughty_a question_n it_o be_v as_o though_o if_o a_o christian_a can_v not_o answer_v every_o why_o of_o the_o infidel_n our_o religion_n therefore_o be_v straight_o in_o hazard_n 48._o ar._n 48._o it_o may_v trouble_v a_o wise_a man_n to_o answer_v all_o the_o question_n that_o a_o fool_n can_v propound_v you_o say_v yourself_o and_o yet_o neither_o you_o nor_o any_o other_o infidel_n shall_v ever_o find_v the_o learned_a to_o seek_v it_o be_v for_o your_o religion_n to_o be_v to_o seek_v of_o answer_n because_o it_o begin_v but_o yesterday_o and_o be_v neither_o yet_o thorough_o shape_v but_o the_o catholic_a which_o be_v the_o only_a christian_a religion_n come_v of_o god_n &_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n sithence_o continue_v have_v be_v by_o our_o forefather_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o sift_v to_o our_o hand_n that_o the_o answer_n be_v always_o ready_a afore_o the_o question_n be_v demand_v brief_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n one_o of_o our_o master_n and_o doctor_n in_o christ_n have_v teach_v we_o if_o we_o be_v pose_v about_o the_o church_n order_n in_o baptism_n to_o answer_v open_a au._n d●_n &_o open_a that_o serie_fw-la traditionis_fw-la scimus_fw-la by_o the_o course_n of_o tradition_n we_o know_v what_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v therein_o although_o they_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o for_o brevity_n sake_n so_o likewise_o be_v pose_v about_o the_o order_n of_o this_o other_o sacrament_n to_o answer_v quia_fw-la multum_fw-la erat_fw-la etc._n etc._n 6_o au._n e●_n ad_fw-la ja●_n cap._n 6_o because_o it_o be_v much_o for_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o action_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n observe_v therefore_o have_v say_v somewhat_o of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o as_o much_o as_o all_o the_o evangelist_n by_o and_o by_o he_o add_v and_o when_o i_o come_v cor_n 1._o cor_n i_o will_v prescribe_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o order_n vnde_fw-la intelligi_fw-la datur_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n and_o thereby_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o vary_v in_o any_o variety_n of_o usage_n be_v of_o his_o prescribe_v this_o be_v our_o answer_n and_o you_o know_v it_o partly_o before_o for_o you_o say_v i_o know_v the_o papist_n will_v fly_v to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 3●_n pur._n 3●_n the_o rest_n i_o will_v set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v and_o good_a reason_n s._n augustine_n teach_v we_o so_o to_o do_v and_o what_o say_v you_o to_o he_o for_o it_o
but_o that_o be_v so_o manifest_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o matter_n of_o external_a comeliness_n and_o not_o of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n that_o no_o man_n which_o understand_v what_o diatazesthai_fw-fr do_v signify_v can_v doubt_v or_o make_v any_o question_n of_o it_o be_v it_o so_o as_o you_o say_v but_o what_o have_v you_o forget_v the_o thing_n whereof_o you_o speak_v be_v it_o not_o of_o that_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o prayer_n we_o say_v be_v diatazis_n one_o of_o s._n paul_n ordination_n what_o unproper_a speech_n be_v here_o special_o s._n augustine_n say_v again_o in_o another_o place_n 3_o aug●_n ver_fw-la ●_o ser._n 3_o hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la a_o patribus_fw-la traditum_fw-la universa_fw-la obseruat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la this_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v the_o apostle_n the_o whole_a church_n observe_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o nulla_fw-la morum_fw-la diversitate_fw-la variatur_fw-la when_o they_o which_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o communion_n or_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o their_o place_n mention_v at_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o to_o mention_v that_o for_o they_o also_o it_o be_v offer_v thus_o you_o have_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o scripture_n contain_v not_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n for_o brevity_n sake_n and_o what_o do_v that_o or_o any_o other_o cause_n let_v other_o writer_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o such_o thing_n when_o aerius_n the_o heretic_n compel_v they_o or_o any_o other_o just_a occasion_n be_v minister_v you_o imagine_v and_o that_o deceive_v you_o as_o though_o the_o apostle_n purpose_v to_o put_v all_o in_o writing_n which_o if_o they_o have_v neither_o so_o many_o of_o they_o write_v that_o all_o be_v not_o write_v nor_o one_o of_o they_o so_o often_o will_v have_v mention_v one_o thing_n but_o as_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v principal_o to_o foreshow_v manifold_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n so_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o in_o the_o gospel_n 24._o joan._n 19_o luk._n 24._o to_o show_v christ_n even_o to_o consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o impleri_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la i_o and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o show_v christ_n church_n according_a to_o the_o old_a prediction_n begin_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o increase_v to_o the_o gentile_n yea_o and_o remove_n with_o s._n paul_n from_o jerusalem_n the_o head_n of_o the_o jew_n worthy_o reprobate_v and_o set_v in_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o mercy_n elect_v and_o all_o this_o but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o birth_n of_o the_o church_n for_o consummatum_fw-la est_fw-la can_v not_o be_v tell_v by_o way_n of_o a_o story_n before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n though_o foretell_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a course_n i_o say_v of_o the_o church_n even_o to_o the_o glorious_a consummation_n thereof_o in_o the_o apocalypse_n the_o other_o book_n be_v write_v special_o against_o the_o perfidious_a jew_n and_o other_o false_a master_n of_o that_o time_n as_o likewise_o in_o every_o age_n afterward_o against_o the_o several_a heresy_n of_o each_o age_n we_o have_v the_o ecclesiastical_a i_o say_v not_o canonical_a writer_n and_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o unless_o any_o thing_n belong_v to_o each_o time_n be_v omit_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o each_o time_n no_o marvel_n at_o all_o for_o the_o omission_n of_o other_o thing_n which_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o occasion_n to_o express_v this_o i_o shall_v have_v reserve_v to_o a_o other_o place_n but_o that_o this_o insolent_a poser_n may_v not_o abide_v any_o delay_n 264._o pur._n 264._o now_o then_o to_o go_v forward_o with_o he_o i_o know_v say_v he_o the_o papist_n will_v answer_v that_o tradition_n be_v of_o as_o good_a credit_n as_o the_o scripture_n 11._o 1._o thes_n 2._o 2._o thes_n 2._o 1._o cor._n 11._o and_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v and_o good_a reason_n for_o the_o scripture_n itself_o so_o teach_v us._n but_o why_o then_o say_v he_o do_v they_o not_o observe_v all_o thing_n that_o tertullian_n in_o the_o same_o place_n affirm_v to_o be_v tradition_n this_o why_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n 36_o supra_fw-la ●_o par_fw-fr 1._o d●_n pur._n 36_o moreover_o he_o say_v their_o writing_n be_v to_o we_o the_o only_a true_a testimony_n of_o their_o tradition_n so_o be_v they_o not_o to_o the_o thessalonian_o for_o they_o have_v of_o s._n paul_n traditiones_fw-la per_fw-la sermonen_fw-mi &_o per_fw-la epistolam_fw-la 40_o pur._n 40_o tradition_n partly_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n partly_o by_o write_v yea_o he_o say_v further_a when_o the_o apostolic_a writing_n can_v not_o be_v show_v it_o be_v but_o the_o point_n of_o a_o heretic_n to_o boast_v of_o apostolic_a tradition_n so_o he_o say_v to_o d._n allen._n but_o to_o the_o old_a father_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v be_v somewhat_o better_a and_o content_a to_o take_v only_o his_o exception_n against_o they_o as_o where_o he_o say_v ●_o pur._n 39_o ●_o if_o tertullian_n have_v no_o ground_n of_o his_o say_n when_o he_o affirm_v that_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o the_o apostle_n what_o ground_n can_v augustine_n have_v which_o be_v 200._o year_n further_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o he_o again_o 39_o pur._n 39_o chrysostom_n can_v no_o more_o prove_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o the_o apostle_n than_o tertullian_n can_v prove_v that_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a come_v from_o they_o again_o but_o where_o he_o say_v 304._o pur._n 30_o 304._o it_o be_v decree_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n a_o remembrance_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o they_o that_o be_v depart_v he_o must_v pardon_v we_o of_o credit_v because_o he_o can_v not_o show_v it_o out_o of_o the_o act_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v not_o believe_v chrysostome_n without_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v so_o by_o the_o apostle_n howbeit_o sometime_o he_o be_v bold_a yet_o with_o the_o father_n for_o avouch_v this_o tradition_n he_o dare_v not_o call_v they_o heretic_n for_o it_o but_o yet_o he_o dare_v to_o charge_v they_o with_o doutfulnes_n &_o contradiction_n about_o it_o for_o of_o chrysostome_n he_o say_v 3_o pur._n 39_o chrysom_n ep._n ad_fw-la ●_o hom._n 3_o lo_o m._n allen_n your_o own_o doctor_n confess_v it_o be_v but_o small_a help_n that_o can_v be_v procure_v by_o prayer_n alm_n or_o remembrance_n of_o they_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n you_o will_v say_v that_o soon_o after_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o institute_v such_o memory_n know_v that_o much_o commodity_n come_v to_o the_o dead_a then_o see_v how_o soon_o he_o forget_v himself_o when_o he_o follow_v not_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o again_o 39_o ar._n 39_o yet_o do_v not_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a so_o prevail_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o they_o dare_v define_v what_o profit_n the_o soul_n receive_v thereby_o for_o chrysostome_n say_v let_v we_o procure_v they_o some_o help_n small_a help_n true_o but_o yet_o let_v we_o help_v they_o likewise_o augustine_n 13._o aug._n ●_o fes_n lib._n cap._n 13._o where_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n declare_v how_o uncertain_a he_o be_v of_o the_o matter_n one_o while_o he_o fear_v the_o danger_n of_o every_o soul_n that_o die_v in_o adam_n a_o other_o while_o he_o believe_v that_o they_o need_v not_o his_o prayer_n yet_o he_o desire_v god_n to_o accept_v the_o same_o and_o move_v other_o man_n to_o remember_v they_o in_o their_o prayer_n thus_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o wander_v which_o lean_a unto_o man_n tradition_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la weari_v himself_o and_o in_o the_o end_n can_v define_v nothing_o in_o certain_a how_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n shall_v hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o man_n on_o earth_n such_o doubtfulness_n they_o fall_v into_o that_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o lean_a to_o tradition_n although_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o maintain_v invocation_n of_o saint_n 317._o pur._n 317._o yet_o he_o have_v nothing_o of_o certainty_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n either_o to_o persuade_v his_o own_o conscience_n or_o to_o satisfy_v they_o that_o move_v the_o doubt_n unto_o he_o for_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr
cura_fw-la i_o have_v answer_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n 12._o supra_fw-la pag._n 12._o in_o his_o confession_n he_o be_v not_o uncertain_a of_o the_o matter_n as_o you_o pretend_v but_o of_o the_o person_n need_v and_o that_o but_o of_o his_o mother_n need_n not_o also_o of_o his_o father_n as_o you_o say_v because_o she_o be_v so_o perfect_a a_o woman_n even_o as_o our_o faith_n also_o of_o the_o matter_n be_v most_o certain_a though_o of_o our_o particular_a friend_n state_n after_o their_o departure_n we_o be_v uncertain_a for_o concern_v the_o live_n also_o 1._o job._n 1._o be_v job_n uncertain_a of_o the_o profitableness_n of_o sacrifice_n because_o early_o in_o the_o morning_n he_o use_v to_o offer_v for_o his_o child_n after_o they_o have_v be_v feast_v together_o dicebat_fw-la enim_fw-la ne_fw-fr forte_fw-fr peccaverint_fw-la filii_fw-la mei_fw-la for_o he_o say_v lest_o peradventure_o my_o child_n have_v sin_v and_o touch_v s._n chrysostome_n who_o you_o think_v so_o very_a a_o child_n to_o forget_v himself_o so_o soon_o yourself_o in_o deed_n a_o very_a child_n for_o so_o think_v he_o there_o speak_v first_o of_o unreconciled_a of_o for_o such_o as_o die_v unreconciled_a they_o qui_fw-la cum_fw-la peccatis_fw-la suis_fw-la hinc_fw-la abscedunt_fw-la which_o go_v hence_o with_o their_o sin_n and_o say_v that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v holpen_v after_o their_o death_n then_o he_o speak_v rich_a speak_v for_o catholic_n that_o be_v rich_a of_o they_o who_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o faith_n but_o yet_o be_v rich_a they_o do_v not_o procure_v by_o their_o riches_n any_o comfort_n to_o their_o own_o soul_n to_o these_o we_o that_o be_v their_o friend_n may_v with_o our_o riches_n &_o prayer_n procure_v some_o help_n but_o little_a in_o respect_n of_o that_o they_o may_v have_v procure_v themselves_o so_o say_v he_o he_o speak_v in_o such_o a_o comparison_n neither_o be_v the_o apostolic_a memento_n within_o his_o comparison_n although_o it_o may_v have_v be_v well_o enough_o for_o although_o by_o it_o come_v much_o commodity_n much_o utility_n to_o the_o dead_a yet_o nothing_o so_o much_o when_o it_o be_v procure_v by_o their_o friend_n as_o when_o it_o be_v procure_v by_o themselves_o special_o because_o a_o man_n own_o work_n be_v also_o meritorious_a of_o everlasting_a reward_n so_o be_v not_o his_o friend_n work_n they_o be_v not_o meritorious_a unto_o he_o at_o all_o no_o nor_o so_o satisfactorious_a of_o temporal_a pain_n as_o his_o own_o nothing_o like_a iij._n against_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o tradition_n 264._o authority_n dem._n 34._o divine_a service_n dem._n 22._o pur._n 264._o you_o shall_v now_o hear_v he_o make_v the_o same_o exception_n against_o the_o church_n practice_n and_o judgement_n but_o admit_v say_v he_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o tertullia_n time_n use_v prayer_n and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a let_v we_o consider_v upon_o what_o ground_n they_o be_v use_v tertullian_n himself_o shall_v say_v for_o i_o that_o the_o same_o custom_n with_o many_o other_o which_o he_o there_o rehearse_v as_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o ground_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v good_a to_o take_v that_o which_o be_v so_o frank_o give_v and_o more_o be_v tertullian_n to_o be_v commend_v that_o confess_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o error_n not_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o they_o that_o labour_v to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o find_v that_o which_o tertullian_n confess_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o you_o be_v hasty_a to_o take_v it_o but_o tertullian_n do_v not_o geve_v it_o as_o i_o have_v plain_o show_v you_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n 3._o supra_fw-la pa._n 2_o divi_z 3._o again_o he_o except_v against_o the_o church_n practice_n in_o her_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n and_o say_v we_o have_v with_o more_o honesty_n reform_v our_o liturgy_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o gregory_n 371._o pur._n 371._o basil_n chrysostome_n or_o whosoever_o be_v author_n of_o those_o liturgy_n do_v leave_v the_o ancient_a liturgy_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n before_o their_o time_n and_o forge_v they_o new_a of_o their_o own_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o neither_o refuse_v the_o latin_a church_n while_o it_o be_v pure_a nor_o receive_v the_o east_n church_n wherein_o it_o be_v corrupt_v but_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n unto_o we_o to_o judge_v all_o church_n by_o and_o yet_o that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v he_o a_o coward_n he_o say_v else_o where_o to_o d._n allen._n but_o to_o follow_v you_o at_o the_o heel_n as_o far_o as_o you_o dare_v go_v 349._o pur._n 349._o i_o will_v agree_v with_o s._n augustine_n rule_n quod_fw-la legem_fw-la credendi_fw-la lex_fw-la statuit_fw-la supplicandi_fw-la the_o order_n of_o the_o churches_n prayer_n be_v ever_o a_o plain_a prescription_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a what_o to_o believe_v so_o say_v s._n augustine_n and_o so_o do_v d_o allen_n allege_v it_o but_o because_o fulke_n can_v not_o make_v his_o flourish_n with_o that_o end_n forward_o he_o turn_v the_o staff_n as_o though_o s._n augustine_n and_o d._n allen_n have_v say_v change_v falsification_n by_o change_v that_o the_o law_n of_o believe_v shall_v make_v a_o law_n of_o pray_v and_o then_o he_o bestir_v himself_o like_o a_o man_n and_o add_v of_o his_o own_o but_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v true_a have_v no_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o prayer_n if_o it_o prove_v of_o true_a faith_n have_v no_o other_o rule_n to_o frame_v it_o by_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o and_o by_o after_o which_o rule_n of_o only_a scripture_n if_o augustine_n have_v diligent_o follow_v in_o examine_v the_o common_a error_n of_o his_o time_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a at_o that_o time_n he_o will_v not_o so_o videns_fw-la so_o o_o videns_fw-la blind_o have_v defend_v that_o which_o by_o holy_a scripture_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o maintain_v and_o no_o less_o bold_a he_o be_v with_o the_o practice_n commend_v even_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n itself_o see_v this_o fact_n of_o judas_n machabaeus_n 210._o pur._n 210._o have_v no_o commandment_n in_o the_o law_n it_o be_v so_o far_o of_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v into_o example_n that_o we_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o condemn_v it_o for_o sin_n and_o disobedience_n now_o concern_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n he_o except_v against_o it_o likewise_o 86._o ar._n 86._o say_v as_o for_o doubt_n that_o arise_v by_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n or_o contention_n of_o heresy_n they_o must_v be_v resolve_v and_o determine_v only_o by_o scripture_n for_o there_o be_v never_o it_o a●_n cause_n heretic_n make_v doubt_n of_o the_o church_n this_o heretic_n will_v that_o no_o christian_a lean_a unto_o it_o heresy_n but_o there_o be_v as_o great_a doubt_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n only_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o stay_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n conscience_n as_o though_o that_o heresy_n never_o make_v doubt_n of_o the_o scripture_n also_o either_o of_o all_o or_o of_o some_o piece_n namely_o yourselves_o now_o of_o the_o machabée_n and_o express_o against_o his_o own_o church_n he_o make_v the_o same_o exception_n 58._o ar._n 58._o say_v and_o the_o protestant_n in_o europe_n will_v also_o be_v rule_v by_o their_o superior_n so_o far_o as_o their_o superior_n be_v rule_v by_o god_n word_n again_o among_o the_o protestant_n to_o the_o church_n of_o saxony_n humble_o affect_v be_v the_o church_n of_o denmark_n to_o the_o church_n of_o helvetia_n the_o church_n of_o france_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o church_n of_o scotland_n but_o so_o that_o none_o of_o these_o allow_v any_o consent_n or_o submission_n but_o to_o the_o truth_n which_o must_v be_v try_v only_o by_o god_n word_n with_o that_o but_o so_o you_o will_v consent_v i_o trow_v to_o jackstrawe_n also_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o marvelous_a humble_a affection_n that_o your_o church_n have_v one_o to_o a_o other_o elizab._n anno._n 1._o elizab._n your_o own_o church_n of_o england_n in_o general_a parliament_n be_v then_o much_o to_o blame_v to_o enact_v four_o rule_n for_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n first_o if_o it_o be_v against_o canonical_a scripture_n second_o if_o it_o be_v against_o the_o first_fw-mi .4_o general_n counsel_n or_o against_o any_o one_o of_o they_o three_o if_o against_o any_o other_o general_a council_n also_o but_o the_o with_o your_o acception_n to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o the_o say_v council_n follow_v the_o line_n of_o scripture_n and_o four_o simpliciter_fw-la whatsoever_o this_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n shall_v adjudge_v to_o be_v heresy_n you_o notwithstanding_o have_v write_v
as_o before_o and_o again_o neither_o do_v we_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o company_n of_o man_n 62._o ar._n 62._o more_o than_o another_o but_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n before_o falsehood_n which_o you_o must_v search_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v belike_o for_o this_o &_o much_o other_o such_o apocryphal_a stuff_n that_o your_o book_n be_v keep_v in_o so_o long_o and_o in_o the_o end_n also_o fain_o to_o come_v forth_o without_o privilege_n yea_o he_o be_v so_o peremptory_a in_o his_o exception_n scripture_n fu●e_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o angel_n without_o scripture_n the_o most_o absurd_o he_o attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o without_o scripture_n no_o more_o then_o to_o jackstraw_n and_o consequent_o with_o scripture_n as_o much_o to_o jackstraw_n as_o to_z the_o apostle_n for_o thus_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o d._n allen_n he_o speak_v it_o because_o he_o believe_v it_o 4._o pur._n 24.4_o 2._o cor._n 4._o he_o will_v fain_o counterfeit_v his_o speech_n like_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o belief_n be_v not_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o practice_n of_o man_n which_o though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o good_a yet_o they_o be_v such_o as_o may_v deceive_v and_o be_v deceive_v again_o 1._o pur._n 449._o gal._n 1._o where_o he_o abuse_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o galathian_o of_o preach_v &_o their_o receive_n of_o it_o &_o turn_v it_o as_o speak_v of_o only_a scripture_n it_o vex_v you_o at_o the_o very_a hart_n say_v he_o that_o we_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o confirm_v your_o doctrine_n have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o word_n of_o god_n allow_v he_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v as_o though_o s._n paul_n there_o command_v to_o accurse_v himself_o and_o all_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n if_o they_o confirm_v not_o all_o their_o doctrine_n with_o express_a scripture_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o you_o here_o require_v no_o sir_n nothing_o so_o only_o he_o accurse_v they_o which_o shall_v preach_v contrary_a to_o that_o he_o have_v preach_v &_o the_o galathian_o have_v receive_v which_o be_v as_o you_o see_v tradition_n by_o mouth_n in_o which_o manner_n he_o teach_v they_o &_o other_o church_n all_o christian_a religion_n &_o therein_o as_o one_o principal_a point_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n both_o old_a &_o new_a if_o at_o the_o leastwise_o any_o book_n of_o the_o new_a as_o then_o be_v write_v which_o can_v not_o be_v many_o before_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o be_v as_o by_o conference_n of_o time_n it_o may_v well_o be_v prove_v the_o first_o of_o all_o s._n paul_n epistle_n and_o so_o much_o of_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o her_o judgement_n and_o practise_v namely_o of_o her_o divine_a service_n whereunto_o i_o join_v as_o the_o principals_n in_o the_o authority_n first_o the_o counsel_n and_o second_o the_o pope_n for_o to_o they_o likewise_o he_o make_v his_o exception_n 27._o pur._n 430._o counsel_n dem._n 27._o say_v wherefore_o if_o any_o council_n decree_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v act._n 15._o &_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o diverse_a other_o we_o receive_v they_o with_o all_o humility_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n but_o if_o any_o council_n decree_v contrary_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o many_o do_v without_o all_o presumption_n or_o pride_n we_o may_v just_o reject_v they_o 28._o pur._n 194._o see_v apostolic_a dem._n 28._o then_o of_o the_o other_o yet_o be_v not_o all_o that_o gregory_n write_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o authority_n whereof_o we_o believe_v not_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n as_o i_o have_v often_o show_v much_o less_o a_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o only_o against_o each_o pope_n several_o but_o also_o against_o their_o whole_a line_n and_o entire_a succession_n he_o except_v in_o like_a manner_n say_v 28._o succession_n dem._n 43._o a●_n 28._o although_o we_o can_v rehearse_v in_o order_n as_o many_o succession_n in_o our_o church_n as_o the_o papist_n boast_v of_o in_o they_o yet_o be_v that_o nothing_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o must_v be_v try_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o require_v at_o the_o papist_n hand_n that_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o hold_v the_o church_n not_o by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n or_o rehearse_v of_o their_o name_n but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n for_o although_o we_o do_v rehearse_v innumerable_a name_n of_o bishop_n in_o orderly_a succession_n on_o our_o side_n we_o will_v not_o require_v man_n to_o believe_v we_o but_o only_o because_o we_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o deed_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v frankeling_n fulke_o what_o a_o frankeling_n that_o you_o deal_v very_o frank_o with_o we_o to_o renounce_v so_o free_o such_o a_o goodly_a evidence_n because_o you_o can_v not_o make_v so_o much_o as_o any_o show_n thereof_o for_o otherwise_o when_o you_o have_v any_o colour_n of_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o what_o mountybanke_n pedlar_n be_v so_o face_v so_o boast_v so_o vaunt_v as_o you_o and_o your_o fellow_n iiij_o against_o the_o father_n 26._o father_n dem._n 26._o now_o after_o all_o this_o i_o will_v open_v his_o like_a except_v against_o the_o father_n both_o in_o general_a and_o also_o express_v diverse_a of_o their_o name_n although_o it_o have_v be_v open_v in_o part_n already_o by_o other_o occasion_n and_o touch_v the_o first_o true_a it_o be_v that_o he_o often_o brag_v much_o of_o the_o father_n which_o live_v in_o the_o first_o 435.370.371_o first_o ar._n 39_o pu._n 30.177_o 435.370.371_o two_o hundred_o or_o 186.247.304.331.357.364.382_o or_o pur._n 186.247.304.331.357.364.382_o one_o hundred_o year_n chaleng_v we_o to_o prove_v our_o doctrine_n out_o of_o they_o and_o not_o out_o of_o the_o late_a father_n after_o they_o even_o with_o as_o much_o reason_n as_o he_o common_o challenge_v we_o to_o prove_v all_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n utter_o without_o all_o ground_n &_o but_o mere_a voluntary_o onely_n voluntary_o fulke_n two_o onely_n the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o which_o ensample_n therefore_o be_v much_o to_o be_v note_v but_o here_o notwithstanding_o i_o shall_v declare_v how_o he_o except_v smooth_o and_o simple_o against_o all_o the_o father_n against_o all_o in_o general_n and_o express_o also_o say_v be_v they_o never_o so_o ancient_a wherein_o how_o well_o he_o agree_v with_o himself_o i_o defer_v to_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n and_o in_o effect_n he_o have_v already_o so_o do_v in_o call_v so_o often_o afore_o for_o only_a scripture_n but_o yet_o to_o show_v it_o more_o manifest_o and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o very_a face_n itself_o thus_o he_o say_v 205._o pur._n 205._o whatsoever_o he_o be_v or_o how_o long_o soever_o it_o be_v since_o he_o write_v because_o it_o have_v not_o authority_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o weigh_v it_o as_o the_o word_n of_o a_o man_n who_o credit_n in_o divine_a matter_n be_v nothing_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o 202._o pur._n 202._o when_o all_o authority_n out_o of_o god_n word_n fail_v you_o whereby_o you_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o soul_n depart_v receive_v benefit_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o live_n you_o fly_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n but_o man_n authority_n be_v to_o weak_a to_o carry_v away_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n away_o with_o man_n writing_n show_v i_o but_o one_o scripture_n to_o prove_v it_o again_o if_o for_o these_o and_o a_o hundred_o such_o 22._o pur._n 22._o you_o can_v show_v no_o better_a warrant_n than_o the_o term_n of_o your_o father_n the_o practice_n of_o your_o elder_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o mortal_a man_n the_o curse_n of_o god_n by_o esay_n must_v needs_o be_v turn_v over_o unto_o you_o again_o 58._o pur._n 58._o your_o reason_n either_o be_v manifest_a wrest_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o else_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o mortal_a man_n again_o 386._o pur._n 386._o we_o need_v no_o shift_n m._n allen_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o doctor_n who_o we_o never_o allow_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v bold_o say_v whatsoever_o we_o find_v in_o they_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n he_o mean_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o receive_v it_o with_o their_o praise_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v disagreable_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o refuse_v with_o their_o leave_n again_o 363._o pur._n 363._o now_o touch_v the_o credit_n and_o
worthiness_n of_o these_o who_o m._n allen_n so_o high_o extoll_v as_o i_o will_v not_o go_v about_o to_o diminish_v it_o if_o they_o be_v to_o be_v compare_v with_o we_o so_o when_o they_o be_v apostle_n as_o though_o we_o oppose_v the_o doctor_n to_o the_o apostle_n oppose_v against_o the_o manifest_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v carry_v away_o with_o they_o that_o which_o he_o say_v here_o as_o his_o master_n teach_v he_o of_o mortal_a man_n d._n allen_n know_v aforehand_o and_o forewarn_v the_o reader_n thereof_o where_o he_o say_v melancton_n 384._o pur._n 384._o as_o though_o he_o be_v no_o man_n that_o may_v err_v himself_o say_v the_o doctor_n be_v man_n and_o again_o to_o see_v their_o absurdity_n in_o the_o same_o term_n of_o mortal_a man_n man_n mortal_a man_n be_v comprehend_v also_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o if_o they_o sometime_o seem_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o it_o they_o mean_v then_o by_o the_o apostle_n nothing_o but_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o fulke_v in_o certain_a place_n note_v before_o and_o again_o where_o he_o say_v to_o d._n allen_n 59_o ar._n 59_o you_o shall_v never_o bring_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v against_o we_o in_o any_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o we_o agree_v whole_o with_o he_o nevertheless_o i_o know_v what_o you_o mean_v and_o i_o will_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o utter_v it_o for_o as_o much_o as_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n corruption_n enter_v into_o the_o church_n you_o think_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o depend_v upon_o any_o one_o man_n judgement_n and_o therein_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v for_o we_o must_v depend_v only_o upon_o god_n word_n even_o so_o deal_v the_o unbeléever_n and_o the_o doubtful_a and_o weak_a with_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o life_n time_n yea_o and_o with_o christ_n himself_o and_o yet_o to_o win_v such_o person_n both_o the_o apostle_n yea_o and_o christ_n himself_o condescend_v to_o they_o according_o if_o the_o protestant_n will_v in_o like_a sort_n have_v deal_v with_o he_o &_o they_o not_o to_o have_v beléeve_v they_o in_o any_o thing_n without_o scripture_n the_o faithful_a i_o think_v for_o all_o that_o be_v not_o so_o straight_o lace_v but_o beléeve_v they_o upon_o their_o own_o word_n not_o christ_n only_o but_o also_o his_o apostle_n because_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o he_o send_v to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o they_o only_o but_o also_o to_o his_o church_n after_o they_o for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v also_o no_o less_o at_o all_o time_n believe_v the_o say_a church_n for_o the_o same_o spirit_n assure_v themselves_o that_o the_o say_a spirit_n agree_v still_o with_o himself_o whersoever_o and_o howsoever_o he_o speak_v be_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o church_n primitive_a or_o in_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n and_o again_o in_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n afterward_o at_o any_o time_n in_o general_a council_n or_o otherwise_o consent_v together_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n after_o this_o generality_n to_o see_v he_o now_o except_v against_o the_o father_n in_o particular_a name_v the_o time_n and_o the_o person_n 60._o ar._n 60._o as_o first_o the_o time_n where_o he_o say_v the_o other_o writer_n of_o late_a year_n after_o ireneus_fw-la and_o justinus_n we_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v some_o corruption_n whereby_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v colour_n of_o defence_n for_o invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a ●87_n pur._n ●87_n and_o diverse_a ceremony_n and_o although_o the_o custom_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o ancient_a error_n so_o that_o few_o of_o the_o late_a writer_n there_o be_v but_o they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v infect_v therewith_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o ground_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o warrant_v their_o do_n 262._o pur._n 262._o again_o but_o of_o memory_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a also_o we_o will_v not_o strive_v but_o that_o they_o be_v use_v before_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a &_o ambrose_n but_o without_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n or_o authority_n of_o scripture_n but_o such_o as_o be_v pitiful_o wrest_v and_o draw_v unto_o they_o again_o 30._o pur._n 30._o but_o it_o suffice_v you_o that_o your_o forefather_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o call_v the_o place_n of_o sufferance_n purgatory_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o what_o be_v it_o call_v in_o the_o scripture_n either_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n or_o the_o new_a diverse_a error_n be_v old_a than_o a_o 1000_o year_n but_o age_n can_v never_o make_v falsehood_n to_o be_v truth_n and_o therefore_o i_o weigh_v not_o your_o they_o your_o it_o be_v pride_n to_o follow_v the_o father_n and_o humility_n to_o condemn_v they_o proud_a brag_n worth_a a_o straw_n again_o and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a corruption_n of_o those_o ancient_a time_n that_o they_o do_v not_o always_o weigh_v what_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o the_o gentile_n or_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n 419._o pur._n 419._o and_o the_o rest_n as_o above_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o again_o 9_o supra_fw-la pag._n 9_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o agree_v with_o you_o in_o any_o part_n of_o your_o assertion_n notwithstanding_o many_o excellent_a gift_n that_o they_o have_v 436._o pur._n 436._o dissent_v therein_o from_o manifest_a truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o by_o name_n likewise_o he_o say_v of_o certain_a as_o for_o example_n damascene_fw-la your_o doctor_n shall_v first_o have_v reprove_v that_o persuasion_n by_o scripture_n again_o 60._o pur._n 412._o pur._n 60._o the_o supposal_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v set_v down_o which_o because_o it_o be_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o man_n it_o be_v not_o of_o sufficient_a weight_n to_o bear_v down_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n word_n again_o 395._o pur._n 395._o and_o even_o the_o authority_n of_o athanasius_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o man_n we_o count_v not_o all_o his_o writing_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o we_o judge_v they_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o again_o 255.256_o pur._n 255.256_o gregory_n nissene_n and_o athanasius_n the_o great_a there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v believe_v either_o of_o they_o both_o in_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o second_o part_n be_v tell_v that_o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o as_o he_o make_v it_o of_o the_o scripture_n authority_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n how_o there_o likewise_o against_o all_o the_o expositor_n he_o make_v the_o same_o exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n require_v also_o scripture_n to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n now_o after_o all_o this_o froth_n of_o word_n let_v we_o see_v he_o come_v once_o to_o the_o point_n &_o report_v himself_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o matter_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n but_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o m._n allen_n faith_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o matter_n 363_o pur._n 363_o but_o of_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o they_o which_o it_o be_v more_o like_a that_o they_o the_o doctor_n be_v such_o man_n than_o we_o so_o far_o inferior_a to_o they_o shall_v know_v and_o what_o say_v he_o thereunto_o i_o answer_v say_v he_o and_o yet_o not_o one_o word_n there_o to_o the_o question_n else_o where_o he_o say_v thereunto_o as_o i_o will_v report_v anon_o his_o word_n that_o also_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v search_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n only_o well_o sir_n but_o whencesoever_o and_o wheresoever_o it_o must_v be_v search_v who_o be_v more_o like_a to_o find_v it_o the_o doctor_n or_o you_o and_o so_o neither_o that_o which_o you_o say_v in_o other_o place_n answer_v the_o question_n but_o in_o this_o place_n read_v it_o who_o list_n your_o answer_n be_v quite_o &_o clean_o from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v whether_o be_v more_o like_a to_o know_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o doctor_n or_o you_o and_o yet_o you_o pipe_v up_o the_o triumph_n there_o and_o say_v thus_o have_v these_o heretic_n no_o ground_n of_o their_o heresy_n but_o shift_n from_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o tradition_n from_o tradition_n to_o the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n to_o the_o opinion_n of_o man_n yea_o and_o he_o count_v himself_o and_o his_o company_n happy_a for_o such_o
be_v otherwise_o expound_v then_o of_o their_o cause_n 176._o pur._n 176._o yea_o and_o more_o than_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v neither_o express_o nor_o by_o any_o probable_a collection_n allow_v it_o but_o manifest_o condemn_v it_o 185._o pur._n 185._o again_o he_o can_v not_o with_o any_o seemly_a colour_n establish_v purgatory_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o only_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n and_o will_n reveil_v and_o confirm_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n the_o machabée_n to_o be_v even_o so_o confirm_v as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o book_n he_o can_v never_o avoid_v and_o in_o effect_n he_o grant_v as_o i_o shall_v note_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n among_o his_o contradiction_n which_o be_v sufficient_a i_o trow_v to_o make_v at_o the_o least_o a_o seemly_a colour_n and_o a_o probable_a collection_n but_o in_o deed_n also_o a_o conclusion_n so_o necessary_a that_o he_o can_v never_o answer_v it_o but_o by_o shake_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o derogate_a from_o their_o confirmation_n which_o yet_o himself_o do_v attribute_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o four_o part_n what_o great_a promise_n he_o make_v to_o bring_v most_o evident_a scripture_n against_o we_o and_o also_o by_o scripture_n to_o prove_v his_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n triumph_v also_o before_o the_o victory_n &_o say_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o be_v try_v by_o scripture_n but_o reject_v the_o scripture_n whereupon_o a_o fourfold_a offer_n be_v make_v unto_o he_o now_o that_o we_o have_v see_v how_o precise_a he_o be_v with_o we_o to_o admit_v 1_o no_o evidence_n that_o we_o allege_v but_o scripture_n only_o both_o in_o all_o controversy_n and_o also_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o again_o 2_o no_o scripture_n which_o make_v so_o plain_o with_o we_o that_o he_o can_v not_o avoid_v it_o but_o by_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a though_o he_o grant_v it_o to_o have_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o same_o true_a church_n which_o move_v he_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o receive_v the_o other_o scripture_n for_o canonical_a and_o again_o 3_o no_o scripture_n that_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v canonical_a unless_o it_o make_v so_o express_o so_o plain_o so_o manifest_o and_o so_o necessary_o with_o we_o that_o it_o can_v not_o by_o any_o suttletie_n be_v avoid_v it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o scripture_n he_o allege_v against_o we_o whether_o he_o observe_v himself_o the_o law_n that_o he_o so_o rigorous_o prescribe_v to_o we_o whether_o his_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a so_o manifest_a so_o evident_a that_o by_o no_o sutteltie_n they_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n no_o need_n of_o sutteltie_n i_o assure_v you_o to_o avoid_v or_o delude_v they_o so_o frivolous_a be_v his_o allegation_n that_o with_o all_o facility_n and_o truth_n we_o shall_v answer_v they_o here_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n i_o will_v only_o lay_v forth_o his_o great_a promise_n aforehande_v and_o so_o come_v orderly_o to_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o omit_v if_o he_o shall_v have_v to_o do_v with_o all_o the_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n what_o manifest_a &_o necessary_a confutation_n he_o will_v frame_v against_o they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n alone_o have_v free_o afore_o they_o renounce_v all_o other_o probation_n according_a to_o his_o former_a say_n here_o that_o all_o truth_n and_o all_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o may_v be_v so_o prove_v by_o scripture_n &_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o know_v nothing_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v but_o it_o be_v so_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o scripture_n promise_n his_o great_a promise_n i_o will_v charge_v he_o no_o more_o but_o with_o his_o promise_n that_o he_o make_v of_o so_o confute_v we_o by_o plain_a scripture_n notwithstanding_o that_o all_o other_o evidence_n make_v for_o we_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o have_v already_o confess_v thus_o he_o say_v 187._o pur._n 187._o and_o that_o which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v in_o confutation_n of_o your_o heresy_n shall_v be_v no_o worse_o than_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n itself_o which_o be_v better_o than_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o world_n against_o it_o and_o again_o 30._o pur._n 30._o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o god_n minister_n yet_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o authority_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n i_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o overthrow_v both_o this_o and_o all_o other_o babilonicall_a bulwark_n that_o be_v cast_v up_o by_o satan_n &_o all_o his_o instrument_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o popish_a heresy_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o neither_o the_o mist_n of_o man_n invention_n which_o you_o call_v the_o light_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o darken_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n nor_o the_o error_n of_o mortal_a man_n which_o you_o term_v the_o force_n of_o god_n truth_n shall_v bear_v down_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n again_o 12._o pur._n 12._o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v manifest_a evidence_n that_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n again_o 3._o ar._n 3._o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v none_o other_o faith_n in_o stead_n of_o true_a christianity_n but_o that_o which_o we_o hold_v as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n again_o i_o can_v prove_v by_o s._n paul_n writing_n 59_o ar._n 59_o that_o in_o all_o article_n of_o faith_n he_o teach_v the_o same_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o for_o trial_n of_o this_o because_o it_o will_v require_v a_o whole_a volume_n if_o i_o shall_v prove_v every_o particular_a article_n wherein_o we_o dissent_v from_o you_o papist_n if_o you_o will_v name_v a_o article_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n yourself_o shall_v name_v enough_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v let_v it_o be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o one_o certain_a person_n and_o that_o the_o church_n flée_v into_o the_o wilderness_n at_o his_o come_n be_v to_o become_v invisible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o that_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o come_n and_o fle_v shall_v be_v so_o soon_o after_o christ_n passion_n the_o continuance_n so_o many_o age_n the_o end_n so_o long_o before_o christ_n second_o come_v wherein_o we_o agree_v not_o with_o s._n paul_n if_o i_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o we_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o meaning_n thereof_o i_o will_v revoke_v that_o article_n and_o agree_v with_o you_o therein_o yea_o and_o also_o to_o prove_v his_o own_o meaning_n and_o to_o disprove_v our_o meaning_n when_o we_o both_o allege_v scripture_n he_o will_v seek_v as_o he_o require_v of_o we_o to_o nothing_o likewise_o but_o scripture_n itself_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n he_o say_v you_o shall_v believe_v we_o rather_o than_o the_o papist_n because_o our_o ground_n and_o prove_n be_v better_a than_o they_o or_o else_o we_o require_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v better_a than_o they_o and_o there_o again_o if_o you_o bring_v out_o a_o false_a sense_n we_o believe_v you_o not_o because_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a and_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lie_v his_o triumph_v in_o lie_v these_o be_v his_o worthy_a promise_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v so_o liberal_a belike_o because_o he_o know_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o once_o appear_v when_o scripture_n be_v allege_v by_o the_o protestant_n for_o such_o be_v his_o word_n 380._o pur._n 380._o we_o can_v show_v no_o cause_n in_o the_o world_n you_o say_v why_o we_o need_v in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o controversy_n depart_v from_o your_o church_n yet_o m._n allen_n this_o one_o cause_n shall_v serve_v for_o all_o because_o your_o church_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o dare_v not_o abide_v the_o trial_n thereof_o but_o will_v sit_v like_o a_o proud_a dame_n in_o a_o chair_n 28._o ar._n 28._o and_o control_v the_o scripture_n again_o the_o popish_a church_n can_v by_o no_o reason_n challenge_v apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n see_v she_o refuse_v to_o be_v try_v by_o their_o doctrine_n utter_v in_o their_o write_n again_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 99.6_o ar._n 99.6_o and_o be_v rule_v thereby_o but_o the_o romish_a church_n will_v in_o no_o wise_n be_v rule_v only_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n therefore_o she_o be_v not_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n where_o by_o his_o foist_v in_o of_o the_o word_n only_o in_o the_o minor_a
we_o may_v note_v the_o cause_n that_o move_v he_o to_o say_v that_o our_o church_n refuse_v the_o scripture_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o refuse_v faith_n because_o we_o refuse_v only_o faith_n or_o that_o any_o man_n refuse_v his_o own_o best_a evidence_n because_o he_o will_v not_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o his_o adversary_n renounce_v all_o his_o other_o evidence_n be_v they_o never_o so_o many_o never_o so_o good_a never_o so_o well_o try_v and_o so_o much_o use_v by_o his_o auncetor_n &_o also_o most_o agreeable_a every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o his_o foresay_a best_a evidence_n 85._o ar._n 85._o he_o say_v moreover_o she_o have_v nothing_o less_o than_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n which_o submit_v the_o same_o to_o her_o own_o judgement_n 107._o ar._n 107._o again_o the_o popish_a church_n so_o manifest_o dissent_v from_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o she_o dare_v not_o be_v judge_v thereby_o but_o most_o blasphemous_o submit_v the_o same_o to_o her_o own_o judgement_n again_o in_o the_o popish_a church_n god_n word_n be_v make_v subject_n to_o man_n determination_n and_o authority_n and_o again_o 219._o pur._n 219._o by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o you_o do_v reject_v the_o whole_a authority_n of_o all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n when_o you_o affirm_v that_o no_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v canonical_a but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o your_o church_n will_v allow_v it_o moreover_o when_o you_o will_v not_o admit_v any_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o such_o as_o your_o church_n will_v allow_v here_o be_v two_o other_o cause_n of_o the_o same_o again_o as_o if_o he_o will_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n or_o the_o church_n then_o church_n note_v which_o be_v this_o popish_a church_n submit_v and_o make_v subject_n the_o scripture_n to_o man_n most_o blasphemous_o and_o only_o of_o their_o own_o will_n 3._o 2._o pet._n 3._o because_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o namely_o s._n peter_n for_o say_v that_o the_o unlearned_a he_o self_n be_v but_o a_o fisherman_n and_o the_o unstable_a do_v misconstrue_v s._n paul_n epistle_n sicut_fw-la &_o caeteras_fw-la scripturas_fw-la as_o also_o the_o other_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o damnation_n and_o again_o as_o though_o the_o same_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n after_o they_o manifest_o reject_v the_o whole_a authority_n of_o all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n canonical_a canonical_a &_o do_v all_o only_a of_o their_o own_o will_n because_o they_o make_v a_o canon_n or_o canon_n as_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v canon_n whereof_o the_o say_a scripture_n be_v and_o be_v call_v canonical_a whereupon_o himself_o also_o count_v they_o as_o confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n well_o for_o these_o goodly_a cause_n he_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o which_o christ_n say_v general_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n 18._o mat._n 18._o count_v he_o for_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n refuse_v and_o reject_v the_o scripture_n and_o again_o to_o d._n allen_n 438._o pur._n 438._o as_o for_o the_o evident_a word_n of_o god_n you_o shame_v not_o to_o boast_v of_o that_o to_o be_v your_o trial_n which_o you_o dare_v as_o well_o eat_v a_o faggot_n as_o abide_v the_o judgement_n of_o it_o in_o any_o lawful_a conference_n or_o disputation_n your_o great_a belwether_n and_o bishop_n declare_v before_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o conference_n of_o westminster_n what_o they_o dare_v abide_v when_o they_o come_v to_o handstroke_n it_o be_v a_o gay_a matter_n for_o such_o a_o chatter_a pie_n as_o you_o be_v to_o make_v a_o fond_a flourish_n a_o far_o off_o in_o word_n to_o please_v your_o patron_n and_o exhibitioner_n it_o be_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o proof_n in_o deed_n and_o again_o to_o he_o 346._o pur._n 346._o where_o as_o you_o wish_v that_o bede_n history_n be_v make_v familiar_a unto_o all_o english_a man_n they_o be_v better_a to_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o if_o you_o dare_v abide_v the_o trial_n thereof_o you_o will_v exhort_v man_n to_o read_v it_o at_o least_o wise_a that_o understand_v latin_n and_o if_o you_o be_v as_o zealous_a to_o set_v forth_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o you_o be_v to_o maintain_v your_o own_o tradition_n one_o or_o other_o of_o you_o which_o have_v so_o long_o find_v fault_n with_o our_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n will_v have_v take_v pain_n to_o translate_v they_o true_o yourselves_o as_o well_o as_o to_o translate_v bede_n book_n you_o say_v the_o disputation_n at_o westminster_n anno_fw-la 1._o elizab._n be_v before_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o one_o that_o care_v not_o what_o you_o say_v which_o you_o declare_v again_o in_o speak_v of_o d._n allens_n exhibitioner_n and_o his_o please_a of_o they_o a_o thing_n whereof_o you_o know_v nothing_o nor_o as_o i_o think_v no_o body_n else_o unless_o some_o body_n may_v know_v that_o which_o be_v not_o he_o be_v rather_o himself_o the_o exhibitioner_n of_o our_o whole_a country_n like_o a_o other_o joseph_n and_o may_v be_v you_o also_o if_o you_o be_v happy_a how_o much_o more_o just_o than_o may_v we_o say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v hold_v before_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o what_o conference_n will_v you_o admit_v for_o lawful_a on_o our_o part_n when_o as_o you_o refuse_v to_o come_v to_o that_o assembly_n at_o trent_n be_v yet_o so_o earnest_o so_o safe_o and_o so_o honourable_o invite_v thither_o as_o the_o safeconduite_n extant_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n do_v witness_n together_o with_o the_o very_a experience_n also_o of_o those_o few_o petites_fw-fr of_o germany_n that_o come_v thither_o or_o what_o conference_n shall_v on_o your_o part_n be_v think_v iniquous_a and_o unjust_a towards_o we_o when_o you_o shame_v not_o to_o extol_v that_o mock_n conference_n of_o westminster_n offer_n a_o fourefolde_v offer_n well_o because_o you_o challenge_v we_o to_o a_o disputation_n and_o be_v suffer_v to_o set_v it_o forth_o in_o print_n hear_v what_o i_o will_v say_v unto_o you_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n count_v you_o their_o subject_n as_o much_o as_o you_o count_v we_o the_o subject_n of_o england_n and_o the_o state_n there_o be_v of_o all_o catholic_a prince_n grant_v to_o be_v far_o preeminent_a do_v you_o therefore_o procure_v we_o a_o safeconduite_n from_o the_o court_n in_o such_o form_n as_o the_o council_n give_v it_o to_o you_o and_o certain_a of_o we_o will_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n come_v in_o be_v the_o danger_n to_o our_o life_n otherwise_o never_o so_o great_a and_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o the_o victory_n of_o his_o truth_n we_o will_v join_v with_o you_o in_o any_o conference_n that_o shall_v be_v prescribe_v according_a to_o the_o common_a law_n of_o a_o conference_n see_v in_o my_o xix_o demand_v which_o be_v of_o king_n what_o i_o say_v to_o this_o effect_n before_o i_o know_v of_o this_o your_o challenge_n see_v likewise_o of_o the_o same_o in_o my_o first_o demand_n which_o be_v of_o old_a conference_n at_o carthage_n betwixt_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o donatist_n about_o the_o true_a church_n which_o the_o scripture_n commend_v unto_o we_o whereof_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o say_v more_o in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n if_o to_o reject_v this_o offer_n the_o governor_n by_o your_o procurement_n or_o of_o their_o own_o mind_n will_v stand_v upon_o their_o point_n whereas_o we_o see_v the_o cause_n be_v god_n cause_n be_v content_v not_o to_o stand_v upon_o our_o life_n to_o save_v your_o soul_n and_o to_o redeem_v the_o unmerciful_a vexation_n and_o intolerable_a persecution_n of_o our_o brethren_n over_o all_o that_o realm_n who_o your_o bishop_n and_o other_o commissioner_n do_v oppose_v with_o heavy_a iron_n and_o boucher_n axe_n sore_a than_o you_o can_v oppose_v we_o or_o the_o learned_a of_o they_o with_o scripture_n do_v you_o sir_n at_o the_o least_o wise_a for_o your_o own_o credit_n sake_n take_v your_o pen_n in_o hand_n and_o join_v with_o i_o upon_o that_o same_o collatio_fw-la carthaginensis_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o i_o have_v brief_o require_v in_o my_o say_a first_o demand_n or_o if_o you_o dare_v not_o do_v that_o neither_o for_o all_o your_o crack_n three_o i_o require_v you_o to_o send_v to_o we_o some_o of_o your_o fellow_n or_o scholar_n such_o as_o will_v behave_v themselves_o quiet_o and_o modest_o other_o safeconduite_n they_o shall_v not_o need_v as_o diverse_a of_o your_o side_n have_v already_o at_o sundry_a time_n partly_o of_o their_o own_o head_n partly_o at_o their_o private_a friend_n motion_n come_v hither_o and_o find_v all_o safe_a
and_o sure_a for_o their_o person_n and_o not_o one_o of_o they_o but_o he_o be_v thanks_n be_v to_o god_n thorough_o satisfy_v by_o our_o conference_n and_o namely_o by_o see_v and_o hear_v our_o foresay_a daily_a read_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v by_o d._n allen_n our_o precedent_n his_o order_n use_v among_o we_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o he_o exhort_v man_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n they_o special_o that_o understande_v latin_a much_o more_o they_o s._n bede_n history_n and_o namely_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n what_o book_n do_v i_o his_o scholar_n more_o often_o use_v in_o my_o motive_n and_o demand_n then_o that_o and_o touch_v a_o catholic_a translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n you_o show_v yourself_o to_o know_v little_a god_n wot_v what_o be_v d._n allens_n desire_v and_o mind_n therein_o but_o all_o man_n may_v assure_v themselves_o that_o any_o thing_n lack_v thereunto_o rather_o then_o good_a will_n and_o fervent_a zeal_n special_o because_o we_o see_v it_o translate_v already_o by_o catholic_n into_o all_o other_o language_n almost_o and_o because_o we_o know_v sundry_a commodity_n that_o may_v ensue_v thereof_o &_o namely_o because_o we_o lament_v to_o see_v so_o many_o soul_n to_o die_v in_o the_o most_o wholesome_a water_n be_v turn_v into_o deadly_a bitterness_n by_o your_o star_n absinthin_n 8._o apoc._n 8._o your_o blindness_n withal_o be_v such_o that_o leave_v both_o the_o authentical_a greek_a of_o the_o septuaginta_fw-la which_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n do_v use_v and_o also_o the_o authentical_a latin_a which_o the_o church_n have_v use_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n in_o some_o part_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n almost_o you_o have_v serve_v our_o country_n with_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o the_o late_a obstinate_a jew_n vowel_v divide_v and_o read_v it_o be_v of_o itself_o but_o one_o verse_n in_o the_o whole_a psalter_n and_o each_o other_o particular_a book_n &_o only_o consonantes_fw-la and_o to_o be_v read_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o tradition_n we_o know_v by_o our_o authentical_a translation_n and_o not_o of_o the_o incredulous_a and_o perfidious_a no_o no_o whensoever_o we_o shall_v make_v if_o we_o be_v in_o case_n and_o place_n a_o catholic_a translation_n and_o send_v the_o copy_n in_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o no_o less_o danger_n of_o your_o searcher_n and_o fire_n than_o our_o other_o book_n have_v be_v and_o be_v every_o day_n more_o and_o more_o but_o yet_o that_o danger_n shall_v not_o stay_v we_o if_o nothing_o else_o do_v know_v that_o such_o a_o translation_n will_v confound_v you_o ten_o thousand_o time_n more_o than_o all_o the_o other_o book_n have_v do_v last_o of_o all_o if_o none_o of_o my_o former_a request_n can_v find_v place_n with_o you_o at_o the_o least_o wise_a you_o shall_v have_v here_o in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v a_o answer_n to_o all_o your_o scripture_n hither_o unto_o allege_v in_o both_o your_o book_n to_o chaw_v upon_o for_o a_o while_n and_o then_o tell_v your_o reader_n when_o as_o you_o have_v here_o renounce_v all_o other_o evidence_n so_o he_o shall_v see_v that_o you_o be_v no_o less_o destitute_a of_o scripture_n also_o tell_v he_o then_o i_o say_v blame_v d._n allen_n 364._o pur._n 364._o and_o say_v and_o yet_o he_o wonder_v that_o we_o be_v so_o blind_a that_o we_o can_v not_o see_v the_o clear_a light_n of_o truth_n and_o again_o in_o the_o end_n of_o your_o book_n 458._o pur._n 458._o in_o god_n name_n let_v the_o reader_n way_n indifferent_o and_o as_o they_o see_v this_o point_n of_o the_o dead_a handle_v so_o let_v they_o judge_v of_o the_o rest_n the_o truth_n be_v uphold_v by_o evident_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o error_n by_o custom_n practice_n and_o judgement_n of_o man_n the_o truth_n seek_v understand_v of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n error_n at_o the_o mouth_n of_o mortal_a man_n now_o they_o to_o these_o evident_a scripture_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o to_o your_o divine_a understanding_n of_o they_o ¶_o the_o eight_o chapter_n to_o show_v his_o vanity_n in_o his_o foresay_a rigorous_a exact_v of_o plain_a scripture_n and_o great_a promise_n to_o bring_v plain_a scripture_n confer_v place_n with_o place_n so_o evident_o all_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o allege_v be_v examine_v and_o answer_v all_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o allege_v against_o we_o throughout_o his_o two_o book_n i_o do_v sort_n and_o distribute_v into_o four_o part_n the_o first_o concern_v the_o question_n of_o only_a scripture_n the_o second_o concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n the_o three_o concern_v the_o question_n of_o purgatory_n the_o four_o concern_v all_o other_o question_n that_o he_o mention_v the_o first_o part_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o only_a scripture_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o first_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n we_o see_v how_o to_o make_v exception_n against_o all_o our_o other_o evidence_n he_o evermore_o say_v that_o in_o all_o matter_n only_o evident_a scripture_n must_v be_v bring_v and_o hear_v confess_v those_o other_o evidence_n to_o be_v so_o evident_a for_o we_o that_o they_o can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v avoid_v now_o then_o this_o be_v his_o only_a refuge_n how_o many_o and_o how_o evident_a scripture_n have_v he_o allege_v for_o it_o as_o you_o think_v sure_o in_o all_o his_o first_o book_n to_o d._n allens_n article_n they_o be_v altogether_o our_o foresay_a evidence_n he_o allege_v but_o one_o place_n only_o and_o not_o many_o mo_z neither_o in_o his_o other_o book_n of_o purgatory_n and_o what_o manner_n of_o place_n also_o think_v you_o that_o it_o be_v special_o consider_v how_o much_o he_o crake_v of_o it_o as_o where_o he_o say_v thus_o i_o have_v declare_v 11.15_o ar._n 11.15_o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v convict_v all_o heretic_n only_o by_o the_o scripture_n again_o it_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v sufficient_o 16._o ar._n 16._o that_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n which_o be_v lead_v only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o only_a weapon_n by_o which_o heresy_n be_v cut_v down_o count_v it_o to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o that_o purpose_n have_v overthrow_v heresy_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o again_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v out_o and_o try_v only_o by_o the_o scripture_n 82._o ar._n 82._o as_o we_o have_v declare_v at_o large_a in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o article_n first_o demand_v and_o once_o again_o 86._o ar._n 86._o as_o for_o doubt_n that_o arise_v by_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n or_o contention_n of_o heresy_n they_o must_v be_v resolve_v and_o determine_v as_o it_o be_v abundaunt_o declare_v before_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n with_o that_o place_n of_o scripture_n he_o allege_v certain_a father_n as_o hilarius_n basilius_n chrysostome_n saint_n augustine_n leo_n the_o first_o and_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o sixth_o to_o who_o i_o must_v answer_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n pag._n infra_fw-la pag._n but_o he_o grant_v pardie_o that_o the_o father_n authority_n be_v no_o warrant_n to_o he_o so_o to_o crake_v as_o another_o where_o also_o express_o he_o say_v 383._o pur._n 383._o it_o be_v not_o for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o we_o allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o doctor_n and_o old_a counsel_n then_o must_v all_o these_o crack_n be_v only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o you_o there_o allege_v let_v we_o therefore_o now_o hear_v that_o scripture_n so_o do_v paul_n overcome_v the_o jew_n act._n 18._o that_o be_v to_o say_v 11._o ar._n 11._o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o often_o dispute_v against_o the_o jew_n prove_v jesus_n to_o be_v christ_n i_o there_o find_v but_o that_o his_o argument_n be_v none_o but_o scripture_n i_o find_v not_o but_o read_v you_o act_n .13_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o use_v also_o other_o argument_n against_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o testimony_n of_o certain_a man_n as_o of_o s._n john_n baptist_n and_o of_o his_o own_o disciple_n that_o see_v he_o many_o day_n together_o after_o his_o resurrection_n qui_fw-la usque_fw-la nunc_fw-la sunt_fw-la testes_fw-la eius_fw-la ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la who_o to_o this_o day_n be_v witness_n for_o he_o to_o the_o people_n read_v likewise_o act._n 4._o for_o the_o argument_n of_o miracle_n special_o where_o it_o be_v say_v hominem_fw-la quoque_fw-la videntes_fw-la stantem_fw-la cum_fw-la eye_n qui_fw-la curatus_fw-la fierat_fw-la nihil_fw-la poterant_fw-la contradicere_fw-la see_v the_o man_n also_o stand_v with_o peter_n and_o john_n who_o they_o have_v heal_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v quite_o put_v to_o silence_n and_o therefore_o also_o if_o s._n paul_n have_v in_o your_o place_n overcome_v they_o
only_o by_o scripture_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v thereof_o that_o no_o other_o argument_n be_v good_a enough_o against_o jew_n and_o heretic_n now_o to_o the_o place_n allege_v in_o your_o other_o book_n other_o persuasion_n say_v you_o than_o such_o as_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o hear_n of_o god_n word_n 6._o pur._n 6._o will_v never_o of_o christian_n be_v count_v for_o true_a belief_n so_o long_o as_o the_o ten_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n remain_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o bible_n s._n paul_n there_o say_v that_o hear_v be_v presuppose_v to_o beléeve_v and_o again_o to_o hear_v be_v presuppose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o in_o write_v do_v he_o not_o there_o express_v that_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o mean_v preach_v and_o preach_v of_o such_o as_o be_v send_v for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o one_o place_n hear_v be_v of_o god_n word_n the_o same_o he_o say_v afore_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o preacher_n 2._o 1._o thes_n 2._o and_o what_o be_v more_o common_a in_o the_o new_a testament_n then_o to_o call_v the_o preach_n of_o god_n messenger_n the_o word_n of_o god_n even_o as_o we_o to_o this_o day_n count_v it_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o hear_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n either_o in_o her_o counsel_n or_o in_o her_o doctor_n or_o any_o other_o way_n for_o so_o say_v god_n to_o they_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o 10._o luc._n 10._o hear_v i_o and_o so_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o galathian_o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o gospel_n 1._o gal._n 1._o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o and_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v hold_v he_o for_o accurse_a he_o speak_v of_o preach_v and_o you_o allege_v it_o as_o speak_v of_o writing_n and_o of_o only_a writing_n for_o thus_o you_o say_v to_o we_o it_o vex_v you_o at_o the_o very_a heart_n 449.163_o pur._n 449.163_o that_o we_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o confirm_v your_o doctrine_n have_v a_o plain_a commandment_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o word_n of_o god_n allow_v he_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v no_o sir_n it_o rather_o rejoice_v we_o at_o the_o heart_n to_o see_v that_o this_o very_a same_o text_n which_o you_o change_v falsification_n by_o change_v corrupt_v be_v so_o plain_a a_o warrant_n to_o our_o brethren_n the_o roman_n accurse_v your_o master_n luther_n and_o caluine_n for_o preach_v a_o other_o gospel_n 28._o act._n 28._o then_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n preach_v to_o the_o say_a roman_n and_o which_o they_o receive_v of_o he_o the_o scripture_n also_o testify_v in_o other_o place_n 15._o mat._n 28._o act._n 20._o rom._n 15._o that_o s._n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n teach_v the_o roman_n and_o other_o church_n all_o thing_n but_o not_o likewise_o that_o he_o or_o they_o write_v all_o which_o they_o teach_v neither_o again_o that_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o write_v the_o church_n always_o shall_v be_v require_v to_o bring_v forth_o their_o writing_n &_o not_o otherwise_o to_o be_v credit_v although_o they_o allege_v their_o preach_n or_o tradition_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n whereby_o you_o perceive_v that_o your_o conclusion_n follow_v not_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o you_o bring_v out_o of_o another_o place_n say_v all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n 410._o pur._n 410._o it_o be_v s_n paul_n 2._o tim._n 3._o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o prepare_v to_o all_o good_a work_n suppose_v this_o to_o be_v s._n paul_n saying_n will_v you_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o timothy_n himself_o commend_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o good_a work_n and_o say_v that_o he_o have_v it_o of_o s._n paul_n own_o mouth_n where_o he_o have_v all_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v credit_v but_o needs_o he_o must_v prove_v the_o same_o by_o scripture_n we_o say_v all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n speak_v and_o that_o say_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o apostle_n write_v even_o so_o if_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o apostle_n write_v that_o take_v not_o away_o such_o argument_n as_o be_v make_v upon_o their_o speak_n as_o again_o if_o a_o certain_a article_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v teach_v in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n or_o also_o if_o all_o article_n for_o so_o your_o word_n pretend_v here_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n will_v it_o not_o suffice_v for_o all_o that_o to_o prove_v any_o article_n out_o of_o some_o other_o book_n of_o scripture_n what_o a_o fond_a reason_n be_v this_o that_o because_o one_o evidence_n prove_v all_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o have_v any_o other_o evidence_n but_o that_o only_a and_o this_o i_o say_v suppose_v that_o s._n paul_n have_v say_v as_o you_o make_v he_o all_o good_a work_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o i_o say_v further_o that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v so_o but_o be_v now_o at_o the_o point_n of_o martyrdom_n he_o exhort_v his_o disciple_n not_o to_o faint_v but_o to_o fulfil_v his_o office_n to_o the_o end_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o office_n i_o say_v of_o a_o evangelist_n or_o preacher_n 4._o 2._o tim._n 4._o say_v that_o although_o he_o shall_v now_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o master_n yet_o he_o have_v still_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o he_o which_o be_v profitable_a say_v he_o to_o teach_v of_o truth_n 3._o 2._o tim._n 3._o to_o disprove_v of_o falsehood_n to_o correct_v of_o vice_n to_o instruct_v in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o evangelist_n be_v perfect_a that_o be_v to_o say_v furnish_v to_o every_o good_a work_n mean_v thereby_o those_o foresay_a work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n as_o he_o also_o there_o have_v say_v 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o he_o that_o desire_v a_o bishop_n office_n desire_v a_o good_a work_n now_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v profitable_a to_o this_o and_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v able_a or_o sufficient_a unto_o it_o again_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v profitable_a to_o every_o part_n of_o preach_v and_o another_o thing_n the_o scripture_n to_o teach_v express_o all_o good_a work_n in_o every_o particular_a as_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o of_o that_o you_o speak_v and_o so_o forth_o 434._o pur._n 434._o moreover_o you_o allege_v these_o two_o place_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o try_v the_o spirit_n and_o these_o you_o allege_v for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v require_v both_o in_o all_o question_n and_o also_o in_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n declare_v thereby_o that_o you_o either_o know_v not_o or_o care_v not_o what_o nor_o how_o you_o allege_v for_o where_o our_o saviour_n say_v to_o the_o jew_n 5._o john_n 5._o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o it_o be_v which_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n he_o say_v also_o unto_o they_o and_o john_n do_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n and_o again_o my_o work_n blind_o who_o ever_o allege_v scripture_n more_o blind_o or_o miracle_n do_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o that_o my_o father_n send_v i_o and_o that_o a_o great_a witness_n than_o john_n and_o again_o also_o my_o father_n who_o send_v i_o he_o have_v give_v witness_n of_o i_o likewise_o upon_o your_o other_o place_n try_v the_o spirit_n you_o say_v and_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o try_v but_o by_o the_o scripture_n so_o you_o say_v 4._o 1._o john_n 4._o ar._n 4._o but_o your_o text_n do_v not_o so_o say_v yea_o the_o apostle_n s_o john_n say_v there_o straight_o after_o by_o this_o we_o know_v a_o spirit_n or_o prophet_n or_o teacher_n of_o truth_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n look_v in_o the_o text_n man_n &_o see_v what_o be_v that_o whereof_o he_o say_v by_o this_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o only_a scripture_n or_o by_o some_o thing_n else_o brief_o believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n say_v he_o but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n for_o than_o you_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o believe_v they_o by_o this_o be_v know_v a_o spirit_n of_o god_n first_o in_o one_o particular_a which_o i_o pass_v over_o then_o in_o general_a after_o this_o manner_n you_o my_o child_n you_o roman_n and_o other_o catholic_n be_v of_o god_n we_o apostle_n and_o other_o catholic_a teacher_n be_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v us._n by_o this_o we_o know_v a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o error_n or_o a_o false_a prophet_n
to_o wit_n by_o consider_v whether_o he_o agree_v with_o they_o that_o be_v of_o god_n with_o they_o that_o receive_v and_o keep_v the_o unction_n or_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o with_o they_o that_o depart_v not_o after_o any_o seducer_n but_o continue_v in_o that_o which_o they_o hear_v in_o the_o beginning_n as_o the_o roman_n do_v most_o manifest_o no_o antichrist_n nor_o heretic_n be_v able_a to_o name_v the_o time_n the_o novelty_n the_o seducer_n that_o ever_o they_o go_v after_o so_o as_o wittenberg_n geneva_n england_n and_o all_o other_o that_o we_o charge_v with_o it_o have_v do_v most_o notorious_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n in_o general_a of_o s._n johns_n epistle_n again_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v a_o light_n unto_o our_o step_n and_o a_o lantern_n unto_o our_o foot_n 118.18_o pur._n 285.364_o psal_n 118.18_o therefore_o we_o will_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o man_n tradition_n item_n the_o faithful_a testimony_n of_o god_n word_n only_o give_v true_a light_n unto_o the_o eye_n as_o the_o prophet_n say_v and_o by_o and_o by_o after_o you_o call_v it_o the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n write_v but_o the_o prophet_n neither_o have_v the_o word_n only_o neither_o say_v that_o god_n word_n be_v not_o but_o in_o writing_n but_o rather_o most_o evident_o by_o god_n word_n there_o he_o mean_v the_o preach_n of_o his_o apostle_n 10._o rom._n 10._o s._n paul_n also_o himself_o refer_v that_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o psalm_n unto_o they_o according_o into_o all_o the_o earth_n their_o sound_n be_v go_v forth_o and_o their_o word_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o you_o may_v see_v the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v not_o only_o in_o writing_n but_o also_o in_o tradition_n by_o mouth_n 210._o pur._n 210._o last_o of_o all_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v against_o judas_n machabeus_n in_o the_o law_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o pin_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n be_v omit_v lest_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v leave_v to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n to_o devise_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n 32._o deut._n 12._o for_o 8._o &_o 32._o you_o shall_v not_o do_v say_v the_o lord_n what_o seem_v good_a in_o your_o own_o eye_n but_o that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o that_o only_o shall_v you_o do_v without_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o or_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n from_o it_o you_o be_v very_o dainty_a of_o your_o quotation_n in_o manner_n none_o at_o all_o in_o your_o margin_n because_o you_o allege_v so_o few_o place_n and_o common_o omit_v in_o your_o text_n also_o because_o you_o allege_v your_o place_n without_o book_n this_o be_v my_o conjecture_n let_v the_o reader_n look_v in_o the_o place_n as_o i_o do_v quote_v they_o because_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o omit_v many_o thing_n that_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n well_o in_o this_o place_n moses_n say_v not_o that_o only_o which_o i_o do_v write_v but_z that_o only_o which_o i_o command_v you_o and_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v long_o after_o to_o the_o jew_n according_o 23._o mat._n 23._o the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o command_v you_o observe_v it_o and_o do_v it_o as_o for_o the_o pin_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n they_o be_v so_o mention_v for_o other_o cause_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o doctor_n commentary_n and_o not_o for_o the_o cause_n that_o you_o imagine_v that_o be_v to_o leave_v nothing_o to_o any_o man_n afterward_o in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n for_o how_o say_v you_o then_o by_o david_n and_o solomon_n who_o change_v not_o only_o a_o pin_n yea_o all_o the_o pin_n but_o also_o that_o whole_a tabernacle_n build_v in_o steed_n of_o it_o a_o temple_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o there_o ordain_v musical_a instrument_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n that_o the_o law_n do_v not_o mention_v you_o always_o err_v because_o you_o do_v not_o distinguish_v between_o man_n that_o have_v only_o their_o own_o humane_a spirit_n and_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n the_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o have_v answer_v all_o your_o place_n i_o will_v your_o unlearned_a brother_n to_o know_v of_o it_o he_o that_o every_o year_n send_v out_o the_o newyere_n gift_n and_o what_o else_o i_o know_v not_o and_o to_o tell_v i_o now_o why_o i_o may_v not_o in_o my_o last_o motive_n call_v this_o your_o castle_n of_o only_a scripture_n scripture_n only_o scripture_n your_o weak_a and_o false_a castle_n weak_a because_o you_o have_v no_o defence_n at_o all_o for_o it_o neither_o of_o srripture_n as_o i_o have_v here_o declare_v neither_o of_o doctor_n as_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o will_v declare_v false_a because_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o genesis_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n make_v for_o you_o in_o any_o thing_n nor_o against_o we_o in_o any_o thing_n as_o in_o this_o chapter_n i_o do_v enough_o to_o persuade_v therein_o any_o reasonable_a man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a sleight_n of_o you_o heretic_n and_o a_o mere_a deception_n of_o the_o simple_a when_o you_o be_v overthrow_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n by_o ancient_a father_n and_o so_o by_o many_o other_o our_o weapon_n in_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n yourself_o have_v confess_v to_o set_v a_o bold_a face_n upon_o it_o and_o vaunt_v that_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plainelye_o for_o you_o and_o plain_o against_o us._n in_o which_o boldness_n your_o impudency_n cry_v even_o to_o heaven_n when_o you_o dare_v yet_o vaunt_v thereof_o so_o far_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v fain_o therefore_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v they_o to_o make_v so_o plain_o for_o you_o when_o you_o here_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n and_o your_o master_n and_o scholefelowe_n common_o in_o their_o write_n fear_v not_o to_o open_v your_o mouth_n thus_o against_o god_n holy_a tabernacle_n in_o earth_n i_o that_o be_o nothing_o and_o in_o very_a deed_n nothing_o and_o less_o than_o nothing_o may_v not_o disdain_v the_o like_a open_n at_o i_o by_o the_o foresay_a unlearned_a but_o content_v i_o with_o my_o own_o conscience_n and_o the_o conscience_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o his_o angel_n and_o all_o his_o servant_n that_o know_v i_o by_o my_o person_n or_o by_o my_o writing_n be_v most_o certain_a how_o always_o in_o heart_n and_o word_n i_o have_v honour_v the_o most_o holy_a scripture_n even_o as_o god_n own_o lively_a and_o infallible_a word_n i_o submit_v myself_o with_o david_n in_o a_o humble_a and_o contrite_a heart_n to_o all_o that_o semei_n have_v or_o shall_v utter_v against_o i_o if_o peradventure_o my_o lord_n god_n most_o merciful_a will_v accept_v it_o to_o forgevenes_n of_o my_o manifold_a and_o heinous_a sin_n desire_v of_o he_o no_o other_o revenge_n but_o the_o party_n conversion_n and_o reconciliation_n to_o he_o and_o his_o sweet_a spouse_n my_o lief_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o so_o much_o in_o this_o place_n to_o that_o man_n in_o which_o place_n you_o also_o fellow_n fulke_n negatiuè_fw-fr arg._n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr may_v be_v admonish_v to_o look_v better_o to_o your_o logic_n concern_v your_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr that_o you_o oppose_v it_o no_o more_o to_o our_o so_o many_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la affirmatiuè_fw-fr i_o give_v you_o a_o little_a before_o two_o cause_n thereof_o consider_v they_o well_o i_o pray_v you_o all_o knowledge_n that_o christian_a man_n have_v of_o heavenly_a thing_n you_o say_v 449._o pur._n 449._o to_o maintain_v your_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n word_n mean_v the_o scripture_n therefore_o as_o it_o be_v no_o good_a logic_n to_o conclude_v negative_o of_o one_o place_n or_o book_n of_o scripture_n this_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a so_o of_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o god_n wherein_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v contain_v the_o argument_n be_v most_o invincible_a that_o conclude_v negative_o thus_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n purgatory_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o purgatory_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n let_v purgatory_n alone_o till_o anon_o there_o be_v two_o fault_n i_o say_v in_o this_o reason_n one_o because_o the_o mayor_n be_v false_a as_o to_o all_o your_o text_n allege_v for_o it_o i_o have_v answer_v the_o other_o because_o although_o the_o mayor_n be_v true_a yet_o can_v not_o the_o argument_n be_v
oppose_v to_o our_o argument_n as_o you_o oppose_v it_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n you_o may_v if_o the_o mayor_n be_v true_a labour_n to_o the_o purpose_n i_o grant_v in_o prove_v the_o minor_n but_o you_o may_v not_o i_o say_v for_o all_o that_o make_v of_o it_o a_o opposition_n or_o exception_n when_o we_o make_v argument_n out_o of_o tradition_n counsel_n father_n etc._n etc._n as_o in_o the_o like_a i_o show_v unto_o you_o i_o prove_v a_o doctrine_n unto_o you_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n you_o oppose_v thereunto_o your_o negative_a argument_n and_o say_v to_o i_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o so_o you_o do_v hold_v and_o must_v hold_v that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o teach_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o that_o doctrine_n be_v no_o true_a doctrine_n be_v this_o well_o oppose_v of_o you_o may_v not_o i_o say_v to_o you_o notwithstanding_o yea_o sir_n but_o for_o all_o that_o what_o say_v you_o to_o my_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n unless_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o old_a testament_n itself_o even_o so_o unless_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n direct_o against_o tradition_n themselves_o counsel_n father_n and_o such_o other_o our_o argument_n do_v prevail_v and_o you_o in_o vain_a do_v flee_v to_o only_a scripture_n although_o all_o true_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v in_o scripture_n now_o to_o the_o second_o question_n concern_v the_o church_n ¶_o the_o second_o part_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n about_o the_o church_n his_o contradiction_n be_v very_o many_o and_o very_o palpable_a as_o i_o will_v declare_v in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n here_o i_o have_v to_o examine_v what_o he_o allege_v first_o indefinite_o that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v that_o it_o may_v be_v divorce_v that_o it_o be_v a_o base_a and_o contemptible_a company_n that_o it_o may_v and_o also_o shall_v become_v invisible_a and_o then_o by_o name_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v the_o true_a church_n or_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v it_o not_o j_o of_o the_o church_n indefinite_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v he_o allege_v and_o say_v according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o scripture_n every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n 86._o ar._n 86._o wherefore_o the_o whole_a church_n militant_a consist_v of_o man_n which_o be_v all_o liar_n may_v err_v altogether_o why_o do_v you_o say_v the_o church_n militant_a do_v not_o the_o church_n triumphant_a also_o consist_v of_o man_n if_o therefore_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n why_o may_v not_o they_o also_o err_v no_o doubt_n because_o although_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n of_o themselves_o yet_o some_o man_n may_v notwithstanding_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v verace_n true_a and_o so_o where_o you_o conclude_v thus_o upon_o we_o god_n only_o be_v not_o true_a 451._o pur._n 451._o for_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o err_v you_o may_v conclude_v aswell_o god_n only_o be_v not_o true_a for_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o err_v again_o you_o allege_v and_o say_v the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o god_n have_v no_o such_o privilege_n grant_v 88_o ar._n 88_o but_o that_o she_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n for_o her_o knowledge_n be_v unperfect_a &_o her_o prophesy_v be_v unperfect_a 1._o cor._n 13._o where_o you_o her_z s._n paul_n say_v our_o include_v himself_o also_o in_o that_o speech_n exit_fw-la parte_fw-la enim_fw-la cognoscimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o our_o knowledge_n be_v unperfect_a and_o our_o prophesy_v be_v unperfect_a so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v in_o this_o life_n whether_o we_o speak_v or_o write_v and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v i_o trow_v that_o s._n paul_n therefore_o may_v be_v deceive_v in_o his_o writing_n and_o epistle_n so_o then_o the_o church_n privilege_n knowledge_n prophesy_v may_v be_v unperfect_a and_o yet_o she_o withal_o so_o free_a from_o err_v that_o she_o may_v be_v bold_a in_o her_o determination_n to_o say_v visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la 15._o act._n 15._o it_o have_v be_v think_v good_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o us._n again_o you_o say_v and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n say_v even_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v teach_v to_o say_v every_o day_n 18._o ar_n 88_o pur._n 393._o aug._n retra_n li._n 2._o ca._n 18._o forgeve_v we_o our_o trespass_n but_o why_o so_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v err_v in_o her_o determination_n every_o day_n it_o be_v ridiculous_a so_o to_o say_v why_o they_o propter_fw-la quasdam_fw-la ignorantias_fw-la &_o infirmitates_fw-la membrorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la because_o of_o certain_a venial_a sin_n of_o her_o member_n proceed_v of_o ignorance_n &_o frailty_n say_v s._n augustine_n in_o which_o member_n the_o apostle_n also_o in_o their_o time_n be_v and_o therefore_o they_o also_o according_o be_v teach_v to_o say_v every_o day_n forgeve_v we_o our_o trespass_n and_o do_v say_v according_o 1._o jac_fw-la 3._o 1._o io._n 1._o we_o do_v all_o offend_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o yet_o i_o trow_v they_o do_v not_o err_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o their_o canonical_a write_n and_o determination_n this_o be_v all_o that_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v err_v though_o you_o allege_v one_o other_o place_n that_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n do_v err_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o only_o in_o a_o fact_n not_o in_o a_o doctrine_n yea_o neither_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n but_o a_o piece_n only_o so_o that_o there_o be_v as_o you_o see_v no_o less_o than_o three_o wall_n as_o it_o be_v between_o the_o church_n and_o this_o shot_n of_o you_o these_o be_v your_o word_n 224.456_o pur._n 224.456_o david_n transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o carry_v the_o ark_n upon_o a_o new_a chariotte_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v bear_v upon_o man_n shoulder_n blindness_n …_o y_fw-es blindness_n 1._o chron._n 13._o wherein_o not_o only_a david_n but_o so_o many_o priest_n and_o levite_n so_o good_a a_o bishop_n and_o the_o whole_a general_n council_n of_o israel_n do_v err_v so_o say_v you_o but_o so_o say_v not_o the_o text_n yea_o it_o utter_o confound_v both_o you_o and_o all_o these_o profane_a innovation_n make_v by_o your_o ley_z head_n and_o parliamente_n david_n take_v counsel_n say_v the_o text_n with_o his_o tribune_n and_o centurion_n 1●…_n 1._o par._n 13._o &_o 1●…_n and_o all_o his_o noble_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o consult_v no_o not_o with_o the_o inferior_a sort_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o only_o if_o you_o please_v quoth_v he_o to_o his_o temporal_a lord_n and_o if_o the_o motion_n be_v of_o god_n let_v we_o send_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o brother_n in_o all_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o their_o suburb_n as_o you_o will_v say_v the_o hedge_n priest_n that_o they_o gather_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o fetch_v again_o to_o we_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n and_o so_o they_o begin_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o you_o report_v until_o god_n kill_v oza_n the_o levite_n in_o the_o procession_n and_o so_o make_v david_n afraid_a to_o carry_v it_o any_o further_o but_o three_o month_n after_o have_v find_v his_o error_n he_o gather_v not_o only_o all_o israel_n into_o jerusalem_n but_o also_o filios_fw-la aaron_n sadoc_n et_fw-fr abiathar_n sacerdotes_fw-la the_o successor_n of_o aaron_n sadoc_n and_o abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n &_o levitas_fw-la and_o the_o levite_n with_o the_o head_n of_o they_o be_v these_o six_o vriel_n asaias_n joel_n semeias_n eliel_n and_o aminadab_n these_o two_o bishop_n and_o these_o six_o archedeacons_n that_o i_o may_v so_o term_v they_o he_o call_v and_o say_v unto_o they_o you_o that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o leviticall_a family_n prepare_v yourselves_o together_o with_o your_o brethren_n and_o bring_v the_o ark_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n to_o the_o place_n which_o be_v dress_v for_o it_o lest_o that_o as_o before_o because_o you_o be_v not_o present_a our_o lord_n do_v smite_v we_o so_o now_o also_o it_o happen_v for_o our_o unlawful_a do_v a_o notable_a ensample_n for_o all_o prince_n and_o for_o all_o noble_n to_o remember_v how_o they_o have_v offend_v and_o to_o amend_v it_o according_o and_o all_o a_o maiori_fw-la in_o every_o respect_n above_o the_o high_a degree_n one_o more_o of_o your_o place_n i_o think_v good_a here_o to_o examine_v though_o you_o bring_v it_o not_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v but_o only_o to_o answer_v a_o place_n that_o we_o bring_v for_o the_o contrary_n 86._o ar._n 86._o the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o christ_n you_o say_v can_v never_o be_v void_a of_o god_n spirit_n and_o yet_o she_o may_v err_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v deceive_v in_o some_o thing_n even_o as_o
be_v ordain_v at_o rome_n as_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o infestus_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la dei_fw-la fanda_fw-la atque_fw-la infanda_fw-la comminabatur_fw-la the_o tyrant_n be_v mad_a at_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n for_o that_o fact_n threaten_v as_o the_o devil_n which_o he_o speak_v in_o exceed_a praise_n of_o cornelius_n qui_fw-la sedit_fw-la intrepidus_fw-la romae_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o he_o sit_v bold_o at_o rome_n in_o the_o priestly_a chair_n even_o at_o that_o time_n whereby_o you_o see_v in_o what_o dread_n the_o tyrant_n stand_v of_o the_o church_n though_o they_o so_o hate_v and_o so_o persecute_v it_o who_o ever_o more_o hate_v the_o same_o priest_n and_o the_o church_n with_o he_o than_o you_o yourselves_o who_o at_o every_o word_n do_v blaspheme_v and_o call_v he_o antichrist_n and_o yet_o i_o think_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o they_o be_v &_o have_v be_v these_o thousand_o year_n a_o base_a and_o a_o contemptible_a company_n another_o place_n you_o allege_v blind_o against_o yourself_o say_v and_o s._n paul_n bid_v we_o look_v on_o our_o call_n 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o not_o many_o wise_a man_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a man_n &_o not_o many_o noble_a man_n but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o the_o weak_a of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a so_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o church_n what_o ergo_fw-la always_o do_v not_o your_o text_n say_v that_o the_o wise_a also_o themselves_o &_o the_o strong_a at_o length_n be_v confound_v that_o be_v to_o say_v convert_v do_v you_o not_o see_v how_o it_o follow_v against_o you_o if_o the_o church_n be_v then_o a_o base_a and_o contemptible_a company_n as_o you_o say_v because_o it_o have_v not_o many_o wise_a mighty_a noble_a ergo_fw-la afterward_o it_o be_v otherwise_o when_o it_o have_v get_v in_o also_o the_o prince_n king_n &_o emperor_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o esay_n speak_v 60._o esai_n 60._o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o sea_n the_o fortitude_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v it_o then_o also_o a_o contemptible_a company_n yea_o or_o shall_v it_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n ever_o after_o be_v no_o very_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o time_n or_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n whereof_o i_o shall_v say_v more_o anon_o in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o another_o place_n yourself_o also_o allege_v to_o the_o clean_a contrary_n 73._o ar._n 73._o do_v say_v and_o esay_n declare_v when_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v almost_o all_o destroy_v yet_o a_o remnant_n shall_v be_v save_v which_o though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v small_a yet_o it_o shall_v overflow_v and_o fill_v all_o the_o world_n with_o righteousness_n esay_n 10._o but_o this_o i_o must_v reserve_v to_o the_o chapter_n of_o your_o gross_a contradiction_n last_o of_o all_o as_o concern_v the_o inuisiblenes_n of_o the_o church_n you_o allege_v so_o as_o 450._o pur._n 450._o i_o think_v no_o sober_a man_n will_v one_o while_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o see_v at_o all_o of_o man_n so_o we_o believe_v you_o say_v because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n gal._n 4._o why_o do_v you_o say_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o also_o every_o good_a member_n of_o it_o in_o heaven_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n 3_o philip_n 3_o and_o yet_o you_o believe_v not_o i_o trow_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o see_v at_o all_o of_o man_n another_o while_o you_o say_v 80._o ar._n 80._o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o church_n be_v know_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n as_o he_o say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n &_o i_o know_v they_o john_n 10._o add_v for_o all_o that_o text_n immediate_o and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n if_o your_o text_n import_n that_o it_o suffice_v to_o be_v know_v to_o the_o head_n why_o do_v you_o jumble_v in_o the_o member_n afterward_o chrestes_n know_v of_o his_o sheep_n be_v his_o love_a of_o they_o as_o contrariwise_o to_o the_o goat_n he_o will_v say_v 25._o mat._n 25._o i_o know_v you_o not_o whereupon_o if_o it_o follow_v not_o necessary_o forsooth_o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v invisible_a i_o report_v i_o to_o you_o another_o while_o you_o allege_v that_o although_o not_o always_o yet_o at_o one_o certain_a time_n it_o shall_v become_v invisible_a to_o wit_n at_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n and_o what_o scripture_n have_v you_o for_o that_o thus_o you_o say_v it_o be_v prophesy_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n 27._o ar._n 27._o that_o be_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n &_o knowledge_n of_o the_o wicked_a so_o you_o expound_v that_o text_n of_o your_o own_o head_n again_o 77._o ar._n 77._o if_o the_o church_n shall_v stand_v always_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n than_o the_o defection_n which_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o can_v not_o have_v come_v neither_o shall_v the_o church_n fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n as_o be_v declare_v to_o s._n john_n substantial_a argument_n that_o defection_n be_v your_o heresy_n as_o i_o shall_v straightway_o declare_v &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n &_o the_o church_n stand_v at_o this_o time_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n universal_a the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n both_o visible_a and_o universal_a as_o it_o have_v always_o do_v yea_o in_o the_o time_n that_o be_v to_o come_v when_o your_o great_a lord_n antichrist_n shall_v appear_v in_o person_n even_o then_o also_o the_o church_n shall_v stand_v still_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v in_o all_o the_o former_a persecution_n in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n for_o there_o shall_v be_v preach_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o persecution_n even_o 1260._o day_n 11._o apoc._n 11._o as_o the_o persecution_n shall_v last_v 42._o month_n which_o both_o come_v to_o three_o year_n &_o a_o half_a &_o the_o preach_n shall_v be_v as_o general_a as_o the_o persecution_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o earth_n 14._o apo._n 14._o and_o upon_o every_o nation_n &_o tribe_n &_o language_n &_o people_n exhort_v they_o mighty_o that_o they_o fear_v not_o the_o beast_n nor_o adore_v he_o but_o that_o they_o fear_v the_o lord_n &_o give_v honour_n to_o he_o because_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v again_o that_o the_o persecutor_n be_v in_o number_n as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n 2d_o apoc._n 2d_o shall_v flow_v over_o the_o wide_a world_n super_fw-la latitudinem_fw-la terrae_fw-la and_o so_o compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o belove_a city_n be_v it_o not_o thereby_o plain_o signify_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v at_o the_o same_o time_n together_o with_o her_o enemy_n be_v universal_a and_o super_fw-la latitudinem_fw-la terrae_fw-la and_o therefore_o her_o fly_v then_o into_o the_o wilderness_n can_v be_v understand_v as_o you_o expound_v it_o that_o she_o shall_v be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o wicked_a but_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o she_o shall_v then_o abandon_v more_o than_o ever_o before_o all_o worldly_a pleasure_n be_v content_a to_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o all_o she_o have_v and_o nevertheless_o sustain_v by_o god_n provision_n and_o feed_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n during_o all_o the_o time_n of_o that_o straight_a necessity_n 12._o apoc._n 12._o to_o wit_n 1260._o day_n ij_o namely_o of_o their_o church_n and_o of_o we_o by_o conference_n of_o place_n that_o be_v about_o antichrist_n and_o so_o have_v answer_v all_o that_o you_o allege_v about_o the_o church_n indefinite_o i_o be_o now_o come_v to_o that_o you_o allege_v of_o your_o church_n and_o of_o our_o church_n by_o name_n which_o be_v nothing_o in_o effect_n but_o only_o your_o own_o fond_a and_o voluntary_a apply_v of_o the_o two_o text_n last_o rehearse_v whither_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o error_n move_v you_o that_o neither_o antichrist_n nor_o the_o apostasy_n agree_v to_o bonifacius_n the_o three_o wilderness_n of_o the_o church_n fle_v into_o the_o wilderness_n for_o so_o you_o say_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n that_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v an._n dom._n 607._o when_o boniface_n the_o three_o for_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n first_o obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n his_o antichristian_a exaltation_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o count_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o now_o we_o shall_v hear_v what_o scripture_n warrant_v you_o so_o to_o say_v 16._o ar_n 16._o when_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n in_o the_o west_n seduce_v the_o world_n with_o most_o detestable_a heresy_n than_o be_v
who_o expound_v it_o of_o martyr_n which_o be_v there_o say_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o dye_n in_o our_o lord_n now_o after_o that_o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n you_o reply_v say_v that_o d._n allen_n understanding_n it_o only_o of_o martyr_n ci._n aug._n ca._n 9_o li._n 20._o de_fw-fr ci._n call_v augustine_n to_o witness_v thereof_o but_o that_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o therefore_o overthrow_v purgatory_n witness_v hereof_o i_o will_v not_o take_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n say_v you_o see_v what_o he_o make_v of_o s._n augustine_n but_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 14._o we_o all_o die_v unto_o the_o lord_n your_o skill_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v great_a that_o make_v it_o all_o one_o to_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o die_v to_o the_o lord_n all_o that_o dye_n to_o the_o lord_n have_v as_o the_o apostle_n there_o say_v to_o make_v their_o accompt●_n to_o he_o which_o may_v and_o will_v to_o some_o fall_n out_o to_o their_o damnation_n but_o bless_v be_v all_o they_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n wherefore_o these_o two_o be_v not_o all_o one_o true_a it_o be_v that_o all_o which_o die_v well_o and_o in_o the_o church_n peace_n die_v in_o our_o lord_n as_o they_o be_v call_v also_o dormientes_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la 1._o cor._n 15._o and_o mortui_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la 1._o thes_n 14._o they_o that_o sleep_v in_o christ_n the_o dead_a in_o christ_n wheresoever_o their_o soul_n be_v after_o that_o sleep_a and_o die_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o purgatory_n but_o yet_o the_o place_n apoc._n 14._o be_v very_o well_o say_v of_o d._n allen_n to_o be_v speak_v not_o of_o all_o that_o so_o die_v but_o only_o of_o martyr_n neither_o of_o all_o martyr_n but_o of_o they_o only_o that_o shall_v suffer_v in_o the_o time_n and_o rage_n of_o antichrist_n for_o so_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o letter_n plain_o geve_v you_o therefore_o that_o will_v have_v one_o place_n always_o confer_v with_o another_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n see_v what_o go_v afore_o what_o come_v after_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o last_o time_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a than_o not_o for_o any_o fear_n to_o adore_v the_o beast_n but_o to_o die_v constant_o in_o our_o lord_n for_o now_o the_o resurrection_n be_v even_o at_o hand_n and_o therefore_o their_o labour_n all_o at_o a_o end_n fear_v the_o lord_n say_v one_o angel_n preach_v to_o all_o the_o world_n at_o that_o time_n and_o geve_v honour_n to_o he_o because_o the_o very_a hour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v come_v and_o adore_v he_o adore_v not_o antichrist_n and_o another_o angel_n follow_v say_v cecidit_fw-la cecidit_fw-la down_o down_o be_v fall_v babylon_n and_o another_o angel_n if_o any_o adore_v the_o beast_n he_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o then_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o will_v not_o adore_v the_o beast_n but_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n now_o after_o this_o the_o spirit_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n for_o their_o work_n that_o be_v their_o reward_n do_v follow_v they_o now_o at_o hand_n and_o immediate_o there_o after_o come_v forth_o the_o judge_n upon_o a_o white_a cloud_n and_o the_o siethe_n and_o down_o go_v all_o the_o world_n lo_o this_o be_v the_o circumstance_n whereby_o you_o see_v the_o place_n say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o those_o martyr_n to_o be_v at_o rest_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o die_v but_o only_o within_o a_o very_a short_a time_n after_o this_o be_v the_o place_n that_o quite_o overthrow_v purgatory_n and_o so_o i_o have_v examine_v all_o that_o you_o allege_v for_o go_v straight_o to_o heaven_n another_o way_n you_o proceed_v against_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o judgement_n which_o be_v after_o this_o life_n whether_o the_o judgement_n may_v stand_v with_o purgatory_n the_o tree_n whether_o it_o fall_v to_o the_o south_n or_o the_o north_n 436.439.441_o pur._n 436.439.441_o it_o lie_v ever_o where_o it_o light_v eccl._n 11._o your_o commentary_n upon_o this_o place_n be_v that_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o tree_n to_o the_o south_n or_o to_o the_o north_n be_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n concern_v every_o man_n either_o of_o reward_n or_o of_o punishment_n which_o can_v not_o be_v alter_v after_o a_o man_n death_n and_o therefore_o by_o this_o place_n prayer_n be_v not_o profitable_a why_o who_o say_v that_o prayer_n shall_v so_o alter_v their_o judgement_n some_o be_v judge_v to_o heaven_n but_o differ_v as_o they_o in_o limbo_n at_o the_o very_a same_o time_n when_o this_o be_v write_v and_o other_o not_o so_o good_a both_o then_o and_o now_o in_o purgatory_n to_o bring_v these_o to_o heaven_n whereunto_o they_o be_v so_o judge_v prayer_n do_v serve_v and_o this_o differ_v be_v signify_v by_o the_o wiseman_n even_o in_o the_o same_o place_n quia_fw-la post_fw-la tempora_fw-la multa_fw-la inuenies_fw-la illum_fw-la he_o exhort_v they_o to_o do_v almesdéedes_o and_o all_o other_o good_a work_n that_o they_o can_v because_o a_o great_a while_n after_o thou_o shall_v find_v it_o the_o tree_n that_o fall_v in_o the_o south_n it_o may_v be_v a_o good_a while_n after_o before_o he_o be_v all_o trim_v for_o not_o the_o soul_n only_o but_o also_o the_o body_n fall_v to_o be_v reward_v or_o punish_v and_o who_o see_v not_o how_o long_o after_o the_o fall_v it_o be_v before_o the_o body_n have_v according_o only_o before_o his_o fall_n let_v every_o one_o look_n to_o his_o work_n for_o after_o the_o fall_n 16._o luc._n 16._o he_o shall_v find_v chaos_n magnum_fw-la a_o huge_a distance_n between_o the_o north_n and_o the_o south_n and_o therefore_o no_o possibility_n of_o remove_v from_o the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o that_o place_n as_o d._n allen_n tell_v you_o before_o and_o your_o reply_n against_o it_o be_v tootoo_o frivolous_a for_o you_o say_v that_o then_o they_o shall_v always_o lie_v in_o purgatory_n because_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v as_o great_a before_o they_o be_v bear_v as_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a certainty_n of_o their_o salvation_n that_o by_o he_o the_o wiseman_n speak_v of_o rise_v after_o their_o die_v in_o grace_n of_o the_o unalterable_a judgement_n that_o by_o yourself_o the_o wiseman_n speak_v of_o and_o it_o be_v the_o impossibility_n of_o remove_v to_o the_o north_n or_o to_o damnation_n what_o make_v this_o against_o remove_v out_o of_o purgatory_n into_o heaven_n which_o be_v not_o remove_v out_o of_o the_o south_n into_o the_o north_n but_o only_o further_a into_o the_o south_n even_o into_o the_o final_a place_n that_o straight_o after_o his_o fall_n both_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v judge_v unto_o you_o argue_v again_o of_o the_o judgement_n say_v 281._o pur._n 281._o immediate_o after_o death_n follow_v judgement_n but_o prayer_n either_o need_v not_o or_o boot_n not_o when_o the_o party_n be_v either_o acquit_v or_o condemn_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n which_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v can_v not_o be_v indifferent_a between_o reward_n and_o punishment_n de_fw-fr lib._n arb_n li._n 3._o cap._n 23._o s._n augustine_n say_v there_o the_o contrary_a rather_o as_o you_o shall_v see_v if_o you_o read_v the_o place_n and_o to_o your_o argument_n i_o say_v in_o that_o judgement_n some_o be_v condemn_v to_o hell_n for_o who_o prayer_n boot_n not_o other_o be_v acquit_v from_o hell_n and_o of_o these_o some_o straight_o reward_v in_o their_o soul_n and_o so_o prayer_n need_v not_o but_o not_o yet_o reward_v in_o their_o body_n and_o for_o that_o therefore_o they_o pray_v apoc._n 6._o until_o they_o be_v hear_v apoc._n 11._o other_o not_o straight_o reward_v neither_o in_o their_o soul_n and_o of_o these_o again_o some_o without_o poena_fw-la sensus_fw-la punishment_n of_o sense_n only_o differ_v as_o they_o in_o limbo_n who_o pray_v according_o no_o less_o than_o the_o foresay_a for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o body_n other_o first_o to_o be_v punish_v temporal_o according_a to_o their_o debt_n 5._o mat._n 5._o to_o wit_n for_o be_v angry_a or_o say_v raca_n and_o they_o to_o be_v not_o only_o let_v out_o of_o their_o prison_n because_o it_o be_v not_o gehenna_n ignis_fw-la for_o they_o say_v not_o fatue_n but_o also_o reward_v for_o their_o merit_n and_o for_o these_o again_o while_o they_o be_v in_o prison_n prayer_n as_o they_o need_v so_o also_o they_o boot_n because_o the_o judge_n be_v merciful_a and_o so_o you_o see_v no_o less_o than_o three_o sort_n which_o your_o division_n lack_v 436.444_o pur._n 436.444_o and_o thereby_o at_o once_o be_v answer_v your_o other_o objection_n of_o the_o
his_o first_o epistle_n tell_v he_o 3._o 1._o joh._n 3._o o_o my_o child_n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o work_v justice_n be_v just_a freewill_a freewill_a you_o allege_v also_o two_o place_n against_o fréewill_a which_o again_o concern_v good_a work_n in_o general_a 450._o pur._n 450._o we_o believe_v that_o man_n after_o his_o fall_n have_v not_o freewill_n no_o not_o aptness_n of_o will_n to_o think_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 2._o cor._n 3._o s._n paul_n word_n be_v these_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v of_o god_n this_o do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o we_o natural_a fréewill_n nor_o natural_a aptness_n of_o will_n as_o it_o do_v not_o take_v away_o ourselves_o from_o we_o but_o only_o it_o show_v from_o whence_o we_o have_v power_n to_o do_v as_o we_o do_v in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o wit_n of_o god_n gift_n and_o not_o of_o ourselves_o if_o your_o scholar_n shall_v upon_o just_a cause_n commend_v himself_o for_o write_v as_o s._n paul_n there_o commenmend_v himself_o for_o convert_n heart_n to_o god_n and_o then_o to_o avoid_v arrogancy_n shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o himself_o but_o of_o his_o master_n instruction_n that_o he_o can_v write_v so_o well_o the_o scholar_n for_o all_o this_o i_o trow_v have_v understanding_n and_o aptness_n to_o understand_v for_o else_o how_o can_v he_o have_v be_v teach_v to_o write_v you_o know_v the_o scripture_n liken_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o a_o teacher_n 118._o joan._n 6._o heb._n 10._o psa_fw-la 118._o and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o teach_v of_o our_o heart_n or_o will_n your_o other_o place_n i_o find_v pur._n 35._o how_o shall_v freewill_n be_v maintain_v if_o god_n spirit_n have_v any_o place_n that_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n 1._o cor._n 12._o you_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o man_n afore_o his_o fall_n have_v fréewill_n and_o yet_o god_n spirit_n then_o also_o do_v distribute_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o now_o likewise_o after_o the_o fall_n do_v not_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o very_a same_o chapter_n give_v some_o place_n to_o man_n will_n in_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n say_n to_o the_o corinthian_n covet_v after_o the_o better_a gift_n but_o special_o after_o charity_n because_o that_o pass_v all_o those_o gift_n 14._o 1._o cor._n 12.13_o 14._o yea_o and_o faith_n and_o hope_v also_o therefore_o sectamini_fw-la labour_v all_o that_o you_o can_v for_o charity_n marry_o covet_v also_o after_o those_o gift_n to_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o to_o prophesy_v but_o of_o the_o two_o rather_o for_o to_o prophesy_v again_o he_o that_o speak_v with_o a_o tongue_n let_v he_o pray_v to_o interpret_v see_v how_o plain_o he_o stir_v their_o mind_n or_o will_n to_o seek_v for_o the_o gift_n that_o god_n give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n this_o deceive_v you_o that_o you_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o god_n can_v work_v his_o own_o will_n upon_o our_o will_n and_o therefore_o you_o imagine_v that_o he_o be_v not_o omnipotent_a if_o we_o have_v will_n of_o our_o own_o yes_o sir_n be_v our_o will_n never_o so_o unwilling_a he_o can_v as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o the_o conversion_n of_o s._n paul_n turn_v they_o to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o to_o the_o very_a bend_n of_o his_o own_o will_n more_o or_o less_o even_o as_o much_o as_o he_o wil._n howbeit_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o s._n paul_n there_o treat_v special_o of_o the_o gift_n call_v gratiae_n gratis_o datae_fw-la and_o not_o gratum_fw-la facientes_fw-la in_o the_o distribution_n whereof_o god_n will_v may_v and_o do_v common_o work_v without_o cooperation_n of_o man_n will_n although_o man_n will_n may_v in_o such_o also_o and_o do_v sometime_o concur_v as_o in_o they_o that_o pray_v for_o the_o gift_n to_o interpret_v tongue_n about_o good-worke_n in_o special_a i_o come_v with_o you_o now_o to_o the_o species_n of_o good-worke_n saint_n prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o first_o to_o prayer_n and_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a i_o have_v already_o dispatch_v then_o against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n what_o have_v you_o 451._o pur._n 451._o we_o call_v not_o upon_o saint_n because_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o they_o for_o how_o shall_v we_o call_v upon_o they_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v not_o rom._n 10._o again_o 310._o pur._n 310._o touch_v ambrose_n and_o some_o other_o also_o about_o his_o time_n their_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o show_v that_o we_o can_v invocate_v none_o but_o he_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v which_o to_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v god_n only_o and_o yet_o if_o you_o remember_v since_o the_o second_o chapter_n s._n ambrose_n and_o his_o fellow_n of_o that_o time_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o i_o must_v keep_v that_o to_o your_o contradiction_n in_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n 6._o heb._n 13._o eph._n 6._o and_o again_o s._n paul_n himself_o be_v i_o trow_v agreeable_a to_o his_o own_o doctrine_n who_o yet_o so_o often_o invocate_v and_o call_v upon_o the_o faithful_a beseech_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o well_o then_o to_o your_o objection_n where_o be_v your_o scripture_n for_o you_o will_v not_o if_o you_o be_v a_o man_n of_o your_o word_n run_v to_o doctor_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v in_o god_n only_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o believe_v philem_n believe_v exo._n 14._o in_o heb._n 2._o par._n 20._o in_o heb._n philem_n in_o his_o saint_n also_o the_o scripture_n in_o your_o own_o place_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n teach_v i_o to_o believe_v also_o 3._o also_o john_n 14_o rom._n 3._o in_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n and_o namely_o in_o his_o blood_n also_o the_o créede_v of_o the_o first_o nicene_n council_n teach_v i_o to_o believe_v aucorat_n believe_v ar._n 83._o epi._n in_o fine_a aucorat_n in_o the_o one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n as_o you_o may_v see_v also_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n set_v forth_o by_o your_o own_o master_n 34._o high_a contr_n lucif_n infra_fw-la ca._n 10_o they_fw-mi 34._o beza_n and_o s._n hierome_n say_v that_o it_o be_v solenne_n the_o custom_n in_o baptism_n after_o confession_n of_o the_o trinity_n to_o ask_v credis_fw-la in_o sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la do_v thou_o believe_v in_o holy_a church_n and_o immediate_o he_o add_v in_o what_o church_n believe_v the_o arrian_n in_o the_o arrian_n church_n but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o church_n in_o our_o church_n sed_fw-la extra_fw-la hanc_fw-la baptizatus_fw-la but_o be_v baptize_v out_o of_o she_o he_o can_v not_o believe_v in_o she_o that_o he_o know_v not_o even_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o place_n that_o you_o allege_v how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o god_n his_o intent_n there_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n be_v of_o god_n whereby_o you_o perceive_v that_o s._n hierome_n remember_v the_o place_n well_o enough_o brief_o therefore_o we_o believe_v not_o in_o the_o arrian_n church_n nor_o in_o the_o arrian_n saint_n nor_o in_o your_o church_n nor_o in_o your_o saint_n but_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o her_o saint_n because_o it_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n his_o church_n god_n &_o christ_n his_o saint_n and_o so_o we_o do_v not_o invocate_v arius_n nor_o hus_n nor_o luther_n nor_o caluine_n nor_o any_o other_o falsenamed_a saint_n of_o heretic_n but_o after_o god_n we_o invocate_v christ_n the_o man_n our_o lord_n and_o his_o most_o glorious_a mother_n our_o lady_n and_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o catholic_a saint_n both_o beléeve_v in_o god_n in_o christ_n in_o his_o saint_n and_o also_o invocate_a god_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n not_o all_o alike_o but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o degree_n the_o degree_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v so_o far_o different_a from_o the_o degree_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v incomparable_a you_o deceive_v yourself_o with_o this_o distinction_n credo_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la credo_fw-la deo_fw-la credo_fw-la deum_fw-la i_o believe_v in_o god_n i_o believe_v to_o god_n 12._o aug._n in_o io._n tr_fw-la 29._o theoph._n in_o io._n 12._o i_o believe_v god_n have_v hear_v that_o some_o author_n do_v in_o a_o certain_a sense_n make_v it_o be_v god_n alone_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v and_o not_o know_v that_o other_o author_n &_o also_o the_o scripture_n will_v in_o another_o sense_n have_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o such_o as_o be_v of_o god_n as_o of_o
the_o dead_a these_o two_o place_n of_o s._n hieromes_n be_v all_o that_o he_o allege_v now_o touch_v scripture_n that_o we_o allege_v for_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v good_a although_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a unless_o he_o can_v fortify_v his_o new_a castellet_n of_o only_a scripture_n better_o than_o yet_o he_o have_v do_v to_o examine_v whether_o the_o doctor_n do_v say_v as_o he_o pretend_v either_o general_o that_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o make_v for_o purgatory_n &_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o so_o much_o as_o namely_o this_o place_n or_o that_o place_n do_v not_o whether_o the_o doctor_n say_v no_o scripture_n to_o make_v for_o it_o for_o the_o first_o tertullian_n speak_v no_o more_o but_o of_o the_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o we_o make_v upon_o their_o year_n mindday_n say_v militis_fw-la tertul._n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la huius_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la si_fw-la legem_fw-la expostules_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la nullam_fw-la inuenies_fw-la for_o this_o discipline_n if_o thou_o require_v a_o law_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v find_v none_o traditio_fw-la tibi_fw-la praetendetur_fw-la autrix_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la confirmatrix_fw-la &_o fides_n obseruatrix_fw-la tradition_n shall_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o custom_n the_o corfirmer_n &_o faith_n the_o observer_n now_o come_v fulke_n which_o also_o i_o note_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o for_o this_o one_o particular_a be_v bold_a to_o say_v general_o 3_o par._n 2._o diu_fw-la 3_o that_o all_o offering_n and_o all_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v confess_v of_o tertullian_n to_o be_v beside_o the_o scripture_n as_o where_o he_o say_v 264._o pur._n 264._o they_o that_o be_v s._n chrysostome_n with_o some_o other_o old_a doctor_n as_o also_o now_o their_o successor_n the_o catholic_n labour_n to_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n to_o find_v that_o which_o tertullian_n confess_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o 268._o pur._n 268._o again_o tertullian_n have_v discharge_v you_o of_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n already_o again_o tertullian_n as_o wise_a a_o man_n as_o m._n allen_n 275._o pur._n 275._o affirm_v as_o we_o hear_v before_o that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o scripture_n again_o 286._o pur._n 286._o never_o once_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o confess_v by_o tertullian_n one_o that_o lean_v to_o some_o part_n of_o your_o cause_n again_o 393._o pur._n 393._o he_o utter_o deni_v that_o they_o come_v from_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o by_o tertullia_n judgement_n you_o do_v abuse_v the_o scripture_n again_o 410._o pur._n 410._o pray_v and_o offer_v for_o the_o dead_a as_o tertullian_n himself_o confess_v be_v not_o teach_v by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o soon_o after_o to_o show_v that_o tertullian_n with_o montanus_n have_v in_o all_o point_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o papist_n amongst_o other_o point_n of_o his_o opinion_n he_o note_v 417._o pur._n 417._o that_o all_o small_a offence_n must_v as_o he_o think_v be_v punish_v after_o this_o life_n where_o the_o prison_n be_v and_o the_o uttermost_a farthing_n to_o be_v pay_v mat._n 5._o but_o reserve_v that_o to_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n as_o one_o of_o his_o gross_a contradiction_n i_o will_v here_o note_v how_o upon_o the_o foresay_a particular_a of_o only_a tertullian_n he_o be_v far_o more_o bold_a than_o yet_o we_o have_v hear_v 363._o pur._n 363._o for_o thus_o he_o say_v they_o themselves_o that_o be_v the_o old_a doctor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n confess_v that_o prayer_n &_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o take_v at_o all_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 435._o pur._n 435._o as_o tertullian_n augustine_n and_o other_o again_o of_o they_o among_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o maintain_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o most_o confess_v they_o have_v it_o not_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n they_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o scripture_n this_o he_o say_v of_o s._n augustine_n by_o name_n and_o withal_o of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o father_n have_v in_o his_o whole_a book_n no_o such_o say_n of_o any_o other_o neither_o even_o that_o of_o tertullia_n import_v so_o much_o but_o only_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v so_o then_o have_v i_o show_v that_o he_o fail_v in_o this_o that_o he_o brag_v of_o the_o doctor_n confess_v against_o themselves_o and_o we_o as_o though_o general_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o do_v make_v for_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o particular_a scripture_n thus_o he_o say_v of_o certain_a particular_a text_n 103._o pu._n 103._o s._n augustine_n although_o otherwise_o incline_v to_o the_o error_n of_o purgatory_n yet_o he_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o text_n 1._o cor._n 3._o of_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v through_o fire_n prove_v it_o not_o neither_o aught_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o it_o and_o that_o he_o show_v by_o many_o reason_n enchirid_a ad_fw-la laur._n ca_fw-mi 68_o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o fire_n be_v mean_v the_o trial_n of_o tribulation_n in_o this_o life_n you_o say_v that_o he_o affirm_v it_o but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a place_n and_o with_o doubtfulness_n speak_v according_o non_fw-la absurdè_fw-la accipi_fw-la possunt_fw-la so_o may_v this_o and_o this_o be_v interpret_v not_o absurd_o and_o where_o you_o say_v he_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o text_n prove_v not_o purgatory_n and_o again_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v of_o it_o and_o again_o that_o he_o show_v the_o same_o by_o many_o reason_n all_o be_v false_a no_o such_o matter_n only_o he_o show_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v after_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o origeniste_n of_o hell_n fire_n as_o though_o they_o that_o be_v in_o it_o may_v at_o the_o length_n be_v save_v and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v expound_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n in_o this_o life_n yea_o moreover_o he_o say_v express_o that_o it_o may_v be_v expound_v also_o of_o some_o other_o like_o fire_n after_o this_o life_n clean_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o you_o here_o report_n of_o he_o though_o in_o other_o place_n you_o also_o yourself_o contrary_a to_o yourself_o do_v report_v the_o same_o whereof_o i_o shall_v anon_o have_v occasion_n to_o say_v more_o in_o the_o three_o division_n of_o this_o chapter_n this_o be_v the_o only_a place_n of_o all_o that_o d._n allen_n do_v allege_v for_o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o fulke_n pretend_v any_o doctor_n to_o say_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v thereof_o but_o where_o he_o say_v thus_o speak_v of_o d._n allen_n 145._o pur._n 145._o for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o satisfy_v his_o demand_n he_o will_v know_v and_o have_v we_o appose_v from_o whence_o we_o have_v that_o new_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n that_o he_o which_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n for_o neglect_v of_o reconciliation_n while_o he_o be_v in_o the_o way_n 5._o mat._n 5._o be_v cast_v into_o hell_n from_o whence_o he_o shall_v never_o come_v and_o then_o allege_v for_o that_o sense_n chrysostome_n augustine_n hierome_n and_o chromatius_n this_o i_o say_v be_v pass_v childish_a although_o it_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v not_o that_o all_o those_o doctor_n have_v that_o sense_n for_o d._n allen_n demand_v no_o such_o thing_n read_v his_o word_n whosoever_o will_n yea_o straight_o after_o recite_v the_o protestant_n objection_n that_o the_o place_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 148.151_o pur._n 148.151_o allege_v for_o purgatory_n though_o they_o be_v thus_o expound_v of_o the_o doctor_n for_o purgatory_n yet_o sometime_o they_o be_v construe_v otherwise_o by_o the_o father_n themselves_o i_o answer_v to_o this_o he_o say_v and_o free_o confess_v it_o for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o question_n between_o we_o whether_o the_o father_n have_v expound_v those_o text_n of_o other_o point_n of_o our_o catholic_a faith_n for_o if_o they_o have_v what_o make_v that_o against_o we_o but_o this_o whether_o they_o have_v expound_v those_o text_n for_o purgatory_n which_o if_o they_o have_v that_o make_v with_o we_o and_o whether_o they_o have_v expound_v they_o or_o any_o other_o against_o purgatory_n which_o if_o they_o have_v that_o make_v with_o you_o as_o for_o the_o diversity_n of_o true_a sense_n the_o church_n have_v ever_o give_v room_n say_v d._n allen_n to_o the_o expositor_n according_a to_o every_o one_o gift_n only_o provide_v that_o no_o man_n of_o singularity_n father_n any_o falsehood_n upon_o any_o text_n howbeit_o also_o every_o one_o true_a sense_n be_v not_o always_o the_o very_a right_n and_o proper_a sense_n of_o that_o same_o text_n whereof_o i_o speak_v
the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o count_n it_o not_o at_o all_o catholic_a whatsoever_o shall_v appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_v appoint_v you_o be_v a_o great_a reader_n of_o the_o doctor_n i_o see_v whosoever_o make_v that_o homily_n he_o take_v those_o word_n out_o of_o that_o brief_a instruction_n which_o in_o the_o first_o tome_n of_o the_o counsel_n follow_v the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n celestinus_fw-la to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n concern_v the_o semipelagian_o which_o bishop_n i_o think_v to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o instruction_n they_o take_v it_o and_o so_o they_o say_v out_o of_o the_o determination_n of_o those_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o who_o time_n pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la begin_v their_o heresy_n that_o be_v p._n innocentius_n and_o p._n zozimus_n and_o out_o of_o certain_a aphrican_a counsel_n approve_v by_o those_o pope_n and_o after_o 8._o or_o 9_o such_o canon_n or_o article_n they_o make_v a_o end_n say_v as_o for_o certain_a more_o subtle_a point_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o resolve_v upon_o they_o we_o think_v all_o that_o suffice_v enough_o which_o the_o write_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_n teach_v we_o according_a to_o the_o foresay_a rule_n or_o canon_n in_o no_o wise_a think_v it_o catholic_a that_o shall_v appear_v to_o be_v contrary_a praefixis_fw-la sententijs_fw-la to_o the_o resolution_n set_v here_o before_o again_o in_o gen._n hom._n 58._o thou_o see_v into_o what_o great_a absurdity_n they_o fall_v qui_fw-la divinae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la canonem_fw-la sequi_fw-la nolunt_fw-la which_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o permit_v all_o to_o their_o own_o cogitation_n he_o answer_v the_o heretic_n which_o say_v that_o our_o lord_n take_v not_o true_a flesh_n then_o say_v chrysostome_n he_o neither_o be_v crucify_v nor_o die_v nor_o be_v bury_v nor_o rise_v again_o into_o such_o absurdity_n they_o fall_v because_o they_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o plain_a line_n of_o scripture_n but_o their_o own_o imagination_n of_o putative_a flesh_n such_o as_o be_v in_o the_o apparition_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o be_v this_o for_o only_a scripture_n but_o if_o we_o be_v further_o urge_v we_o will_v allege_v that_o which_o he_o say_v in_o euang._n joan._n hom._n 58._o he_o that_o use_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o climb_v another_o way_n id_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la concessa_fw-la via_fw-la that_o be_v by_o a_o way_n not_o allow_v be_v a_o thief_n o_o christian_n spirit_n if_o you_o be_v urge_v you_o will_v call_v s._n chrysostome_n a_o thief_n by_o his_o own_o say_n for_o use_v tradition_n as_o though_o he_o use_v not_o scripture_n which_o use_v tradition_n or_o that_o scripture_n do_v not_o warrant_v tradition_n as_o 2._o the._n 2._o the_o thing_n which_o s._n chrysostome_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v this_o that_o antichrist_n and_o those_o pseudochriste_n judas_n galileus_n theudas_n and_o such_o other_o also_o heretic_n &_o schismatic_n as_o luther_n caluine_n &c._n &c._n can_v show_v any_o commission_n out_o of_o scripture_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o the_o other_o catholic_a pastor_n that_o succeed_v they_o come_v into_o their_o cure_n by_o good_a warrant_n of_o scripture_n these_o therefore_o be_v true_a pastor_n the_o other_o be_v thief_n we_o may_v be_v as_o bold_a with_o chrysostome_n as_o he_o say_v he_o will_v be_v with_o paul_n himself_o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la tim._n hom._n 2._o plus_fw-fr aliquid_fw-la dicam_fw-la i_o will_v say_v somewhat_o more_o we_o must_v not_o be_v rule_v by_o paul_n himself_o if_o he_o speak_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v his_o own_o and_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v humane_a but_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o apostle_n when_o he_o carry_v christ_n speak_v in_o he_o and_o when_o be_v that_o when_o he_o speak_v all_o only_a by_o scripture_n will_v you_o not_o obey_v he_o then_o when_o he_o say_v ego_fw-la enim_fw-la accepi_fw-la a_o domino_fw-la for_o i_o receive_v it_o of_o our_o lord_n mouth_n 1._o cor._n 1●_n see_v in_o what_o a_o proper_a sense_n you_o use_v chrysostoms_n word_n these_o be_v the_o four_o place_n one_o other_o you_o have_v elsewhere_o say_v chrysostome_n upon_o luke_n cap._n 16._o say_v lazaro_n ar._n 12._o chrys_n con_fw-mi 3._o de_fw-fr lazaro_n that_o ignorance_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v breed_v heresy_n and_o bring_v in_o corrupt_a life_n yea_o it_o have_v turn_v all_o thing_n upsidedowne_v by_o which_o it_o appear_v by_o what_o mean_v he_o will_v have_v heresy_n keep_v away_o namely_o by_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o who_o will_v not_o the_o same_o it_o be_v therefore_o our_o daily_a study_n and_o we_o see_v ourselves_o and_o show_v other_o thereby_o the_o abomination_n of_o your_o heresy_n and_o how_o you_o will_v face_v they_o out_o with_o a_o card_n of_o ten_o but_o what_o make_v this_o for_o only_a scripture_n to_o be_v of_o authority_n as_o s._n chrysostome_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n s._n leo_n be_v of_o your_o side_n you_o say_v against_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o for_o where_o d._n allen_n allege_v this_o say_n of_o he_o pentecost_n pur._n 387._o leo_fw-la ser._n 2._o de_fw-la ieiunio_fw-la pentecost_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n by_o general_n custom_n of_o devotion_n keep_v and_o retain_v it_o come_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n you_o answer_v that_o the_o say_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a may_v be_v back_v with_o the_o write_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a epist_n 10._o they_o fall_v into_o this_o folly_n which_o when_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o some_o obscurity_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n have_v not_o recourse_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n nor_o to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o themselves_o in_o these_o word_n leo_n as_o great_a as_o you_o will_v have_v he_o make_v the_o scripture_n and_o not_o custom_n or_o tradition_n the_o rule_n of_o truth_n so_o you_o gather_v of_o those_o word_n as_o also_o in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v overthrow_v heresy_n 14._o ar._n 14._o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o leo_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o epist_n 10._o ad_fw-la flavianum_fw-la contra_fw-la eutichen_n plain_o confess_v he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o truth_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o that_o be_v whereof_o he_o there_o intreat_v to_o wit_n the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n marry_o when_o a_o truth_n be_v express_v in_o the_o scripture_n recourse_n must_v be_v have_v to_o the_o scripture_n so_o he_o say_v but_o he_o say_v not_o to_o the_o scripture_n only_o yea_o in_o the_o very_a same_o ten_o epistle_n he_o blame_v eutiche_n the_o heretic_n much_o more_o for_o not_o have_v recourse_n neither_o so_o much_o as_o to_o our_o common_a creed_n which_o be_v not_o scripture_n you_o wot_v well_o but_o a_o tradition_n 15._o ar._n 15._o of_o the_o same_o judgement_n you_o say_v be_v not_o leo_n only_o but_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o sixth_o actione_n 18._o confess_v that_o the_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n grow_v so_o fast_o because_o they_o be_v not_o beat_v down_o by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o confess_v the_o same_o howbeit_o the_o council_n do_v not_o but_o what_o be_v that_o for_o only_a scripture_n yea_o the_o place_n be_v plain_a for_o the_o other_o side_n i_o marvel_v you_o can_v not_o espy_v as_o much_o even_o by_o the_o piece_n that_o you_o allege_v although_o you_o see_v not_o the_o whole_a circumstance_n be_v true_o translate_v this_o it_o be_v if_o all_o man_n have_v simple_o and_o without_o calliditie_n from_o the_o beginning_n receive_v the_o gospel_n preach_v and_o be_v content_n with_o the_o apostle_n institution_n the_o matter_n very_o have_v be_v well_o a_o fine_a and_o neither_o the_o author_n of_o the_o heresy_n nor_o the_o fautor_n of_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v put_v to_o the_o pain_n of_o conflict_n who_o will_v rest_v here_o as_o you_o do_v and_o not_o imagine_v somewhat_o to_o follow_v with_o a_o but_o necessary_a to_o be_v see_v sed_fw-la quia_fw-la satanas_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o devil_n not_o rest_v raise_v up_o his_o squire_n therefore_o christ_n also_o in_o time_n convenient_a have_v raise_v up_o his_o warrior_n against_o they_o to_o wit_n the_o general_n counsel_n that_o to_o this_o time_n have_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v six_o in_o number_n so_o express_o they_o avouch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o you_o allege_v they_o for_o only_a scripture_n whereas_o also_o in_o the_o word_n that_o
place_n now_o what_o make_v all_o this_o for_o fulke_n unless_o he_o think_v he_o have_v any_o vantage_n in_o his_o own_o false_a translation_n of_o acta_fw-la turn_v it_o decree_v yea_o do_v it_o not_o make_v against_o he_o most_o invincible_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n also_o that_o s._n augustine_n have_v write_v against_o the_o donatist_n for_o his_o church_n &_o we_o that_o be_v for_o the_o church_n beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o thence_o sprede_n over_o all_o nation_n to_o the_o very_a last_o time_n even_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n altogether_o as_o it_o have_v do_v to_o s._n augustine_n time_n iij_o about_o certain_a tradition_n upon_o this_o question_n of_o only_a scripture_n i_o have_v stand_v long_o because_o only_a scripture_n &_o only_a faith_n be_v with_o the_o protestant_n all_o in_o all_o howbeit_o they_o have_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o faith_n now_o to_o dispatch_v other_o question_n very_o brief_o against_o certain_a tradition_n fulke_n allege_v say_v beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la a_fw-la papist_n and_o a_o great_a antiquary_n affirm_v that_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o other_o counsel_n which_o he_o have_v see_v in_o library_n those_o oblation_n pro_fw-la natalitijs_fw-la with_o other_o superstition_n that_o tertullian_n father_v upon_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v abrogate_a as_o touch_v oblation_n pro_fw-la natalitijs_fw-la i_o have_v answer_v in_o the_o sixth_o chapter_n v._n cap._n 6._o par_fw-fr 1._o v._n but_o as_o for_o abrogation_n of_o any_o other_o tradition_n rhenanus_fw-la have_v never_o a_o word_n iiij_o about_o the_o marriage_n of_o votary_n for_o the_o marriage_n of_o such_o as_o have_v vow_v virginity_n 22.23_o ar._n 45._o pur._n 22.23_o you_o allege_v one_o place_n of_o epiphanius_n thrice_o &_o another_o of_o s._n hieromes_n twice_o and_o all_o about_o a_o matter_n that_o we_o hold_v even_o as_o they_o do_v thus_o you_o say_v epiphanius_n 61._o hpiph_n li._n 2_o haer._n 61._o although_o he_o count_v it_o a_o offence_n to_o marry_v after_o their_o vow_n therein_o he_o be_v with_o we_o you_o know_v yet_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o such_o as_o secret_o live_v in_o fornication_n sub_fw-la specie_fw-la solitudinis_fw-la aut_fw-la continentiae_fw-la under_o the_o colour_n of_o vow_a singleness_n or_o continency_n it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v that_o first_o be_v not_o in_o epiphanius_n melius_fw-la est_fw-la itaque_fw-la unum_fw-la peccatum_fw-la habere_fw-la &_o non_fw-la plura_fw-la it_o be_v better_a to_o have_v one_o sin_n rather_o than_o many_o it_o be_v better_a for_o he_o that_o be_v fall_v from_o his_o course_n wherein_o he_o begin_v to_o run_v for_o the_o crown_n of_o virginity_n open_o to_o take_v a_o wife_n according_a to_o the_o law_n &_o a_o virginitate_fw-la multo_fw-la tempore_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la agere_fw-la and_o a_o long_a time_n to_o repent_v to_o do_v penance_n for_o break_v that_o vow_n of_o his_o virginity_n and_o so_o have_v do_v his_o full_a penance_n to_o be_v bring_v again_o into_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o which_o he_o be_v cast_v as_o a_o excommunicate_a person_n for_o break_v his_o vow_n as_o one_o that_o have_v do_v amiss_o as_o one_o that_o be_v fall_v and_o break_v and_o have_v need_n to_o be_v bind_v rather_o than_o to_o be_v wound_v daily_o with_o privy_a dart_n of_o that_o wickedness_n which_o the_o devil_n put_v into_o he_o so_o know_v the_o church_n to_o preach_v haec_fw-la sunt_fw-la sanationis_fw-la medicamenta_fw-la these_o be_v the_o medicine_n of_o heal_a whereof_o you_o gather_v and_o say_v that_o epiphanius_n call_v marriage_n of_o such_o man_n a_o wholesome_a medicine_n contrary_a to_o that_o you_o confess_v yourself_o that_o he_o call_v it_o a_o sin_n for_o so_o do_v the_o apostle_n tradition_n say_v he_o unless_o perhaps_o you_o think_v sin_n to_o be_v a_o wholesome_a medicine_n no_o sir_n the_o wholesome_a medicine_n be_v his_o long_a penance_n and_o his_o reconcilement_n to_o the_o church_n again_o but_o at_o the_o least_o say_v you_o epiphanius_n allow_v marriage_n in_o they_o whereas_o the_o popish_a church_n do_v separate_v they_o from_o their_o wife_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n after_o a_o solemn_a vow_n which_o be_v make_v but_o only_o two_o way_n by_o take_v holy_a order_n &_o by_o profess_v some_o common_a approve_a rule_n of_o religion_n to_o marry_v be_v virginitate_fw-la be_v chry._n ep_v 6_o ad_fw-la theod._n monachun_n lapsum_fw-la basil_n lib._n de_fw-fr virginitate_fw-la no_o marriage_n and_o thereupon_o it_o be_v that_o no_o doctor_n can_v be_v allege_v which_o allow_v it_o for_o marriage_n if_o priest_n or_o such_o profess_a monk_n and_o nun_n do_v marry_v but_o the_o sole_a vow_n of_o virginity_n and_o of_o widowhood_n be_v none_o of_o those_o two_o and_o therefore_o but_o a_o simple_a vow_n and_o therefore_o to_o marry_v after_o it_o although_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mortal_a sin_n yet_o the_o marriage_n hold_v so_o say_v epiphanius_n and_o so_o say_v we_o as_o some_o widow_n in_o england_n have_v take_v the_o mantle_n and_o the_o ring_n and_o marry_v afterward_o can_v bear_v we_o witness_v who_o marriage_n we_o have_v allow_v of_o though_o they_o may_v not_o use_v it_o so_o free_o without_o just_a dispensation_n as_o other_o marry_a folk_n and_o as_o their_o husband_n may_v because_o of_o their_o vow_n and_o cure_v they_o by_o penance_n &_o reconciliation_n altogether_o as_o epiphanius_n here_o witness_v of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n 1._o hie._n ad_fw-la demetriad_n tom_fw-mi 1._o so_o be_v it_o likewise_o of_o the_o simple_a vow_n of_o virginity_n that_o s._n hierome_n speak_v say_v the_o name_n of_o certain_a virgin_n which_o behave_v themselves_o not_o well_o do_v slander_v the_o holy_a purpose_n of_o virgin_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o heavenly_a and_o angelic_a family_n to_o who_o must_v be_v plain_o say_v ut_fw-la aut_fw-la nubant_fw-la that_o either_o they_o marry_v if_o they_o can_v not_o contain_v or_o else_o contain_v sue_v to_o god_n to_o give_v they_o strength_n if_o they_o will_v not_o marry_v we_o say_v the_o same_o to_o the_o same_o and_o general_o to_o all_o other_o which_o of_o two_o sin_n will_v needs_o commit_v one_o counsel_v they_o rather_o to_o commit_v the_o lesser_a than_o the_o great_a as_o for_o example_n to_o say_v that_o they_o will_v come_v to_o your_o schismatical_a and_o heretical_a service_n when_o the_o commissioner_n require_v no_o more_o rather_o than_o to_o come_v unto_o it_o in_o deed_n not_o omit_v to_o tell_v they_o withal_o that_o they_o shall_v neither_o so_o much_o as_o say_v they_o will_v come_v because_o that_o also_o be_v a_o sin_n and_o a_o mortal_a sin_n as_o epiphanius_n tell_v those_o virgin_n that_o their_o marriage_n also_o be_v sin_n v._o about_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n about_o the_o bless_a vivificall_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n you_o allege_v one_o doctor_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o three_o other_o against_o transubstantiation_n 326._o pur._n 326._o it_o be_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o s._n augustine_n nor_o of_o any_o other_o in_o that_o time_n you_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o though_o it_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o church_n unless_o you_o find_v more_o than_o these_o two_o his_o natural_a body_n and_o his_o mystical_a body_n or_o as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o his_o natural_a body_n which_o be_v the_o morrow_n after_o his_o supper_n to_o die_v for_o we_o and_o his_o natural_a blood_n which_o be_v to_o be_v shed_v for_o us._n when_o will_v you_o ever_o admit_v any_o text_n for_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n stand_v so_o obstinate_o against_o these_o most_o clear_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v and_o break_v for_o you_o luc._n 22.1_o cor_fw-la 11._o this_o be_v my_o blood_n mat._n 26._o mar._n 14._o that_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o luc._n 22._o mat._n 26._o mar._n 14._o and_o what_o a_o gross_a blindness_n be_v this_o consider_v the_o infinite_a difference_n between_o bread_n and_o christ_n to_o think_v that_o be_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n take_v for_o bread_n it_o can_v afterward_o in_o all_o christendom_n be_v take_v for_o christ_n himself_o and_o that_o without_o all_o contradiction_n whereas_o also_o at_o this_o time_n you_o the_o sacramentary_n can_v not_o change_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o from_o christ_n to_o bread_n but_o heaven_n and_o earth_n cry_v out_o against_o you_o for_o it_o not_o the_o catholic_n alone_o but_o also_o the_o lutheran_n but_o s._n augustine_n forsooth_o say_v 3●8_n pur._n 3●8_n non_fw-la hoc_fw-la corpus_fw-la quod_fw-la videtis_fw-la manducaturi_fw-la estis_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o will_v recite_v the_o whole_a circumstance_n that_o the_o world_n may_v see_v your_o deal_n 98._o aug._n in_o ps_n 98._o i_o find_v
virgin_n be_v break_v of_o her_o vow_n and_o the_o fall_n of_o those_o man_n be_v deny_v of_o christ_n in_o persecution_n but_o they_o make_v not_o against_o pardon_n no_o neither_o of_o those_o most_o heinous_a sin_n unless_o you_o think_v that_o the_o church_n bind_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o her_o louse_v both_o be_v give_v she_o of_o christ_n for_o what_o else_o do_v s._n ambrose_n there_o but_o bound_v that_o virgin_n as_o be_v her_o bishop_n to_o do_v penance_n all_o her_o life_n inhaere_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la extremam_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la etc._n etc._n stick_v to_o penance_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o thy_o life_n and_o presume_v not_o that_o pardon_n may_v be_v give_v thou_o of_o man_n day_n for_o he_o deceive_v thou_o that_o so_o promise_v thou_o for_o thou_o that_o have_v in_o special_a sin_v against_o the_o lord_n because_o she_o be_v his_o vow_a spouse_n it_o be_v meet_v that_o of_o he_o only_o thou_o look_v for_o remedy_n in_o day_n of_o judgement_n so_o that_o all_o her_o life_n he_o bind_v she_o to_o penance_n bid_v she_o not_o to_o hope_v for_o any_o pardon_n at_o his_o hand_n the_o emperor_n theodosius_n he_o bind_v also_o 17._o theo._n hist_o li._n 5._o ca._n 17._o though_o indefinite_o but_o after_o eight_o month_n penance_n louse_v he_o again_o with_o a_o pardon_n who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o this_o make_v plain_o for_o pardon_n and_o not_o against_o they_o likewise_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o sermon_n and_o in_o twenty_o epistle_n at_o the_o least_o make_v plain_o for_o pardon_n in_o that_o he_o do_v no_o more_o but_o reprove_v they_o that_o be_v give_v partly_o of_o such_o as_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o louse_n at_o least_o those_o denier_n as_o of_o lay_v martyr_n &_o of_o mere_a priest_n partly_o of_o such_o as_o have_v authority_n but_o without_o cause_n without_o moderation_n and_o to_o unpenitent_a person_n partly_o &_o most_o of_o all_o both_o these_o defect_n concur_v but_o otherwise_o although_o be_v primate_n of_o all_o africa_a he_o reprehend_v a_o certain_a bishop_n for_o geve_v pacem_fw-la peace_n to_o a_o certain_a priest_n 59_o cyp._n ep_v 59_o before_o he_o have_v do_v poenitentiam_fw-la plenam_fw-la full_a penance_n which_o manifest_o be_v a_o pardon_n contra_fw-la decretum_fw-la de_fw-la lapsis_fw-la contrary_a to_o the_o counsel_n decree_v touch_v such_o denier_n pacem_fw-la tamen_fw-la quomodocunque_fw-la à_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la dei_fw-la etc._n etc._n yet_o say_v he_o be_v once_o give_v by_o bishop_n a_o bishop_n the_o priest_n of_o god_n in_o what_o manner_n soever_o we_o will_v not_o revoke_v it_o and_o therefore_o we_o permit_v victor_n to_o enjoy_v the_o leave_n to_o communicate_v which_o have_v be_v grant_v he_o notwithstanding_o that_o to_o those_o impenitent_n trust_v also_o but_o in_o lay_v man_n pardon_n he_o cry_v as_o you_o allege_v nemo_fw-la se_fw-la fallat_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v no_o man_n deceive_v himself_o lapsis_fw-la cyp._n sermo_fw-la de_fw-la lapsis_fw-la let_v no_o man_n beguile_v himself_o only_o our_o lord_n can_v give_v mercy_n only_o he_o can_v grant_v pardon_n to_o sin_n as_o be_v commit_v against_o he_o homo_fw-la deo_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la maior_fw-la nec_fw-la remittere_fw-la aut_fw-la donare_fw-la indulgentia_fw-la sva_fw-la seruns_fw-la potest_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o dominum_fw-la delicto_fw-la graviore_fw-la commissum_fw-la est_fw-la ne_fw-la adhuc_fw-la lapso_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la accedat_fw-la ad_fw-la crimen_fw-la si_fw-la nesciat_fw-la esse_fw-la praedictum_fw-la 17._o jere._n 17._o maledictus_fw-la homo_fw-la qui_fw-la spem_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o homine_fw-la man_n can_v not_o be_v great_a than_o god_n to_o louse_v the_o impenitent_a who_o god_n bind_v neither_o can_v the_o servant_n who_o have_v no_o commission_n remit_v in_o part_n or_o forgeve_v in_o the_o whole_a with_o his_o indulgence_n that_o which_o by_o so_o great_a a_o fault_n be_v commit_v against_o the_o lord_n lest_o furthermore_o to_o the_o fall_a person_n be_v add_v this_o crime_n also_o if_o he_o be_v ignorant_a that_o it_o be_v forspeak_v curse_v be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v his_o trust_n in_o man_n 10._o mat._n 10._o dominus_fw-la orandus_fw-la est_fw-la dominus_fw-la nostra_fw-la satisfactione_n placandus_fw-la qui_fw-la negantem_fw-la negare_fw-la se_fw-la dixit_fw-la our_o lord_n must_v be_v pray_v unto_o our_o lord_n must_v by_o our_o satisfaction_n be_v pacify_v who_o have_v say_v that_o he_o will_v deny_v his_o denier_n his_o second_o epistle_n be_v to_o those_o martyr_n in_o prison_n instruct_v they_o not_o to_o give_v pardon_n themselves_o nor_o to_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n so_o or_o so_o to_o pardon_v he_o and_o he_o and_o he_o and_o he_o but_o to_o make_v their_o suit_n for_o those_o who_o poenitentia_fw-la est_fw-la satisfactioni_fw-la proxima_fw-la penance_n be_v very_o nigh_o to_o satisfaction_n that_o be_v almost_o all_o fulfil_v and_o to_o remit_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o bishop_n power_n pardon_n note_v the_o antiquity_n of_o pardon_n sicut_fw-la in_o praeteritum_fw-la semper_fw-la sub_fw-la antecessoribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la as_o in_o time_n pass_v always_o it_o be_v do_v under_o our_o predecessor_n and_o yet_o epistle_n 54._o the_o council_n give_v a_o plenary_a to_o all_o the_o denier_n at_o once_o that_o be_v do_v their_o penance_n because_o of_o another_o persecution_n at_o hand_n epistle_n 52._o he_o show_v clerus_fw-la romanus_n sede_n vacant_a appoint_v that_o the_o like_a pardon_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o in_o extreme_a sickness_n but_o i_o forget_v myself_o to_o allege_v so_o much_o be_v here_o only_o to_o answer_v seven_o of_o purgatory_n this_o chapter_n be_v grow_v to_o such_o length_n and_o yet_o be_v purgatory_n behind_o but_o the_o gentle_a reader_n will_v consider_v i_o trust_v how_o light_o any_o beast_n may_v trouble_v the_o pure_a water_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o soon_o clear_v again_o not_o doubt_v also_o but_o the_o variety_n pass_v away_o his_o weariness_n as_o i_o be_o likewise_o studious_a of_o method_n to_o put_v all_o in_o convenient_a order_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n and_o the_o order_n that_o in_o this_o part_n i_o think_v good_a to_o follow_v be_v to_o speak_v first_o of_o the_o church_n practice_n and_o then_o of_o particular_a doctor_n of_o the_o canonical_a memento_n of_o oblation_n and_o of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a practise_v by_o the_o church_n first_o then_o to_o prove_v that_o for_o a_o certain_a space_n after_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v no_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a at_o least_o in_o some_o church_n this_o companion_n reason_v ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negative_a negative_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o of_o tertullian_n to_o which_o i_o must_v join_v origen_n epiphanius_n and_o a_o council_n of_o spain_n though_o himself_o unmindful_a in_o one_o place_n what_o he_o say_v in_o another_o plain_o ●_o 〈…〉_o pu●_n ●_o affirm_v that_o such_o a_o argument_n even_o of_o all_o man_n authority_n be_v false_a therefore_o thus_o he_o say_v see_v it_o be_v certain_a by_o testimony_n of_o justinus_n martyr_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o for_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n we_o must_v not_o believe_v chrysostome_n without_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v so_o by_o the_o apostle_n well_o then_o chrysostome_n your_o elder_a one_o affirm_v it_o as_o more_o at_o large_a you_o confess_v the_o same_o in_o the_o 3._o and_o 7._o chapter_n but_o you_o and_o certain_a of_o the_o contrary_a by_o his_o elder_a justinus_n what_o be_v justinus_n his_o word_n where_o you_o recite_v they_o you_o say_v again_o 259._o pur._n 259._o by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o those_o first_o and_o pure_a day_n there_o be_v ●o_o mention_v at_o all_o of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o no_o word_n so_o in_o justinus_n yea_o in_o report_v there_o the_o order_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d ●ist_v he_o say_v express_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v long_o about_o it_o fine_a just_a apol._n 2._o in_o fine_a you_o also_o after_o he_o be_v com●●o_o consecration_n and_o when_o he_o have_v end_v those_o prayer_n and_o the_o consecration_n all_o do_v answer_n amen_o as_o also_o at_o this_o day_n we_o see_v at_o the_o late_a elevation_n where_o the_o consecration_n be_v conclude_v in_o that_o long_a space_n you_o can_v find_v no_o time_n for_o memento_fw-la domine_fw-la defunctorum_fw-la but_o certain_a it_o be_v and_o manifest_a say_v you_o that_o there_o be_v none_o and_o that_o chrysostome_n and_o all_o his_o fellow_n must_v not_o be_v beleve_v you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o in_o s._n augustine_n time_n also_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o dead_a 5._o aug._n epist_n 59_o q._n 5._o because_o he_o also_o report_v sometime_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o canon_n without_o name_v the_o dead_a yea_o &_o that_o your_o own_o
next_o witness_n tertullian_n must_v not_o be_v beléeve_v because_o he_o express_v certain_a prayer_n which_o justinus_n do_v not_o and_o yet_o between_o they_o two_o you_o find_v no_o repugnance_n but_o set_v upon_o d._n allen_n as_o afore_o upon_o s._n chrysostome_n with_o they_o both_o at_o once_o say_v and_o where_o he_o say_v there_o be_v ever_o find_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n a_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o all_o the_o depart_v in_o christ_n to_o reprove_v his_o vanity_n the_o order_n of_o prayer_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n gentes_fw-la tert._n in_o apolog_n adversus_fw-la gentes_fw-la describe_v by_o justinus_n and_o of_o tertullian_n also_o do_v sufficient_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o usage_n of_o the_o christian_o in_o those_o pure_a time_n because_o there_o it_o be_v express_v for_o who_o and_o what_o they_o pray_v oramus_fw-la etiam_fw-la say_v tertullian_n pro_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la pro_fw-la ministris_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o potestatibus_fw-la seculi_fw-la pro_fw-la rerum_fw-la quiet_a pro_fw-la mora_fw-la finis_fw-la we_o pray_v also_o for_o the_o emperor_n for_o their_o officer_n and_o power_n of_o the_o world_n for_o peace_n for_o delay_v of_o the_o end_n do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o in_o say_v we_o pray_v also_o for_o these_o he_o signify_v that_o these_o be_v some_o but_o not_o all_o they_o pray_v for_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v among_o other_o thing_n we_o pray_v for_o these_o which_o other_o thing_n he_o have_v not_o cause_n to_o express_v there_o as_o he_o have_v cause_n to_o express_v these_o to_o wit_n for_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v charge_v of_o the_o heathen_a thus_o deos_fw-la non_fw-la colitis_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la sacrificia_fw-la non_fw-la impenditis_fw-la first_o you_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o god_n second_o you_o do_v not_o bestow_v sacrifice_n with_o the_o heathen_a at_o certain_a appoint_a time_n for_o the_o emperor_n therefore_o make_v his_o apology_n he_o express_v the_o emperor_n &_o such_o person_n &_o thing_n as_o concern_v their_o roman_a empire_n as_o you_o may_v read_v more_o ample_o somewhat_o afore_o this_o be_v a_o clear_a answer_n and_o therefore_o enough_o how_o much_o more_o consider_v that_o yourself_o also_o confess_v that_o tertullian_n be_v against_o you_o 369._o pur._n 369._o in_o so_o much_o that_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v to_o leave_v out_o of_o our_o service_n prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a we_o have_v sure_a warrant_n by_o example_n of_o the_o elder_a church_n &_o near_a to_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o we_o have_v show_v out_o of_o justinus_n martyr_n and_o tertullian_n before_o he_o become_v a_o heretic_n mean_v a_o montanist_n to_o which_o your_o cavil_n i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 49._o and_o therefore_o tertullian_n stand_v upright_o against_o you_o with_o your_o own_o confession_n more_o at_o large_a cap._n 3._o pag._n 15._o how_o much_o more_o again_o consider_v that_o about_o the_o very_a same_o time_n arnobius_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n write_v thus_o cur_n immaniter_fw-la nostra_fw-la conuenticula_fw-la meruerunt_fw-la dirui_fw-la finen_n arnob._n li._n 4_o contra_fw-la gentes_fw-la sub_fw-la finen_n etc._n etc._n why_o deserve_v our_o church_n to_o be_v pull_v down_o barbarous_o in_o which_o the_o high_a god_n be_v pray_v unto_o peace_n and_o pardon_n be_v ask_v for_o all_o man_n for_o the_o magistrate_n for_o friend_n for_o enemy_n for_o the_o live_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a so_o express_o he_o say_v to_o confound_v your_o argue_v out_o of_o other_o ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr you_o join_v tertullian_n to_o justinus_n the_o matter_n join_v also_o epiphanius_n to_o they_o of_o he_o you_o say_v 370._o pur._n 370._o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v gather_v by_o epiphanius_n that_o the_o old_a form_n of_o liturgy_n be_v but_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o dead_a to_o have_v they_o in_o remembrance_n and_o because_o they_o use_v to_o make_v memory_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o be_v dead_a in_o christ_n he_o expound_v it_o according_a to_o the_o error_n of_o his_o time_n that_o this_o memory_n be_v a_o prayer_n for_o the_o sinner_n for_o the_o just_a as_o patriarch_n prophet_n etc._n etc._n a_o signification_n that_o they_o be_v inferior_a to_o christ_n a_o simple_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v remember_v so_o that_o neither_o the_o old_a form_n of_o liturgy_n like_v you_o in_o remember_v the_o dead_a at_o all_o puritan_n will_v you_o see_v a_o pure_a puritan_n no_o more_o than_o the_o old_a oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a though_o they_o be_v only_a oblation_n of_o thanksgiving_n for_o they_o be_v take_v up_o of_o the_o church_n in_o tertullian_n and_o montanus_n time_n by_o perverse_a emulation_n of_o the_o gentile_n so_o you_o say_v cap._n 6._o pag._n 53._o but_o this_o shift_n epiphanius_n be_v drive_v unto_o because_o he_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o memory_n and_o oblation_n which_o the_o old_a father_n make_v for_o all_o the_o depart_a in_o christ_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanks_o give_v and_o not_o of_o prayer_n for_o they_o and_o again_o they_o have_v in_o deed_n in_o elder_a time_n 356._o pur._n 356._o as_o appear_v by_o epiphanius_n the_o name_n of_o oblation_n but_o it_o be_v for_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n which_o plain_o show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o offering_n of_o thanks_o give_v you_o be_v deceive_v by_o think_v that_o it_o be_v but_o one_o memory_n whereof_o epiphanius_n speak_v look_v in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n james_n as_o also_o of_o s._n basil_n and_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n &_o diverse_a place_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v two_o distinct_a memory_n and_o therefore_o epiphanius_n say_v 1._o epip_n hier._n 75._o aerij_fw-la li._n 3._o tom_n 1._o et_fw-la pro_fw-la iustis_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la memoriam_fw-la facimus_fw-la both_o for_o the_o just_a and_o for_o the_o sinner_n we_o make_v memory_n and_o that_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o he_o there_o say_v against_o your_o friend_n aerius_n pro_fw-la peccatoribus_fw-la quidem_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la dei_fw-la implorantes_fw-la for_o sinner_n pardie_o request_v god_n mercy_n which_o be_v not_o his_o exposition_n as_o you_o pretend_v but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o tradition_n that_o be_v of_o the_o memory_n itself_o pro_fw-la iustis_fw-la verò_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o the_o just_a both_o father_n and_o patriarch_n prophet_n and_o apostle_n evangelist_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n bishop_n also_o and_o anchoretes_n and_o for_o every_o order_n ut_fw-la d._n i._n christum_fw-la ab_fw-la hominum_fw-la ordine_fw-la separemus_fw-la to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v separate_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n from_o man_n order_n ponder_v in_o our_o mind_n that_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o egalled_a to_o any_o man_n although_o a_o thousand_o time_n &_o upward_o that_o man_n do_v live_v in_o justice_n for_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o be_v god_n and_o the_o other_o be_v a_o man_n which_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v to_o deep_a for_o your_o divinity_n he_o see_v that_o the_o like_a memory_n may_v be_v make_v also_o for_o our_o lord_n himself_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o thanks_o give_v and_o therefore_o not_o be_v make_v for_o he_o likewise_o he_o conceive_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v another_o reason_n therein_o so_o to_o separate_v the_o just_a from_o christ_n &_o not_o only_o the_o sinner_n from_o the_o just_a although_o otherwise_o when_o the_o just_a &_o the_o sinner_n be_v not_o separate_v but_o join_v both_o together_o in_o some_o one_o collet_n of_o the_o church_n than_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v ca._n 3._o pag._n 16._o the_o same_o one_o collet_n be_v at_o once_o a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sinner_n and_o a_o thanks_o give_v for_o the_o just_a now_o to_o the_o place_n of_o origen_n which_o be_v another_o of_o your_o trump_n that_o you_o trust_v so_o much_o in_o 249.427_o pur._n 249.427_o say_v this_o one_o testimony_n of_o origen_n shall_v testify_v what_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v concern_v purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a from_o the_o apostle_n time_n unto_o his_o day_n and_o yet_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o confess_v not_o only_o thus_o in_o the_o same_o place_n i_o wot_v well_o superstition_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v somewhat_o forward_a but_o also_o of_o origen_n himself_o in_o another_o place_n 3._o pur._n 116._o orig._n in_o je._n ho._n 12._o in_o num._n ho._n 25._o in_o psal_n 36._o ho._n 3._o ori._n in_o job._n lib._n 3._o &_o to_o say_v but_o howsoever_o he_o dote_v about_o passage_n through_o fire_n and_o purification_n after_o this_o life_n yet_o he_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o day_n of_o christian_a man_n death_n be_v the_o deposition_n of_o pain_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o either_o he_o be_v not_o constant_a with_o himself_o or_o else_o that_o
24._o but_o keep_v still_o in_o the_o visible_a everlasting_a church_n that_o visible_o come_v of_o i_o begin_v at_o jerusalem_n 4._o rise_v after_o 11._o motive_n 19_o article_n 11._o four_o i_o require_v they_o to_o show_v any_o beginning_n of_o our_o church_n other_o than_o the_o beginning_n of_o christ_n church_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 2._o as_o we_o show_v and_o the_o world_n see_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o company_n now_o of_o late_a by_o luther_n who_o afore_o be_v one_o of_o we_o nor_o he_o only_o but_o all_o that_o he_o draw_v away_o after_o he_o so_o that_o no_o man_n can_v say_v they_o be_v afore_o that_o invisible_a protestant_n because_o it_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o they_o be_v visible_a papist_n and_o to_o these_o two_o or_o either_o of_o they_o fulke_n answer_v nothing_o i_o require_v they_o moreover_o in_o the_o same_o demand_n to_o show_v so_o much_o as_o any_o first_o beginner_n of_o any_o one_o article_n of_o our_o doctrine_n so_o as_o he_o receive_v it_o not_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o predecessor_n and_o they_o of_o they_o and_o so_o forth_o even_o up_o to_o the_o apostle_n as_o we_o show_v that_o luther_n begin_v his_o new_a article_n of_o himself_o and_o receive_v they_o not_o at_o any_o man_n hand_n and_o also_o if_o any_o of_o the_o same_o article_n have_v in_o old_a time_n any_o patron_n as_o aerius_n against_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o likewise_o in_o his_o time_n be_v the_o first_o beginner_n of_o it_o and_o receive_v it_o not_o of_o his_o elder_n but_o that_o his_o elder_n hold_v the_o contrary_a of_o his_o article_n so_o that_o his_o article_n evident_o be_v of_o himself_o and_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n differ_v how_o this_o iiij_o and_o xxxviij_o demand_n do_v differ_v i_o do_v not_o here_o charge_v they_o with_o such_o article_n as_o they_o be_v of_o the_o church_n then_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n for_o that_o be_v enough_o of_o itself_o against_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v then_o first_o begone_v or_o afore_o and_o therefore_o i_o have_v of_o that_o a_o several_a demand_n num_fw-la 38._o but_o as_o they_o be_v then_o first_o begin_v which_o of_o itself_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n whether_o they_o be_v condemn_v of_o the_o church_n then_o for_o heresy_n or_o no._n now_o of_o these_o matter_n there_o be_v two_o long_a treatise_n between_o d._n allen_n and_o fulke_n first_o in_o the_o book_n of_o article_n art_n 11._o pag._n 35._o to_o 47._o second_o in_o the_o book_n of_o purgatory_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 13._o and_o 14._o pag._n 387._o to_o 424._o in_o which_o place_n the_o old_a heresy_n that_o they_o charge_v one_o another_o withal_o i_o reserve_v to_o their_o proper_a place_n in_o the_o demand_n aforesaid_a as_o also_o the_o change_n that_o he_o say_v some_o pope_n to_o have_v make_v to_o the_o 45._o demand_n what_o then_o belong_v to_o this_o demand_n first_o touch_v the_o argument_n or_o consequence_n second_o touch_v the_o antecedent_n arg._n the_o 1._o arg._n the_o one_o argument_n be_v this_o our_o first_o author_n can_v not_o be_v name_v ergo_fw-la they_o be_v none_o other_o but_o the_o apostle_n his_o first_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o follow_v not_o and_o one_o while_o he_o do_v nothing_o but_o chafe_v at_o we_o for_o it_o say_v must_v we_o find_v out_o the_o author_n of_o heresy_n 391._o pur._n 391._o nay_o justify_v they_o yourselves_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o you_o can_v &c_n &c_n as_o i_o note_v here_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 79._o another_o while_n he_o will_v answer_v it_o with_o a_o witty_a example_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n say_v must_v the_o magistrate_n either_o justify_v a_o thief_n possession_n or_o else_o bring_v out_o the_o author_n where_o he_o have_v it_o nay_o the_o thief_n must_v bring_v out_o good_a proof_n how_o and_o by_o who_o he_o come_v by_o such_o good_n or_o else_o he_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v serve_v like_o such_o a_o one_o if_o that_o will_v serve_v we_o bring_v so_o good_a proof_n for_o the_o article_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_z whereof_o you_o there_o entreat_v that_o yourself_o confess_v we_o steal_v it_o not_o but_o that_o we_o receive_v it_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n of_o our_o auncetor_n ca._n 3._o who_o yourself_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n cap._n 2._o will_v you_o then_o quit_v we_o &_o with_o your_o witty_a example_n charge_n christ_n church_n to_o be_v a_o thief_n but_o you_o confess_v cap._n 3._o pag._n 19.20.21_o that_o she_o tell_v you_o how_o she_o come_v by_o it_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o moreover_o how_o your_o friend_n aerius_n will_v have_v steal_v it_o from_o she_o as_o now_o your_o grandsire_n luther_n will_v steal_v it_o from_o her_o heir_n what_o magistrate_n after_o all_o this_o will_v admit_v the_o thief_n to_o plead_v against_o the_o lawful_a heir_n in_o such_o childish_a manner_n as_o you_o do_v have_v nothing_o neither_o to_o disprove_v the_o possession_n or_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o heir_n nor_o to_o bring_v as_o evidence_n for_o yourself_o as_o by_o my_o answer_n in_o the_o chapter_n aforego_v it_o be_v most_o manifest_a 388._o pur._n 388._o again_o you_o say_v the_o first_o author_n of_o every_o heresy_n can_v not_o be_v name_v where_o you_o reckon_v ten_o and_o say_v these_o and_o a_o hundred_o more_o heresy_n shall_v they_o be_v think_v to_o have_v their_o heresy_n from_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o first_o author_n of_o they_o can_v not_o be_v name_v for_o example_n there_o be_v one_o heresy_n of_o they_o that_o be_v call_v acephali_n because_o there_o be_v no_o head_n know_v of_o they_o where_o have_v you_o that_o cause_n i_o 27._o nicenun_n 2._o con_v pa._n 62._o tomo_fw-la 3_o nicep_v li._n 16_o ca._n 27._o find_v that_o severus_n b._n of_o antioch_n be_v their_o head_n who_o name_n be_v severus_n acephalus_fw-la and_o again_o that_o they_o be_v but_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o eutichian_o who_o head_n be_v eutyches_n as_o the_o puritan_n who_o special_a head_n we_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o be_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o caluinist_n in_o such_o sort_n to_o show_v the_o author_n be_v enough_o or_o also_o to_o show_v the_o beginning_n itself_o for_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o we_o seek_v for_o the_o author_n to_o show_v the_o beginning_n which_o again_o be_v show_v even_o by_o this_o that_o the_o primitive_a name_n of_o christian_n will_v not_o serve_v they_o but_o they_o must_v have_v new_a name_n to_o be_v call_v by_o that_o i_o say_v declare_v that_o they_o begin_v after_o the_o beginning_n and_o so_o we_o can_v show_v the_o author_n also_o of_o the_o other_o nine_o heresy_n that_o you_o name_n which_o also_o yourself_o do_v in_o name_v of_o they_o and_o of_o all_o other_o if_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o while_n as_o partly_o you_o may_v see_v note_v in_o m._n rishons_n table_n and_o in_o no_o such_o sort_n can_v you_o show_v our_o first_o author_n and_o so_o i_o be_o now_o come_v to_o your_o second_o answer_n wherein_o you_o deny_v our_o antecedent_n for_o you_o say_v 402.413_o pur._n 402.413_o if_o any_o man_n or_o man_n be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o it_o fare_v with_o the_o popish_a faith_n we_o shall_v be_v injurious_a unto_o they_o if_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v our_o founder_n as_o they_o do_v some_o of_o they_o tute_fw-la lepus_fw-la es_fw-la &_o pulpamentum_fw-la quaeris_fw-la you_o make_v d._n allen_n to_o be_v that_o same_o non_fw-fr plus_fw-fr of_o cambridge_n 64._o pur._n 64._o who_o when_o he_o lack_v a_o argument_n say_v he_o will_v dispute_v ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la you_o be_v he_o even_o yourself_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v any_o founder_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n 47._o ar._n 47._o again_o you_o say_v thus_o we_o have_v note_v to_o you_o the_o name_n of_o diverse_a heretic_n which_o first_o preach_v certain_a article_n of_o your_o doctrine_n those_o note_n you_o mean_v wherewith_o you_o note_v here_o cap._n 3._o pag._n 24._o the_o confess_v true_a church_n aswell_o as_o we_o which_o i_o have_v clean_o wipe_v out_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 57.58_o and_o will_v wipe_v away_o the_o rest_n likewise_o here_o in_o the_o 38._o demand_n 389._o ar._n 39_o pur._n 389._o again_o for_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o one_o particular_a you_o say_v it_o can_v not_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o any_o authentical_a writer_n or_o by_o any_o credible_a author_n that_o any_o before_o tertullian_n who_o be_v almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n either_o name_v or_o allow_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o that_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n tertullian_n himself_o flourish_v
when_o the_o matter_n be_v bring_v before_o the_o pope_n he_o take_v such_o bless_a order_n with_o it_o as_o be_v very_o meet_a for_o his_o apostolic_a see_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o friar_n new_a scandalous_a book_n secreto_fw-la combureretur_fw-la shall_v be_v privy_o burn_v for_o shame_v their_o order_n say_v you_o and_o what_o fault_n be_v that_o i_o pray_v you_o know_v you_o not_o how_o s._n augustine_n use_v pelagius_n and_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o new_a doctrine_n when_o he_o first_o write_v against_o they_o tacenda_fw-la adhuc_fw-la arbitratus_fw-la 33._o aug._n retr_n li._n 2._o ca._n 33._o etc._n etc._n i_o think_v good_a not_o to_o express_v as_o yet_o their_o name_n hope_v that_o so_o they_o may_v more_o easy_o be_v amend_v imo_fw-la pelagij_fw-la ipsius_fw-la nomen_fw-la non_fw-la sine_fw-la aliqua_fw-la laud_fw-la posui_fw-la quia_fw-la vita_fw-la eius_fw-la a_o multis_fw-la praedicabatur_fw-la yea_o in_o my_o next_o writing_n express_v the_o name_n of_o pelagius_n himself_o i_o do_v it_o not_o without_o some_o praise_n because_o his_o life_n be_v commend_v of_o many_o thus_o do_v s._n augustin_n use_v one_o monk_n and_o he_o the_o author_n of_o a_o most_o pestilent_a heresy_n as_o he_o prove_v afterward_o and_o your_o christian_a spirit_n will_v have_v all_o the_o order_n all_o monk_n the_o innocent_a also_o shame_v for_o the_o fault_n of_o a_o few_o such_o will_v have_v be_v your_o care_n to_o amend_v those_o few_o and_o such_o your_o providence_n to_o save_v the_o wheat_n whereof_o these_o few_o may_v have_v make_v as_o great_a waste_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v wise_o handle_v as_o friar_n luther_n now_o have_v make_v for_o lack_v of_o a_o silver_n spur_n and_o a_o cardinal_n hat_n and_o as_o erasmus_n also_o may_v have_v make_v have_v he_o not_o be_v make_v of_o by_o catholic_a bishop_n far_o above_o his_o merit_n yet_o one_o shift_n more_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v where_o you_o say_v for_o your_o argument_n ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la negatiuè_fw-fr of_o the_o whole_a scripture_n authority_n negative_o 449._o pur._n 449._o and_o this_o conclusion_n m._n allen_n himself_o make_v of_o man_n authority_n cap._n 13._o purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o preach_v against_o at_o their_o first_o entry_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v true_a or_o rather_o there_o be_v no_o such_o entry_n of_o they_o as_o you_o imagine_v but_o they_o come_v lineal_o and_o quiet_o from_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o all_o man_n authority_n it_o be_v false_a you_o say_v howsoever_o the_o argument_n of_o all_o man_n authority_n negative_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a who_o but_o you_o will_v call_v this_o such_o a_o one_o all_o heresy_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o history_n have_v be_v preach_v against_o at_o their_o first_o entry_n this_o be_v never_o preach_v against_o ergo_fw-la this_o be_v no_o heresy_n nor_o never_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v enter_v ¶_o name_n in_o the_o three_o next_o demand_n i_o have_v three_o easy_a and_o familiar_a note_n by_o our_o bare_a name_n to_o know_v which_o side_n be_v right_a 66._o ar._n 66._o and_o which_o be_v wrong_a to_o that_o general_o fulke_n say_v he_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n that_o reason_v from_o name_n to_o the_o thing_n in_o what_o logic_n he_o have_v that_o axiom_n i_o know_v not_o but_o this_o i_o know_v and_o you_o shall_v hear_v it_o 68_o it_o in_o the_o 7._o dem._n see_v cap._n 11._o his_fw-la 37._o contr_n aug._n in_o ps_n count_v partem_fw-la donat._n ar._n 68_o anon_o that_o also_o himself_o so_o reason_v i_o know_v moreover_o that_o s._n augustine_n so_o reason_v dicitis_fw-la mecum_fw-la vos_fw-la esse_fw-la say_v the_o church_n to_o the_o donatist_n sed_fw-la falsum_fw-la videtis_fw-la esse_fw-la ego_fw-la catholica_fw-la dicor_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la de_fw-fr donati_n part_n you_o say_v that_o you_o be_v with_o i_o but_o you_o see_v it_o be_v false_a for_o i_o be_o name_v catholica_fw-la and_o you_o of_o donates_n part_n s._n augustine_n i_o trow_v he_o will_v not_o call_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n nor_o himself_o a_o foolish_a sophister_n again_o he_o say_v general_o if_o the_o only_a name_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n of_o a_o learned_a man_n of_o a_o good_a christian_a be_v enough_o to_o prove_v the_o thing_n many_o a_o knave_n ass_n hypocrite_n may_v prove_v himself_o a_o honest_a man_n a_o learned_a man_n a_o good_a christian_n as_o though_o we_o say_v the_o argument_n to_o be_v good_a from_o every_o name_n to_o the_o thing_n no_o sir_n we_o say_v it_o no_o more_o but_o of_o three_o sort_n of_o name_n of_o which_o the_o father_n say_v it_o before_o we_o and_o experience_n teach_v it_o and_o you_o can_v not_o disprove_v it_o by_o give_v any_o instance_n for_o there_o be_v in_o it_o further_a reason_n then_o only_o argue_v from_o name_n to_o thing_n 6._o catholic_n 20._o motive_n 1._o article_n 20._o first_o then_o we_o say_v that_o since_o the_o apostle_n do_v bid_v we_o believe_v that_o church_n which_o be_v name_v the_o catholic_a church_n evermore_o to_o this_o day_n they_o have_v be_v true_a catholic_n in_o deed_n which_o be_v in_o time_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n common_o call_v catholic_n and_o easy_o know_v thereby_o for_o this_o we_o allege_v among_o other_o s._n augustine_n whereof_o you_o take_v notice_n which_o may_v be_v write_v it_o be_v so_o rare_a a_o thing_n in_o this_o your_o book_n against_o the_o article_n and_o go_v about_o to_o answer_v he_o with_o his_o own_o word_n but_o very_o fond_o as_o i_o have_v show_v cap._n 9_o pag._n 182._o the_o rest_n that_o you_o have_v be_v opposition_n after_o your_o custom_n as_o where_o you_o oppose_v to_o this_o name_n your_o stale_a exception_n which_o here_o cap._n 7._o 69._o ar._n 69._o you_o oppose_v to_o all_o thing_n of_o only_a scripture_n say_v wherefore_o howhoever_o you_o boast_v of_o the_o honourable_a name_n of_o catholic_a except_o you_o prove_v that_o your_o opinion_n agree_v with_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o catholic_a in_o deed_n by_o chrysostom_n judgement_n again_o by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v that_o chrysostome_n think_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a your_o folly_n in_o this_o allegation_n i_o detect_v cap._n 9_o pag._n 172._o neither_o be_v it_o chrysostom_n neither_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o name_n catholic_a nor_o of_o the_o apostle_n writing_n but_o of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v writing_n 66._o ar._n 66._o another_o opposition_n you_o yourselves_o will_v not_o account_v the_o grecian_n now_o since_o their_o separation_n for_o true_a christian_n and_o yet_o as_o many_o nation_n have_v since_o then_o call_v they_o catholic_n as_o you_o be_v able_a to_o show_v on_o your_o side_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o call_v by_o you_o for_o no_o more_o be_v you_o so_o call_v by_o they_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v enough_o how_o little_a soever_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o say_v the_o grecian_n be_v call_v catholic_n be_v like_a as_o to_o say_v the_o latin_n be_v call_v catholic_n which_o be_v forsooth_o a_o proper_a say_n consider_v that_o not_o only_o we_o but_o you_o also_o be_v latin_n but_o this_o i_o say_v that_o as_o among_o the_o latin_a or_o western_a christian_n he_o that_o in_o common_a talk_n or_o writing_n hear_v catholic_n name_v understand_v we_o therein_o &_o not_o you_o so_o likewise_o if_o he_o hear_v the_o catholic_a grecian_n or_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o east_n whether_o he_o be_v latin_a or_o grecian_a he_o understand_v they_o that_o be_v with_o the_o pope_n &_o believe_v the_o holy-ghost_n to_o proceed_v of_o the_o son_n also_o &_o not_o the_o schismatical_a &_o heretical_a grecian_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o example_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o they_o be_v true_a catholic_n which_o be_v know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o so_o much_o you_o say_v of_o the_o name_n and_o rule_v itself_o now_o which_o of_o we_o two_o have_v that_o name_n whether_o we_o or_o you_o 66._o ar._n 66._o the_o heretic_n grecian_n do_v not_o call_v we_o catholic_n you_o say_v no_o more_o do_v you_o that_o be_v heretic_n latin_v but_o yet_o both_o you_o and_o they_o mistake_v not_o the_o person_n when_o common_a talk_n and_o book_n so_o call_v us._n therefore_o i_o say_v we_o be_v true_a catholic_n on_o the_o other_o side_n you_o say_v 68_o ar._n 68_o and_o we_o have_v as_o many_o nation_n and_o more_o than_o you_o have_v that_o by_o public_a authority_n call_v we_o catholic_n and_o you_o heretic_n who_o be_v so_o call_v any_o where_o by_o public_a authority_n be_v not_o the_o question_n but_o who_o be_v common_o call_v &_o know_v by_o that_o name_n howbeit_o also_o of_o any_o such_o public_a authority_n no_o man_n know_v but_o yourself_o but_o this_o
all_o man_n know_v that_o those_o also_o of_o your_o own_o side_n in_o france_n flaunders_n etc._n etc._n in_o their_o public_a edict_n call_v we_o catholic_n and_o themselves_o by_o other_o name_n now_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v our_o name_n yet_o you_o have_v a_o shift_n say_v 67._o ar._n 67._o that_o we_o boast_v and_o trust_v only_o in_o these_o name_n catholic_a and_o church_n without_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o the_o wicked_a jew_n do_v cry_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o less_o than_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n 21._o jere._n 7._o mat._n 21._o but_o rather_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n our_o lord_n both_o in_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v his_o temple_n although_o they_o in_o it_o be_v thief_n and_o wicked_a person_n so_o be_v we_o his_o catholic_a church_n although_o some_o of_o we_o be_v so_o wicked_a as_o you_o make_v us._n howbeit_o the_o wicked_a both_o then_o and_o now_o trust_v only_o in_o the_o temple_n and_o in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o amend_v their_o life_n deceive_v themselves_o how_o much_o more_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n which_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n on_o the_o other_o side_n suppose_v that_o it_o be_v not_o your_o name_n you_o have_v also_o your_o shift_n say_v 68_o ar._n 68_o if_o you_o have_v no_o great_a argument_n to_o condemn_v we_o they_o that_o we_o be_v not_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n than_o you_o can_v no_o more_o condemn_v we_o then_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o be_v not_o only_o not_o call_v the_o true_a church_n but_o also_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o deceiver_n by_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v as_o right_o call_v god_n people_n as_o they_o that_o give_v you_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a church_n be_v call_v the_o christian_a world_n nay_o bate_v i_o a_o ace_n of_o that_o i_o pray_v you_o unless_o you_o can_v likewise_o show_v by_o prediction_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o correspondence_n of_o luther_n the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o these_o day_n as_o we_o all_o see_v the_o reprobation_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o jew_n in_o those_o day_n beside_o that_o you_o have_v great_a reason_n forsooth_o to_o require_v that_o the_o jew_n shall_v have_v use_v those_o name_n which_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o or_o else_o you_o not_o to_o be_v try_v now_o by_o they_o after_o their_o institution_n receive_v and_o universal_a use_v and_o yet_o again_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v the_o name_n from_o us._n 95._o ar._n 95._o for_o why_o may_v not_o our_o church_n when_o it_o be_v most_o hide_a you_o say_v be_v as_o right_o call_v catholic_a as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o it_o be_v so_o particular_a that_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o narrow_a bond_n of_o jury_n for_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o call_v catholic_a because_o it_o shall_v be_v every_o where_n for_o that_o it_o never_o be_v nor_o never_o shall_v be_v but_o because_o that_o wheresoever_o it_o be_v in_o part_n it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o christ_n i_o read_v of_o many_o old_a heretic_n that_o give_v many_o interpretation_n of_o that_o name_n to_o draw_v it_o to_o themselves_o but_o you_o be_v the_o first_o to_o my_o knowledge_n that_o say_v because_o it_o be_v una_fw-la therefore_o it_o be_v call_v catholica_fw-la the_o old_a father_n in_o their_o créede_v be_v of_o another_o meaning_n when_o they_o say_v distinct_o i_o believe_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a that_o be_v roman_a church_n no_o sir_n s._n augustine_n tell_v you_o another_o interpretation_n 2._o aug._n de_fw-fr un_fw-fr eccl._n ca._n 2._o ecclesia_fw-la utique_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la catholicam_fw-la nominarunt_fw-la ut_fw-la ex_fw-la ipso_fw-la nomine_fw-la ostenderent_fw-la quia_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la est_fw-la secundum_fw-la totum_fw-la enim_fw-la cath_z olun_fw-mi grecè_fw-la dicitur_fw-la there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o only_o one_o church_n even_o that_o same_o which_o our_o auncetor_n name_v catholica_fw-la to_o declare_v by_o the_o very_a name_n itself_o that_o she_o be_v over_o all_o to_o wit_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o from_o thence_o grow_v over_o all_o nation_n continual_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o have_v take_v in_o the_o fullness_n of_o nation_n she_o shall_v be_v whole_o assumpt_v in_o glory_n and_o therefore_o your_o church_n neither_o when_o it_o be_v hide_v as_o you_o imagine_v neither_o now_o that_o it_o be_v open_a as_o we_o all_o see_v god_n hide_v it_o again_o can_v be_v call_v catholic_a 48._o au._n callat_n 3._o diei_fw-la nu_fw-la 2._o post_n collatine_n c._n 27.28_o epist_n 48._o because_o as_o s._n augustine_n so_o often_o reson_v against_o the_o donatist_n you_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o totius_fw-la orbis_n ecclesia_fw-la the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o have_v separate_v yourselves_o from_o it_o from_o the_o church_n i_o say_v which_o begin_v in_o jury_n and_o grow_v on_o to_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o as_o well_o then_o in_o the_o beginning_n as_o any_o time_n after_o be_v the_o same_o and_o have_v the_o same_o name_n as_o the_o tree_n of_o musterdséede_n be_v the_o tree_n of_o musterdséede_n whether_o it_o be_v grow_v little_a or_o mikle_a 14._o ar._n 95._o pur._n 14._o but_o what_o a_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o you_o speak_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o say_v the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o mahomet_n sect_n be_v in_o the_o great_a part_n many_o country_n be_v idolater_n and_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o popish_a church_n it_o be_v jump_o the_o argument_n of_o cresconius_n 63._o aug._n contra_fw-la cresc_n li._n 3._o ca._n 63._o argumentaris_fw-la quod_fw-la ideo_fw-la nobis_fw-la non_fw-la totus_fw-la orbis_n communicet_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o make_v this_o argument_n say_v s._n augustine_n that_o therefore_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o we_o because_o as_o yet_o either_o many_o man_n there_o be_v of_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n which_o have_v not_o yet_o beleve_v in_o christ_n or_o many_o heresy_n under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n abhor_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o our_o fellowship_n the_o full_a answer_n thereof_o you_o may_v read_v there_o in_o s._n augustine_n although_o i_o allege_v almost_o nothing_o but_o only_o answer_v my_o length_n grow_v tedious_a to_o myself_o and_o i_o fear_v to_o the_o reader_n also_o not_o for_o any_o substance_n of_o your_o argument_n but_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o your_o trifle_n to_o say_v the_o least_o and_o best_a of_o they_o as_o again_o where_o you_o say_v like_o non_fw-la plus_fw-la that_o most_o papist_n will_v confess_v 69._o ar._n 69._o that_o many_o thing_n in_o their_o church_n have_v need_n of_o reformation_n as_o not_o be_v universal_o perfect_a and_o that_o it_o be_v halt_v in_o many_o thing_n from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n neither_o yet_o disperse_v over_o all_o the_o world_n but_o contain_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o europa_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o by_o s._n augustine_n rule_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v you_o then_o by_o that_o rule_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o jew_n care_v not_o if_o none_o be_v christ_n so_o that_o jesus_n be_v not_o christ_n even_o so_o you_o reason_n like_o man_n that_o care_v not_o if_o none_o be_v the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o o_o miserable_a people_n that_o must_v have_v such_o leader_n the_o church_n now_o may_v vouchsave_o to_o be_v so_o speak_v of_o by_o you_o when_o you_o speak_v no_o better_o here_o cap._n 3_o of_o the_o same_o church_n also_o in_o s._n augustine_n time_n but_o we_o tell_v you_o with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n for_o we_o confess_v no_o more_o than_o he_o also_o do_v by_o you_o allege_v where_o he_o repeat_v the_o créede_v 1._o august_n de_fw-fr gen_n ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d imperfect_a ca._n 1._o constitutam_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la matrem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v found_v the_o church_n our_o mother_n quae_fw-la catholica_fw-la dicitur_fw-la she_o that_o be_v call_v catholic_a ex_fw-la eo_fw-la quia_fw-la universaliter_fw-la perfecta_fw-la est_fw-la et_fw-la in_o nullo_fw-la claudicat_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la diffusa_fw-la est_fw-la of_o this_o because_o she_o be_v universal_o perfect_a and_o halt_v in_o nothing_o though_o the_o donatist_n and_o other_o like_o heretic_n do_v never_o so_o much_o triumph_v in_o that_o interpretation_n and_o be_v spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o manner_n aforesaid_a both_o interpretation_n agree_v to_o our_o mother_n and_o we_o claim_v they_o according_o say_v s._n augustine_n and_o we_o whereas_o the_o heretic_n
undique_fw-la 3_o ire_fw-la li._n 3._o ca._n 3_o conseruata_fw-la est_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n traditio_fw-la in_o which_o church_n say_v s._n irenée_n that_o be_v by_o repair_v to_o it_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v all_o about_o have_v always_o preserve_v themselves_o in_o the_o tradition_n that_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o where_o you_o say_v for_o another_o instance_n 337._o ar._n 2.3_o pur._n 337._o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o all_o history_n that_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o alane_n goth_n &_o vandal_n be_v first_o convert_v by_o the_o arrian_n in_o so_o say_v you_o declare_v that_o you_o never_o read_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n presume_v notwithstanding_o to_o write_v against_o these_o article_n which_o be_v in_o manner_n nothing_o else_o but_o certain_a observation_n thereof_o read_v socrates_n li._n 2._o ca._n 32._o and_o not_o only_a li._n 4._o ca._n 27._o and_o sozomenus_n li._n 6._o ca._n 37._o but_o special_o theodoret_n li._n 4._o ca._n 32._o who_o as_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o purpose_n to_o take_v from_o the_o arrian_n that_o vain_a brag_n of_o they_o show_v that_o the_o goth_n be_v first_o catholic_n and_o not_o as_o you_o say_v first_o convert_v by_o the_o arrian_n but_o only_o by_o false_a information_n and_o to_o much_o trust_n of_o their_o bishop_n vlphilas_o be_v another_o balaam_n lead_v out_o of_o the_o way_n you_o talk_v also_o of_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v convert_v by_o the_o donatist_n &_o novatian_n 337._o pur._n 337._o but_o we_o shall_v know_v your_o history_n &_o author_n hereafter_o again_o you_o say_v and_o it_o be_v also_o manifest_a by_o history_n 3._o ar._n 3._o that_o the_o grecian_n who_o the_o papist_n count_v no_o part_n of_o their_o church_n but_o schismatic_n convert_v the_o moscovite_n first_o of_o all_o do_v the_o grecian_n convert_v they_o since_o their_o schism_n o_o great_a historian_n the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v great_a emulation_n then_o in_o the_o grecian_n against_o the_o latin_n but_o not_o schism_n nor_o heresy_n as_o yet_o nor_o long_o after_o and_o therefore_o of_o our_o church_n they_o be_v then_o howbeit_o it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n nor_o our_o religion_n as_o you_o say_v true_o which_o the_o moscovite_n have_v but_o such_o as_o they_o themselves_o do_v list_n to_o receive_v with_o many_o qualification_n and_o modification_n of_o their_o own_o such_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o grecian_n emulation_n and_o such_o be_v the_o necessity_n that_o s._n peter_n cast_v the_o net_n but_o if_o history_n fail_v you_o yet_o one_o demonstration_n ex_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la notis_fw-la you_o have_v to_o prove_v that_o not_o we_o but_o you_o convert_v all_o true_a christian_a nation_n 2._o ar._n 2._o and_o what_o be_v that_o if_o the_o papist_n can_v prove_v that_o we_o hold_v not_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o truth_n unto_o which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v the_o nation_n we_o refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o christ_n the_o papist_n prove_v to_o omit_v a_o 1000_o other_o of_o his_o proof_n that_o you_o be_v heretic_n and_o therefore_o hold_v not_o the_o same_o faith_n etc._n etc._n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o that_o which_o yourself_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n here_o cap._n 2._o and_o cap._n 3._o again_o we_o be_v member_n witness_v your_o separation_n here_o dem._n 3_o 2.3_o ar._n 2.3_o of_o that_o church_n which_o convert_v all_o land_n in_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v none_o other_o faith_n in_o steed_n of_o true_a christianity_n but_o that_o which_o we_o hold_v as_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n witness_v here_o cap._n 8._o where_o all_o your_o absurd_a depravation_n of_o god_n word_n be_v answer_v and_o not_o that_o only_a but_o also_o show_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n go_v every_o whither_o together_o with_o the_o apostle_n gospel_n as_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christianity_n 3._o ar._n 3._o pag._n 145._o but_o no_o marvel_n of_o your_o audacity_n to_o say_v we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v it_o consider_v that_o you_o be_v bold_a to_o conclude_v of_o this_o say_v thus_o i_o have_v show_v that_o our_o church_n hold_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v that_o which_o convert_v all_o nation_n to_o true_a religion_n then_o belike_o all_o those_o nation_n be_v and_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n and_o you_o will_v be_v content_a to_o be_v try_v by_o they_o as_o by_o africa_n for_o example_n who_o religion_n we_o know_v by_o tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n s._n optatus_n s._n augustine_n etc._n etc._n or_o if_o you_o have_v better_a monument_n of_o any_o other_o nation_n religion_n name_v it_o and_o let_v we_o try_v it_o between_o us._n but_o whosoever_o see_v here_o cap._n 3._o how_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o charge_v the_o true_a church_n the_o primative_a church_n with_o err_v may_v easy_o conjecture_v what_o you_o dare_v do_v 17._o motive_n 17._o 11._o britanny_n well_o we_o be_v english_a man_n and_o therefore_o in_o a_o several_a demand_n i_o name_v our_o country_n england_n or_o britanny_n unto_o you_o special_o because_o the_o prophet_n as_o you_o know_v speak_v much_o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o land_n express_o and_o namely_o of_o such_o land_n as_o be_v far_a of_o as_o also_o because_o there_o be_v extant_a such_o monument_n of_o our_o land_n conversion_n and_o religion_n in_o tertullian_n origen_n s._n hierome_n s._n chrysostome_n s._n gregory_n the_o pope_n with_o many_o other_o like_a and_o special_o in_o the_o history_n of_o our_o own_o countryman_n s_o bede_n but_o here_o fulke_n tell_v such_o english_a man_n that_o listen_v not_o to_o be_v deceive_v 346._o pur._n 346._o but_o to_o see_v into_o what_o faith_n all_o nation_n be_v convert_v that_o be_v turn_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o they_o be_v better_a to_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bid_v we_o of_o so_o many_o nation_n there_o record_v to_o name_v one_o 166.332_o pur._n 166.332_o unto_o which_o purgatory_n or_o pray_v and_o sacrifice_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v teach_v you_o be_v profound_o see_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o perceive_v by_o this_o why_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o show_v into_o what_o faith_n all_o nation_n be_v convert_v that_o be_v turn_v by_o the_o apostle_n nay_o be_v there_o so_o much_o as_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n preach_v to_o any_o nation_n of_o the_o gentile_n no_o sir_n that_o book_n be_v write_v to_o show_v only_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n to_o wit_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o take_n of_o it_o from_o they_o for_o their_o desert_n and_o geve_v of_o it_o to_o the_o gentile_n even_o from_o jerusalem_n the_o head_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o rome_n the_o head_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o there_o s._n luke_n end_v it_o not_o care_v to_o tell_v so_o much_o as_o the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v foretell_v act._n 27._o to_o s._n paul_n in_o who_o person_n this_o translation_n be_v wrought_v and_o not_o in_o s._n peter_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o the_o twelve_o for_o cause_n to_o long_o to_o be_v here_o render_v caesari_n te_fw-la oportet_fw-la assistere_fw-la thou_o must_v stand_v before_o the_o emperor_n because_o his_o purpose_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o show_v the_o new_a jerusalem_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o so_o to_o leave_v they_o to_o it_o to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o particular_n that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o so_o withal_o you_o have_v one_o of_o those_o nation_n name_v in_o the_o act_n and_o that_o no_o common_a one_o ●o_o wit_n the_o roman_n which_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n not_o only_o the_o article_n that_o you_o require_v but_o also_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o at_o this_o time_n it_o have_v neither_o you_o be_v able_a by_o scripture_n or_o otherwise_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_a so_o much_o as_o in_o any_o one_o and_o we_o prove_v it_o both_o a_o particular_n and_o in_o the_o total_a sum_n partly_o by_o scripture_n partly_o by_o other_o unavoidable_a demonstration_n well_o for_o all_o this_o trigiversation_n by_o which_o you_o see_v what_o you_o have_v win_v you_o will_v yet_o be_v content_a to_o be_v try_v by_o our_o britanny_n 49._o ar._n 49._o for_o you_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o briton_n or_o welshman_n before_o augustine_n come_v in_o to_o convert_v the_o englishmen_n anno_fw-la 597._o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n 332._o pur._n 332._o so_o that_o
his_o doctrine_n but_o clean_o contrary_a we_o find_v so_o plain_o for_o the_o pope_n and_o for_o every_o point_n of_o his_o doctrine_n that_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o put_v the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o disparition_n of_o the_o church_n here_o cap._n 2._o at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o our_o conversion_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o you_o refuse_v as_o we_o see_v before_o to_o be_v try_v by_o bede_n history_n 333._o pur._n 333._o tell_v our_o countryman_n that_o they_o be_v better_a to_o consider_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o say_v in_o another_o place_n that_o you_o way_n not_o worth_a a_o sly_a that_o which_o d._n allen_n tell_v out_o of_o beda_n for_o who_o see_v not_o there_o our_o religion_n most_o plain_o and_o namely_o for_o 15._o for_o beda_n hi._n li._n 1._o ca._n 24._o greg._n li._n 12._o epist_n 15._o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o 25.27.29_o and_o beda_n li._n 1._o ca._n 25.27.29_o mass_n the_o very_a point_n that_o your_o saxon_a homily_n do_v impugn_v but_o what_o say_v we_o then_o to_o those_o godly_a monument_n who_o can_v not_o say_v and_o see_v that_o if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o you_o make_v they_o they_o shall_v not_o all_o this_o while_n be_v keep_v unprint_v neither_o shall_v that_o which_o be_v print_v so_o soon_o and_o so_o diligent_o have_v be_v call_v in_o again_o for_o why_o either_o they_o contain_v not_o such_o matter_n as_o you_o report_v or_o they_o be_v but_o of_o some_o of_o these_o late_a wiclesistes_n make_v such_o as_o by_o your_o own_o say_n be_v yet_o common_a to_o be_v see_v disprove_v my_o conjecture_n if_o it_o be_v wrong_a 34._o ar._n 34._o and_o then_o you_o shall_v see_v whether_o i_o can_v reply_v 10._o 12._o miracle_n and_o vision_n unto_o these_o two_o demand_n i_o couple_v two_o other_o of_o miracle_n 5.6.7_o motive_n 5.6.7_o and_o of_o uision_n note_v that_o the_o very_a scripture_n do_v by_o they_o commend_v unto_o we_o christ_n himself_o his_o apostle_n with_o their_o successor_n the_o converter_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o their_o doctrine_n and_o say_v according_o that_o the_o miracle_n and_o vision_n of_o our_o church_n be_v infinite_a 13._o pur._n 166.331.333_o greg._n dial._n li._n 4._o ca._n 24._o et_fw-la epist_n l._n 7_o ep_n 30._o li._n 9_o ep_n 58._o &_o mora_fw-la l._n 27._o c._n 6._o in_o job._n 36._o damas_n ser_fw-mi de_fw-fr defunctis_fw-la beda_n hist_o li._n 1._o c._n 31._o l._n 3._o c._n 13._o li._n 4._o c._n 21._o li._n 5._o c._n 13._o allege_v also_o by_o the_o doctor_n against_o the_o jew_n also_o &_o paynim_n to_o convert_v they_o to_o christ_n whereas_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o all_o this_o while_n be_v able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o heal_v a_o lame_a horse_n though_o luther_n and_o caluine_n as_o we_o read_v in_o their_o life_n namely_o set_v out_o in_o french_a attempt_v wonder_n now_o what_o say_v fulke_n to_o this_o the_o example_n out_o of_o gregory_n damascene_fw-la bede_n you_o may_v spare_v for_o your_o friend_n there_o be_v none_o of_o we_o that_o make_v great_a account_n of_o they_o again_o i_o force_v little_a what_o augustine_n our_o apostle_n of_o who_o miracle_n and_o holiness_n s._n gregory_n also_o who_o monk_n he_o be_v do_v testify_v as_o also_o of_o his_o learning_n hebrew_n psalter_v write_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o you_o count_v a_o high_a point_n etc._n etc._n wrought_v to_o confirm_v his_o error_n neither_o do_v i_o way_n worth_a a_o fly_n that_o long_a tale_n you_o tell_v out_o of_o beda_n of_o he_o that_o have_v his_o chain_n fall_v of_o in_o mass_n time_n that_o credulous_a and_o superstitious_a age_n have_v many_o such_o feign_a miracle_n again_o you_o leap_v but_o 600._o year_n from_o christ_n to_o gregory_n dialogue_n from_o which_o time_n i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o you_o may_v have_v great_a store_n of_o such_o stuff_n as_o you_o have_v miracle_n now_o in_o flaunders_n of_o the_o honest_a woman_n of_o the_o old_a bailie_n in_o london_n happy_a it_o be_v for_o you_o and_o you_o be_v so_o honest_a neither_o when_o she_o be_v in_o heresy_n be_v she_o unhonest_a for_o aught_o that_o i_o have_v hard_a and_o the_o miracle_n even_o as_o i_o tell_v it_o in_o my_o motive_n be_v most_o glorious_o know_v at_o bruxelles_n you_o shall_v have_v better_o play_v the_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n if_o you_o can_v have_v inform_v the_o simple_a how_o to_o know_v feign_a miracle_n from_o unfeigned_a and_o why_o miracle_n unfeigned_a may_v not_o be_v after_o s._n gregory_n time_n aswell_o as_o before_o you_o will_v tell_v they_o as_o here_o cap._n 2._o that_o straight_o after_o his_o time_n be_v the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n 336.338_o pur._n 336.338_o and_o that_o these_o be_v and_o be_v his_o lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n 2._o thes_n 2._o such_o as_o error_n have_v always_o great_a plenty_n to_o establish_v they_o withal_o this_o be_v the_o very_a bone_n and_o marrow_n of_o your_o new_a gospel_n and_o yet_o all_o worm-eaten_a and_o rot_a for_o first_o what_o scripture_n tell_v you_o that_o after_o the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n suppose_v it_o at_o that_o time_n which_o you_o will_v have_v there_o shall_v be_v none_o but_o feign_a miracle_n apoc._n 11._o tell_v i_o the_o clean_a contrary_n second_o why_o can_v you_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o christ_n his_o true_a miracle_n against_o the_o infidel_n discover_v the_o fainednes_n of_o antichrist_n his_o wonder_n whereas_o we_o discover_v the_o lie_v of_o all_o fond_a miracle_n which_o sundry_a error_n though_o not_o in_o such_o great_a plenty_n have_v pretend_v three_o what_o scripture_n tell_v you_o that_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n revelation_n be_v so_o long_o ago_o it_o tell_v i_o the_o clean_a contrary_n as_o i_o have_v most_o evident_o declare_v cap._n 8._o pag._n 125._o discover_v therewithal_o your_o gross_a falsation_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o rack_n it_o to_o your_o blasphemous_a purpose_n a_o wise_a revelation_n that_o be_v yet_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n hide_v and_o the_o party_n revel_v take_v yet_o for_o christ_n his_o own_o vicar_n absurdnesse_n consider_v their_o absurdnesse_n no_o no_o sir_n you_o that_o be_v mystical_a antichristes_n may_v of_o fool_n be_v mistake_v and_o think_v to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o christ_n jesus_n but_o your_o lord_n in_o proper_a person_n shall_v show_v himself_o open_o enough_o and_o express_o against_o the_o only_a christ_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n not_o so_o much_o as_o desire_v to_o be_v think_v of_o his_o side_n four_o what_o say_v you_o then_o at_o the_o least_o to_o our_o infinite_a miracle_n afore_o s._n gregory_n time_n as_o those_o which_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 22._o ca._n 8._o reherse_v to_o the_o pagan_n wrought_v by_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o first_o martyr_n s._n steven_n after_o many_o particular_n even_o six_o resuscitation_n of_o the_o dead_a say_v general_o si_fw-la enim_fw-la miracula_fw-la sanitatum_fw-la ut_fw-la alia_fw-la taceam_fw-la modò_fw-la velim_fw-la scribere_fw-la quae_fw-la per_fw-la hunc_fw-la martyrem_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la gloriosissimum_fw-la stephanum_n facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o colonia_fw-la calamensi_fw-la &_o in_o nostra_fw-la plurimi_fw-la conficiendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la libri_fw-la for_o if_o i_o will_v write_v but_o the_o miracle_n of_o healing_n to_o omit_v the_o other_o which_o by_o this_o martyr_n that_o be_v by_o the_o most_o glorious_a s._n stephen_n have_v be_v wrought_v but_o in_o two_o city_n calama_n and_o hippo_n where_o his_o familiar_a friend_n possidonius_fw-la and_o himself_o be_v bishop_n very_o many_o book_n be_v to_o be_v make_v what_o scripture_n have_v you_o against_o these_o miracle_n either_o you_o must_v remove_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n so_o much_o high_a which_o a_o little_a thing_n will_v make_v you_o to_o do_v or_o else_o you_o must_v bring_v your_o blind_a follower_n some_o text_n that_o testify_v his_o lie_a miracle_n to_o go_v also_o so_o long_o before_o his_o come_n and_o the_o worker_n of_o they_o for_o he_o to_o be_v the_o very_a martyr_n and_o minister_n and_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n himself_o for_o else_o how_o will_v you_o now_o defend_v that_o our_o church_n have_v no_o true_a miracle_n 85._o ar._n 85._o but_o the_o power_n of_o antichrist_n in_o lie_v sign_n and_o wonder_n as_o for_o your_o censure_n of_o miracle_n and_o uision_n that_o what_o soever_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v 163.333_o pur._n 163.333_o that_o which_o be_v not_o agreeable_a therewith_o be_v to_o be_v detest_v although_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n be_v the_o bringer_n of_o it_o as_o though_o these_o be_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n utter_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o this_o hang_v but_o upon_o the_o twyned_a thread_n of_o your_o own_o poor_a word_n though_o you_o say_v never_o
adore_v she_o 49.60_o esa_n 49.60_o &_o lick_v the_o very_a dust_n of_o her_o foot_n which_o they_o be_v command_v by_o the_o prophet_n to_o do_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n discipline_n ar._n 17._o discipline_n and_o thereupon_o d._n allen_n tell_v you_o that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o exercise_v discipline_n upon_o offender_n in_o all_o degree_n and_o that_o all_o true_a the_o christian_a king_n have_v and_o do_v obey_v she_o according_o which_o be_v a_o unuincible_a argument_n for_o we_o against_o you_o in_o this_o demand_n and_o yet_o you_o have_v king_n on_o your_o side_n also_o since_o the_o revelation_n of_o antichrist_n 33.34.32_o ar._n 33.34.32_o the_o grecian_a emperor_n that_o be_v imagebreaker_n charles_n the_o great_a who_o write_v a_o book_n against_o image_n and_o call_v bertrame_n to_o declare_v his_o mind_n upon_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o those_o prince_n that_o defend_v their_o marry_a priest_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v object_v that_o it_o be_v but_o in_o one_o or_o two_o point_n that_o these_o do_v favour_v you_o edward_n the_o three_o defend_v wickleve_v also_o zisca_n &_o procopius_n defend_v the_o bohemian_o and_o george_n king_n of_o bohemia_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o the_o pope_n for_o defend_v the_o protestant_n an._n 1466._o which_o be_v well_o towards_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n here_o dem._n 8._o and_o much_o more_o before_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v coin_a for_o though_o you_o say_v wickleve_v i_o ween_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o he_o be_v of_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n yet_o you_o may_v see_v in_o my_o 40._o dem._n that_o in_o deed_n he_o be_v not_o neither_o also_o the_o bohemian_o or_o hussit_n but_o that_o edward_n the_o three_o be_v a_o wicklevist_n who_o ever_o hear_v though_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o catholic_a prince_n be_v often_o time_n pass_v negligent_a in_o their_o office_n and_o oath_n to_o extirpate_v heresy_n until_o by_o god_n and_o his_o church_n admonition_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o by_o the_o waist_n on_o other_o side_n that_o heretic_n in_o time_n do_v make_v both_o spiritual_o and_o temporal_o of_o all_o common_a wealth_n they_o be_v spur_v thereunto_o the_o like_a absurd_a ignorance_n in_o story_n or_o rather_o malice_n you_o and_o your_o brethren_n declare_v in_o say_v that_o fond_a book_n against_o image_n to_o be_v charles_n the_o great_z who_o be_v clean_o contrary_a 5._o cop._n dial._n 4._o c._n 18.19_o saunder_n de_fw-fr imag._n li._n 2._o ca._n 5._o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o imagebreaker_n as_o be_v at_o large_a &_o learned_o declare_v in_o m._n copes_n dialogue_n neither_o be_v it_o carolus_n magnus_n but_o carolus_n rex_fw-la brother_n to_o lotharius_n the_o emperor_n an._n 840._o by_o trithemius_n to_o who_o bertrame_n write_v de_fw-fr corpore_fw-la &_o sanguine_fw-la domini_fw-la neither_o be_v that_o as_o the_o learned_a think_v for_o good_a cause_n this_o heretical_a book_n which_o oecolampadius_n set_v forth_o under_o bertrame_n name_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o substantial_a reason_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o like_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n in_o that_o he_o call_v bertrame_v to_o declare_v his_o mind_n of_o that_o matter_n how_o much_o better_a may_v i_o reason_n that_o both_o the_o emperor_n or_o king_n and_o all_o christendom_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n because_o this_o bertrame_n dare_v not_o but_o so_o timerous_o &_o about_o the_o bush_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o all_o heretic_n in_o the_o beginning_n go_v against_o it_o as_o we_o see_v in_o that_o book_n no_o no_o sir_n as_o i_o say_v before_o of_o nation_n so_o i_o say_v of_o prince_n if_o any_o be_v evert_v he_o may_v in_o some_o thing_n fall_v on_o your_o side_n but_o those_o prince_n in_o all_o country_n that_o be_v convert_v from_o paganism_n &_o also_o their_o successor_n that_o continue_v in_o their_o step_n be_v in_o no_o point_n you_o but_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n 20_o in_o all_o persecution_n 7._o motive_n 15._o article_n 7._o my_o 20._o dem._n be_v of_o the_o persecution_n both_o before_o the_o emperor_n become_v christian_n &_o also_o afterward_o when_o some_o of_o they_o be_v pervert_v again_o with_o apostasy_n or_o heresy_n say_v that_o the_o religion_n which_o we_o read_v of_o in_o those_o time_n be_v the_o religion_n of_o all_o martyr_n and_o by_o fulke_n confession_n here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 4._o 23.24.25_o pur._n 258.312_o ar._n 23.24.25_o of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v in_o all_o point_v we_o and_o in_o no_o one_o point_v the_o protestant_n and_o to_o this_o he_o have_v nothing_o but_o only_o this_o that_o all_o true_a saint_n hold_v the_o foundation_n jesus_n christ_n which_o we_o do_v in_o his_o sense_n &_o he_o do_v not_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n as_o i_o show_v cap._n 5._o and_o therefore_o forsooth_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o all_o be_v of_o his_o church_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v that_o some_o of_o they_o build_v straw_n and_o stubble_n upon_o the_o foundation_n they_o be_v we_o so_o plain_o in_o many_o thing_n as_o he_o confess_v cap._n 3_o yea_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n as_o i_o show_v cap._n 9_o in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o have_v scrape_v most_o of_o their_o name_n out_o of_o the_o calendar_n whereof_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o dem._n 46._o 14._o motive_n 33._o article_n 14._o 21._o church_n in_o the_o 21._o demand_n i_o challenge_v for_o we_o the_o ancient_a christian_a church_n with_o their_o furniture_n both_o afore_o and_o after_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n also_o in_o our_o country_n namely_o as_o in_o all_o other_o and_o fulke_o no_o less_o challenge_v they_o to_o his_o side_n here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 6._o but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o particular_n let_v we_o see_v his_o answer_n to_o d._n allens_n argument_n what_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o all_o church_n that_o now_o remain_v 339.340_o ar._n 53._o pur._n 339.340_o that_o he_o add_v whereas_o d._n allen_n speak_v general_o be_v build_v by_o papist_n and_o for_o popish_a use_n what_o have_v you_o win_v thereby_o as_o much_o as_o need_v i_o think_v why_o not_o for_o the_o same_o challenge_n may_v the_o idolater_n have_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n show_v we_o a_o temple_n in_o all_o the_o world_n that_o be_v not_o build_v by_o idolater_n and_o to_o maintain_v idolatry_n be_v that_o the_o same_o challenge_n i_o pray_v you_o the_o apostle_n renounce_v both_o those_o temple_n and_o that_o religion_n you_o renounce_v popish_a religion_n but_o do_v you_o also_o renounce_v all_o church_n that_o now_o remain_v if_o you_o do_v than_o you_o renounce_v also_o the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n for_o innumerable_a of_o they_o as_o at_o rome_n etc._n etc._n now_o also_o remain_v but_o because_o you_o may_v not_o leave_v to_o we_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n also_o for_o fear_v of_o afterclap_n you_o think_v good_a to_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o say_v but_o for_o all_o your_o brag_n we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o such_o church_n as_o be_v build_v by_o true_a christian_n be_v not_o build_v to_o such_o end_n as_o you_o be_v constantinus_n magnus_n be_v a_o true_a christian_a with_o you_o also_o and_o of_o he_o i_o tell_v you_o erewhile_o in_o the_o 19_o dem._n out_o of_o eusebius_n that_o he_o build_v apostolorum_fw-la templum_fw-la a_o temple_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n in_o his_o city_n of_o constantinople_n appoint_v his_o own_o body_n to_o lie_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o their_o 12._o shrine_n ut_fw-la defunctus_fw-la queque_fw-la precationum_fw-la quae_fw-la ibidem_fw-la essent_fw-la ad_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la gloriam_fw-la offerendae_fw-la particeps_fw-la efficeretur_fw-la that_o also_o after_o his_o death_n he_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o prayer_n which_o there_o shall_v be_v offer_v to_o the_o apostle_n glory_n and_o at_o his_o burial_n according_o much_o people_n with_o the_o priest_n preces_fw-la pro_fw-la anima_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la deo_fw-la fundebant_fw-la make_v prayer_n to_o god_n for_o his_o soul_n and_o likewise_o to_o this_o day_n we_o see_v say_v eusebius_n that_o he_o enjoy_v there_o the_o divine_a ceremony_n and_o the_o mystical_a sacrifice_n &_o the_o society_n of_o the_o holy_a prayer_n this_o be_v his_o end_n among_o other_o and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o our_o church_n founder_n 347._o founder_n pur._n 338._o to_o 347._o say_v d._n allen._n not_o so_o say_v fulke_n for_o see_v for_o pur._n 339._o ar._n 52.57_o fulk_n be_v no_o babe_n you_o may_v see_v our_o story_n testify_v that_o at_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o this_o land_n to_o christianity_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o pagane_n briton_n and_o of_o the_o idolatrous_a
saxon_n be_v convert_v into_o church_n of_o the_o christian_n therefore_o these_o church_n forsooth_o have_v pagane_o founder_n and_o not_o believer_n of_o purgatory_n as_o likewise_o pantheon_n in_o rome_n as_o though_o that_o they_o which_o convert_v they_o to_o the_o christian_a use_n be_v not_o rather_o their_o founder_n as_o now_o also_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v call_v of_o you_o a_o founder_n of_o many_o place_n that_o he_o do_v not_o buyld_v but_o only_o alter_v so_o then_o here_o be_v one_o end_n of_o their_o church_n all_o one_o and_o of_o our_o church_n to_o wit_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o they_o be_v all_o build_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n of_o christ_n 55._o ar._n 53._o to_o 55._o and_o the_o most_o of_o you_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o creature_n of_o saint_n marry_o well_o meet_v the_o aforesaid_a church_n of_o constantinus_n be_v it_o not_o call_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n church_n and_o do_v not_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr civit_n dei_fw-la talk_n of_o basilicae_fw-la martyrum_fw-la &_o apostolorum_fw-la 1.4_o au._n de_fw-fr ciu._n li._n 1_o ca._n 1.4_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o martyr_n church_n or_o palace_n call_v they_o also_o christi_fw-la basilicas_fw-la the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o you_o make_v to_o be_v opposite_a one_o to_o the_o other_o beside_o infinite_a like_o example_n and_o therefore_o your_o place_n out_o of_o s._n basill_n and_o didymus_n &_o s._n augustine_n 55._o bas_n ep_v 141_o did._n de_fw-la sp_z sanct_n au._n ep_v 174_o ench._n c._n 56._o cont._n maxim_n ar._n l._n 1._o titul_n 11._o de_fw-fr ver_fw-la rae_fw-la ca._n 55._o that_o a_o temple_n be_v only_o for_o god_n make_v no_o more_o against_o our_o church_n now_o then_o against_o they_o at_o that_o time_n but_o the_o place_n where_o s._n augustine_n answer_v the_o matter_n for_o you_o to_o allege_v they_o against_o it_o be_v most_o vain_a impudency_n he_o 10._o he_o au._n de_fw-fr ci_fw-fr li._n 8._o c._n 27._o &_o li._n 22._o ca._n 10._o tell_v you_o &_o the_o pagan_n for_o himself_o and_o for_o we_o together_o but_o we_o do_v not_o to_o our_o martyr_n build_v temple_n as_o to_o god_n but_o memory_n as_o to_o dead_a man_n their_o soul_n yet_o live_v with_o god_n nec_fw-la ibi_fw-la erigimus_fw-la altaria_fw-la in_fw-la quibus_fw-la sacrificemus_fw-la martyribus_fw-la sed_fw-la uni_fw-la deo_fw-la etc._n etc._n neither_o in_o those_o memory_n do_v we_o erect_v altar_n etiam_fw-la super_fw-la sanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la martyris_fw-la not_o so_o much_o as_o they_o that_o be_v make_v over_o the_o holy_a body_n of_o martyr_n upon_o they_o to_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o martyr_n but_o to_o the_o one_o both_o we_o and_o the_o martyr_n god_n do_v we_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n although_o at_o that_o sacrifice_n they_o as_o the_o man_n of_o god_n be_v in_o their_o place_n and_o order_n name_v and_o we_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o they_o as_o of_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n 2._o ar._n 55._o sozo_n li._n 2._o ca._n 2._o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n and_o none_o other_o of_o s._n peter_n church_n s._n laurence_n church_n of_o s._n peter_n altar_n s._n laurence_n altar_n and_o even_o so_o of_o angel_n church_n also_o sozomenus_n tell_v of_o a_o church_n in_o constantinople_n call_v michaelium_fw-la s._n michael_n in_o memory_n of_o a_o apparition_n of_o that_o archangel_n there_o 344.345_o pur._n 344.345_o but_o in_o the_o three_o end_n you_o pay_v we_o home_o for_o the_o great_a grant_v that_o constantine_n make_v to_o sylvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o make_v to_o marry_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o be_v so_o then_o cry_v on_o a_o god_n name_n vivat_fw-la jovinianus_n bless_v upon_o jovinian_a and_o anathema_n to_o s._n augustine_n who_o call_v he_o a_o monster_n yea_o and_o upon_o all_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o priest_n will_v marry_v for_o all_o his_o persuasion_n but_o so_o faithful_o resist_v he_o that_o out_o of_o hand_n they_o extinct_a his_o heresy_n here_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 149._o see_v this_o your_o impudent_a most_o false_a assertion_n of_o rome_n who_o will_v marvel_v to_o hear_v you_o say_v as_o bold_o of_o england_n many_o of_o these_o church_n and_o college_n yea_o the_o most_o notable_a cathedral_n church_n in_o england_n be_v build_v for_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o their_o wife_n to_o blame_v to_o then_o be_v the_o q._n injunction_n to_o blame_v dwell_v in_o and_o they_o be_v first_o inhabit_v of_o marry_a priest_n be_v it_o possible_a our_o story_n be_v plentiful_a in_o that_o point_n if_o you_o be_v skilful_a in_o antiquity_n you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o which_o be_v testify_v of_o ranulphus_fw-la castrensis_fw-la matthaeus_n westmonasteriensis_n the_o story_n of_o peterburghe_n and_o many_o other_o you_o talk_v sometime_o of_o a_o whetstone_n as_o bygge_v as_o a_o mountain_n you_o have_v win_v it_o you_o must_v needs_o have_v it_o this_o our_o story_n tell_v that_o many_o of_o our_o priest_n have_v need_n sometime_o of_o reformation_n and_o that_o also_o with_o violence_n such_o be_v their_o obstinacy_n in_o that_o dirt_n as_o also_o in_o other_o country_n too_o often_o but_o that_o any_o church_n be_v build_v for_o such_o swine_n or_o first_o inhabit_v by_o such_o be_v a_o chicken_n of_o your_o own_o hatch_n 55.56.57_o ar._n 55.56.57_o after_o this_o we_o have_v to_o consider_v what_o you_o say_v of_o chauncells_n and_o the_o rood_n loft_n of_o altar_n of_o chalice_n and_o uestmente_n the_o church_n of_o tyrus_n eusebius_n lib._n 10._o cap._n 4._o have_v cancellos_fw-la the_o chancel_n in_o the_o midst_n and_o the_o altar_n be_v but_o one_o church_n fulk_n drive_v to_o confess_v altar_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o chancel_n so_o also_o as_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n stand_v round_o about_o it_o again_o many_o church_n have_v cross_n iles._n belike_o you_o be_v sudden_o become_v our_o proctor_n for_o chauncelle_v altar_n and_o cross_n be_v not_o i_o trow_v in_o your_o fellow_n late_a buyldinge_n which_o you_o mention_v pur._n 342._o at_o orleans_n antwerp_n and_o other_o place_n and_o therefore_o as_o sudden_o you_o change_v again_o and_o say_v that_o the_o chauncelle_v be_v but_o addition_n build_v since_o the_o church_n of_o lykelyhood_n by_o the_o person_n that_o disdain_v to_o have_v their_o place_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o old_a manner_n be_v even_o as_o likely_a as_o that_o it_o be_v of_o disdain_n that_o saint_n ambrose_n by_o his_o archdeacon_n command_v the_o emperor_n theodosius_n senior_a 24._o theo._n li._n 5._o ca._n 17._o sozom._n li._n 7._o ca._n 24._o out_o of_o the_o chancel_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o clergy_n only_o solis_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la if_o you_o know_v that_o marvelous_a story_n you_o may_v better_o remember_v yourself_o because_o you_o say_v in_o the_o oriental_a church_n as_o their_o ceremony_n be_v diverse_a from_o you_o so_o no_o doubt_n the_o fashion_n of_o their_o temple_n differ_v from_o you_o you_o may_v there_o perceive_v that_o both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n church_n the_o diversity_n be_v not_o in_o the_o ceremony_n nor_o temple_n but_o in_o the_o bishop_n for_o many_o be_v flatterer_n or_o unskilful_a every_o one_o be_v not_o a_o ambrose_n howbeit_o some_o little_a difference_n be_v in_o the_o temple_n also_o of_o one_o city_n but_o without_o jar_n yea_o all_o very_a sightly_o become_v our_o church_n 44._o psal_n 44._o as_o variety_n in_o the_o queen_n goodly_a garment_n but_o your_o religion_n may_v not_o bear_v any_o chancel_n at_o all_o neither_o in_o the_o midst_n nor_o at_o the_o east_n end_n it_o may_v not_o bear_v the_o length_n into_o the_o east_n which_o be_v and_o be_v the_o common_a and_o apostolic_a form_n but_o will_v have_v all_o rather_o to_o be_v round_o accord_v to_o the_o example_n of_o those_o few_o which_o before_o be_v lyght_o temple_n and_o synagogue_n of_o the_o pagan_n and_o jew_n as_o saint_n maria_n rotunda_n in_o rome_n which_o be_v pantheon_n and_o those_o two_o at_o london_n and_o cambridge_n which_o you_o do_v mention_n it_o may_v not_o bear_v the_o out_o isle_n to_o make_v it_o in_o form_n of_o a_o cross_n lie_v along_o upon_o the_o ground_n no_o it_o may_v not_o bear_v any_o cross_n or_o rood_n at_o all_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n although_o constantinus_n have_v 8._o have_v eus_n in_o vi_fw-la const_n li._n 2._o c._n 12._o l._n 4._o c._n 56_o soz._n li._n 1._o c._n 8._o tabernaculum_fw-la crucis_fw-la a_o tabernacle_n or_o movable_a church_n of_o the_o cross_n carry_v about_o with_o he_o in_o the_o war_n and_o also_o in_o jerusalem_n 367._o jerusalem_n eus_n or_o de_fw-fr laud._n const_n pag._n 367._o dedidicate_v a_o holy_a temple_n salutari_fw-la signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la to_o the_o healthful_a sign_n of_o the_o cross_n
the_o cross_n and_o the_o sign_n thereof_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o your_o usual_a rail_n against_o dumb_a image_n 6._o ar._n 4._o pur._n 20.21.22.460_o 2._o cor._n 6._o stock_n and_o stone_n you_o do_v no_o more_o but_o utter_v that_o you_o be_v no_o more_o of_o the_o ancient_a true_a church_n then_o of_o our_o church_n now_o which_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n s._n paul_n in_o deed_n say_v that_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o idol_n can_v not_o agree_v together_o speak_v of_o christian_n that_o do_v draw_v with_o infidel_n as_o receive_v of_o meat_n sacrifice_v to_o their_o idol_n such_o as_o now_o receive_v of_o caluins_n bread_n but_o that_o the_o true_a temple_n of_o god_n and_o image_n belong_v to_o the_o same_o god_n agree_v well_o together_o you_o can_v not_o deny_v but_o you_o must_v revoke_v your_o own_o confession_n make_v here_o of_o those_o ancient_a temple_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o you_o do_v but_o like_o yourself_o to_o say_v i_o care_v not_o what_o your_o father_n call_v or_o count_v sacrilege_n but_o god_n our_o heavenly_a father_n command_v we_o to_o break_v burn_v and_o destroy_v all_o your_o idol_n and_o to_o deface_v all_o the_o monument_n of_o they_o deut._n 12._o and_o all_o the_o godly_a patriarch_n and_o father_n both_o before_o christ_n come_v and_o since_o have_v give_v we_o example_n hereof_o what_o else_o they_o give_v we_o example_n to_o set_v up_o cross_n &_o you_o example_n to_o pull_v they_o down_o you_o may_v roll_v in_o such_o rhetoric_n before_o fool_n that_o receive_v your_o absurd_a principle_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o pagan_n be_v image_n of_o the_o christian_n but_o when_o the_o simple_a catholic_a do_v no_o more_o but_o deny_v your_o principle_n you_o be_v by_o and_o by_o non_fw-la plus_fw-la no_o sir_n but_o to_o avoid_v prolixity_n i_o can_v tell_v you_o plain_o and_o at_o large_a who_o be_v your_o father_n in_o these_o spoil_n that_o you_o have_v make_v of_o christ_n church_n to_o wit_n the_o donatist_n the_o arrian_n the_o eutychian_o yea_o julianus_n apostata_fw-la yea_o and_o that_o you_o have_v outshoot_v they_o all_o and_o leave_v nothing_o to_o antichrist_n himself_o but_o only_a to_o fill_v up_o the_o measure_n as_o i_o have_v sufficient_o touch_v cap._n 8._o pag._n 128._o and_o therefore_o neither_o will_v that_o serve_v which_o again_o you_o say_v 341._o pur._n 341._o such_o living_n as_o be_v appoint_v we_o by_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o law_n we_o may_v enjoy_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n no_o sir_n it_o will_v not_o serve_v for_o you_o may_v remember_v the_o story_n in_o s._n ambrose_n de_fw-fr basilicis_fw-la tradendis_fw-la 33._o ambr._n li._n 5._o post_v epist_n 32._o &_o ep_v 33._o he_o will_v die_v rather_o than_o to_o deliver_v the_o church_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o arrian_n empress_n his_o mother_n and_o so_o you_o enjoy_v our_o church_n with_o as_o good_a a_o conscience_n as_o the_o arrian_n shall_v have_v do_v at_o that_o time_n as_o you_o shall_v feel_v when_o you_o come_v in_o your_o course_n after_o your_o senior_n before_o the_o just_a judge_n our_o mother_n husband_n who_o dowry_n they_o be_v 22._o service_n 6._o motive_n 32._o article_n 6._o the_o 22._o demand_n be_v of_o the_o service_n which_o fulke_n in_o word_n challenge_v no_o less_o than_o we_o say_v here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 4._o constantinus_n build_v those_o church_n for_o our_o assembly_n and_o service_n and_o in_o the_o cryptes_n also_o before_o that_o our_o assembly_n be_v keep_v but_o in_o deed_n he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v we_o and_o reject_v it_o according_o so_o that_o i_o must_v stand_v here_o to_o defend_v it_o rather_o than_o to_o claim_v it_o 377._o pur._n 377._o his_o defence_n of_o their_o new_a communion_n book_n be_v this_o whosoever_o be_v child_n of_o the_o true_a church_n will_v never_o find_v fault_n with_o our_o communion_n which_o can_v not_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o care_v not_o for_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o custom_n of_o other_o man_n which_o whether_o they_o use_v the_o like_a or_o not_o in_o form_n of_o word_n which_o be_v not_o material_a so_o they_o use_v not_o other_o substance_n of_o matter_n except_o they_o do_v it_o beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v prejudicial_a to_o our_o mass_n book_n not_o that_o the_o hook_n be_v make_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n 402.413_o ar._n 21.38_o pur._n 402.413_o but_o that_o any_o piece_n be_v add_v since_o by_o certain_a pope_n yea_o though_o the_o very_a same_o piece_n be_v retain_v in_o their_o communion_n book_n also_o let_v all_o man_n therefore_o consider_v how_o just_a the_o defence_n be_v that_o i_o make_v in_o this_o demand_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o piece_n be_v it_o never_o so_o new_a neither_o in_o the_o mass_n book_n nor_o in_o our_o other_o service_n book_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o old_a faith_n of_o the_o apostle_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a yea_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n and_o common_o in_o form_n of_o word_n also_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n and_o father_n church_n have_v the_o primitive_a church_n have_v the_o same_o service_n that_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d have_v let_v one_o example_n hereof_o be_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o also_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o fulke_v himself_o confess_v here_o at_o large_a cap._n 3._o pag._n 16._o to_o .21_o and_o whatsoever_o he_o object_v against_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o we_o for_o it_o say_v they_o have_v it_o of_o the_o devil_n &c._n &c._n cap._n 3._o pag._n 22._o that_o it_o be_v against_o the_o scripture_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o same_o doctor_n themselves_o i_o have_v answer_v all_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 47._o to_o 56._o and_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 133._o to_o 134._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 161._o to_o 164._o pag_n 193._o to_o 214._o let_v another_o example_n be_v pray_v to_o saint_n as_o he_o also_o confess_v here_o cap._n 3._o pag_n 10._o and_o what_o he_o object_v against_o the_o fater_n and_o we_o for_o it_o i_o answer_v cap._n 6._o and_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 138._o save_v one_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n 55._o ar._n 55._o upon_o which_o he_o say_v note_v that_o no_o sacrifice_n ought_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o martyr_n but_o prayer_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n therefore_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v offer_v only_o to_o god_n second_o that_o martyr_n be_v not_o call_v upon_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o only_o name_v for_o remembrance_n cunning_o note_v as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o he_o in_o another_o place_n 17._o aug._n tract_n 84._o in_o joa._n de_fw-fr ve_fw-la ap._n sermo_fw-la 17._o non_fw-la sic_fw-la beatos_fw-la martyr_n etc._n etc._n we_o do_v not_o make_v such_o a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o bless_a martyr_n as_o of_o other_o that_o rest_n in_o peace_n that_o we_o also_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v pray_v for_o us._n be_v this_o to_o be_v only_o name_v for_o remembrance_n neither_o in_o the_o 10._o the_o aug._n civi_fw-la li._n 22._o ca_fw-mi 10._o place_n that_o you_o allege_v do_v he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v not_o call_v upon_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o non_fw-la tamen_fw-la a_o sacerdote_fw-la qui_fw-la sacrificat_fw-la invocantur_fw-la the_o priest_n that_o sacrifice_v etc._n aug._n civit._n li._n 8._o ca._n 27._o offerimus_fw-la domine_fw-la pater_fw-la praeclare_fw-la maiestati_fw-la tuus_fw-la etc._n etc._n do_v not_o invocate_v they_o and_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o invocation_n that_o sacrifice_v he_o declare_v there_o afore_o say_v which_o of_o the_o faithful_a ever_o hear_v the_o priest_n stand_v at_o a_o altar_n though_o also_o make_v upon_o the_o holy_a body_n of_o a_o martyr_n for_o god_n honour_n and_o service_n to_o say_v in_o the_o prayer_n or_o canon_n offero_fw-la tibi_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la petre_n vel_fw-la paul_n well_fw-mi cyprian_a i_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o thou_o o_o peter_n or_o paul_n or_o cyprian_a but_o otherwise_o for_o pray_v to_o martyr_n s._n augustine_n be_v very_o plain_a in_o the_o same_o work_n the_o same_o book_n and_o almost_o the_o same_o chapter_n tell_v certain_a miracle_n one_o in_o a_o woman_n that_o pray_v to_o the_o holy_a martyr_n s._n steven_n 8.9.10_o aug._n ci_fw-fr l._n 2._o ca._n 8.9.10_o in_o s._n augustine_n own_o church_n ad_fw-la sanctum_fw-la martyrem_fw-la orare_fw-la perrexerat_fw-la another_o in_o a_o poor_a man_n that_o pray_v aloud_o to_o the_o twenty_o martyr_n in_o the_o same_o town_n ad_fw-la viginti_fw-la martyr_n clara_fw-la voce_fw-la oravit_fw-la and_o such_o miracle_n be_v do_v he_o say_v by_o god_n at_o the_o martyr_n suit_n &_o instance_n eye_v orantibus_fw-la &_o impetrantibus_fw-la and_o therefore_o whether_o prayer_n be_v
in_o such_o a_o tongue_n and_o these_o catholic_n now_o receive_v the_o like_a prayer_n of_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n but_z by_z the_o church_n second_o that_o the_o church_n in_o her_o public_a prayer_n do_v not_o speak_v in_o a_o tongue_n because_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v not_o in_o england_n a_o strange_a tongue_n so_o as_o it_o be_v if_o one_o shall_v say_v mass_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n and_o so_o the_o question_n be_v not_o now_o the_o same_o as_o be_v between_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o corinthian_n but_o whereas_o the_o church_n will_v do_v all_o thing_n for_o edification_n as_o s._n paul_n command_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o be_v obtain_v in_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n rather_o by_o the_o latin_a tongue_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o common_a tongue_n or_o else_o by_o the_o several_a vulgar_a tongue_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o private_a tongue_n to_o which_o question_n the_o catholic_n draw_v all_o to_o common_a or_o unity_n have_v one_o answer_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n draw_v from_o the_o common_a and_o scatter_v into_o many_o private_n have_v a_o other_o at_o corinth_n the_o case_n be_v otherwise_o both_o because_o the_o tongue_n be_v utter_o strange_a and_o also_o because_o the_o prayer_n be_v not_o set_v and_o solemn_a in_o write_v and_o custom_n but_o momentaneous_a suggest_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o some_o one_o for_o the_o time_n so_o that_o of_o they_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v there_o be_v no_o profit_n at_o all_o in_o their_o publication_n and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v not_o publish_v they_o but_o speak_v to_o themselves_o and_o to_o god_n read_v the_o learned_a latin_a book_n of_o f._n ledesima_n the_o jesuite_n upon_o this_o matter_n he_o show_v at_o large_a and_o substantial_o that_o it_o be_v neither_o necessary_a no_o nor_o expedient_a the_o public_a service_n to_o be_v in_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n howbeit_o the_o pope_n holiness_n may_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v therein_o with_o any_o nation_n as_o he_o see_v cause_n and_o fulke_n can_v not_o nor_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n have_v the_o service_n in_o latin_a neither_o can_v he_o or_o do_v he_o deny_v but_o many_o of_o the_o same_o nation_n have_v vulgar_a tongue_n of_o their_o own_o which_o be_v not_o latin_a as_o the_o punic_a tongue_n the_o dutch_a tongue_n the_o british_a tongue_n etc._n etc._n what_o do_v he_o then_o he_o hold_v that_o all_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o once_o he_o dare_v not_o but_o add_v for_o the_o most_o part_n which_o be_v enough_o against_o he_o of_o the_o say_a nation_n besides_o their_o vulgar_a tongue_n speak_v and_o understand_v latin_a and_o how_o do_v he_o prove_v this_o absurd_a position_n by_o the_o german_a or_o french_a council_n of_o tower_n 15._o turon_n 3._o c._n 17._o magunt_n c._n 25.45.43_o rhem._n c._n 15._o magunce_n and_o rheims_n in_o the_o time_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n whereas_o one_o of_o his_o place_n be_v so_o plain_a against_o he_o that_o it_o say_v as_o we_o do_v now_o also_o if_o any_o man_n can_v learn_v so_o strange_a and_o hard_o be_v the_o latin_a tongue_n unto_o they_o his_o créede_v and_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la in_o latin_a velure_n in_o sva_fw-la lingua_fw-la hoc_fw-la discat_fw-la let_v he_o learn_v it_o at_o the_o least_o in_o his_o own_o tongue_n one_o other_o take_v order_n for_o homily_n to_o be_v translate_v out_o of_o latin_a into_o the_o rustical_a roman_a rustical_a the_o french_a be_v yet_o in_o some_o place_n call_v the_o roman_a roman_a or_o dutche_n tongue_n plain_o quo_fw-la facilius_fw-la cuncti_fw-la possint_fw-la intelligere_fw-la quae_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la that_o all_o may_v more_o easy_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v say_v whereof_o he_o gather_v that_o all_o the_o dutch_a man_n understand_v also_o the_o pure_a latin_a tongue_n though_o hardly_o and_o not_o perfect_o he_o may_v gather_v aswell_o that_o all_o english_a man_n understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o the_o pure_a latin_a tongue_n if_o the_o bishop_n shall_v say_v as_o they_o may_v let_v latin_a homily_n be_v translate_v into_o the_o english_a tongue_n plain_o that_o all_o may_v more_o easy_o understande_v what_o be_v say_v another_o do_v forbid_v the_o priest_n to_o say_v mass_n alone_o because_o some_o body_n must_v answer_v to_o dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la and_o sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o also_o at_o this_o time_n and_o therefore_o he_o gather_v proper_o forsooth_o that_o the_o people_n common_o understand_v the_o latin_a service_n 9_o ar._n 41.49_o cap._n 9_o last_o of_o all_o he_o allege_v the_o great_a council_n of_o laterane_n an._n 1215._o as_o though_o it_o command_v the_o bishop_n to_o translate_v the_o service_n into_o english_a and_o other_o vulgar_a tongue_n whereas_o it_o do_v no_o more_o but_o command_v they_o because_o at_o that_o time_n the_o latin_n be_v lord_n of_o constantinople_n antioch_n jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n to_o provide_v minister_n according_a to_o the_o rite_n and_o language_n in_o which_o the_o service_n present_o be_v as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n and_o otherwise_o i_o ask_v he_o why_o it_o provide_v but_o only_o for_o those_o city_n and_o diocese_n in_o which_o people_n of_o diverse_a language_n be_v mingle_v together_o and_o not_o for_o all_o in_o general_n beside_o that_o in_o no_o place_n any_o such_o translate_n of_o the_o service_n be_v put_v in_o execution_n among_o those_o 1300._o prelate_n be_v there_o not_o one_o but_o he_o be_v either_o so_o negligent_a or_o so_o desirous_a of_o the_o people_n blindness_n and_o that_o neither_o among_o those_o of_o they_o which_o procure_v the_o make_n of_o that_o canon_n this_o be_v the_o stuff_n that_o they_o have_v against_o god_n church_n or_o rather_o this_o be_v the_o execation_n and_o infatuation_n of_o they_o that_o have_v forsake_v god_n church_n 34._o motive_n 34._o 23._o apish_a imitation_n the_o next_o demand_n show_v they_o to_o be_v but_o the_o ape_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o so_o much_o as_o they_o retain_v of_o her_o service_n and_o other_o order_n leave_v it_o to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o writing_n that_o false_a religion_n be_v always_o the_o ape_n of_o true_a religion_n as_o in_o the_o rest_n that_o they_o have_v reject_v they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v apostate_n according_a to_o that_o i_o note_v here_o cap._n 8._o pag._n 144._o wherein_o the_o puritan_n be_v offend_v with_o their_o brethren_n the_o protestant_n only_o because_o they_o will_v not_o proceed_v so_o far_o in_o this_o apostasy_n as_o they_o and_o their_o master_n antichrist_n who_o come_v to_o meet_v they_o as_o it_o be_v half_a way_n will_v have_v they_o 379._o pur._n 379._o and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o fulke_n say_v to_o d._n allen_n the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v think_v good_a in_o some_o outward_a ceremony_n or_o usage_n to_o bear_v with_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o weak_a sort_n of_o your_o side_n puritan_n fulke_n be_v no_o puritan_n in_o hope_n to_o win_v they_o where_o he_o say_v further_a all_o your_o doctrine_n be_v abolish_v and_o nothing_o leave_v but_o a_o few_o rag_n of_o your_o robe_n to_o look_v upon_o and_o therefore_o i_o accord_v with_o you_o that_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v infirm_a or_o rather_o down_o &_o dead_a already_o that_o will_v be_v win_v from_o god_n church_n to_o such_o companion_n by_o so_o babish_a mean_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o civil_a magistrate_n meaning_n or_o no_o i_o seek_v not_o but_o his_o meaning_n who_o mystical_o work_v in_o you_o be_v and_o be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v apostasy_n and_o therefore_o again_o where_o you_o say_v i_o will_v urge_v the_o papist_n to_o tell_v i_o 295._o pur._n 295._o what_o we_o say_v or_o do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o communion_n which_o christ_n command_v we_o not_o to_o say_v and_o do_v or_o what_o christ_n do_v or_o command_v we_o to_o do_v which_o we_o do_v not_o therein_o i_o say_v that_o you_o be_v answer_v already_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v therein_o against_o the_o holy_a mass_n of_o which_o we_o urge_v you_o in_o like_a sort_n be_v against_o christ_n commandment_n who_o say_v express_o to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n be_v the_o orderer_n of_o the_o same_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o 10._o luc._n 10._o insomuch_o that_o s._n augustine_n talk_v of_o such_o matter_n condemn_v you_o here_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 45._o of_o most_o insolent_a madness_n only_o for_o call_v in_o question_n the_o mass_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o that_o be_v universal_o receive_v of_o which_o matter_n and_o of_o your_o say_a apostasy_n this_o demand_n follow_v give_v further_a
that_o the_o universal_a church_n authority_n be_v always_o count_v so_o irrefragable_a that_o she_o will_v be_v and_o be_v beléeve_v upon_o her_o only_a word_n in_o all_o matter_n before_o she_o yield_v or_o we_o can_v conceive_v the_o reason_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o that_o s._n augustine_n write_v a_o book_n upon_o this_o against_o the_o manichée_n which_o he_o call_v de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la of_o the_o utility_n of_o beléeve_v first_o before_o you_o understand_v 14._o aug._n retra_fw-la li._n 1._o ca._n 14._o because_o his_o friend_n honoratus_n be_v a_o manichée_n do_v irride_a in_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n quod_fw-la iuberentur_fw-la homines_fw-la credere_fw-la that_o man_n be_v command_v to_o believe_v and_o not_o teach_v by_o certainty_n of_o the_o ground_n certissima_fw-la ratione_fw-la what_o be_v true_a which_o to_o our_o doctor_n fulke_n be_v so_o strange_a that_o of_o d._n allen_n say_v he_o take_v it_o to_o be_v the_o natural_a order_n of_o a_o christian_a school_n 4.5_o pur._n 4.5_o he_o require_v to_o show_v where_o he_o learn_v that_o method_n &_o affirm_v s._n paul_n rom._n 10._o to_o teach_v a_o contrary_a order_n and_o call_v it_o a_o blind_a faith_n which_o must_v be_v thrust_v upon_o man_n conscience_n to_o be_v accept_v before_o they_o see_v what_o ground_n it_o have_v whereas_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o say_v that_o man_n must_v understand_v the_o ground_n of_o every_o matter_n before_o they_o believe_v for_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o do_v who_o do_v not_o always_o to_o all_o at_o the_o first_o speak_v wisdom_n 1._o cor._n 2._o but_o that_o they_o must_v hear_v first_o the_o churches_n preach_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o article_n before_o they_o can_v believe_v they_o and_o that_o be_v it_o which_o we_o say_v that_o hear_v what_o the_o church_n teach_v they_o may_v be_v bold_a to_o believe_v it_o forthwith_o although_o they_o hear_v not_o or_o can_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o ground_n even_o as_o they_o which_o hear_v christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n after_o he_o may_v bold_o believe_v they_o as_o he_o also_o do_v work_v those_o miracle_n in_o the_o beginning_n to_o commend_v his_o own_o authority_n &_o credit_n and_o thereby_o to_o draw_v unto_o he_o a_o multitude_n which_o multitude_n shall_v always_o after_o he_o move_v the_o world_n to_o believe_v as_o miracle_n do_v at_o the_o first_o 13._o au._n the_o util_a cred_a ca._n 13._o s._n augustine_n in_o that_o book_n deduce_v this_o at_o large_a and_o conclude_v rectè_fw-la igitur_fw-la catholicae_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la maiestate_fw-la institutum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la accedentibus_fw-la ad_fw-la religionem_fw-la fides_fw-la persuadeatur_fw-la ante_fw-la omne_fw-la it_o be_v right_o therefore_o appoint_v by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n school_n that_o they_o which_o come_v to_o religion_n be_v first_o and_o foremost_a move_v or_o persuade_v by_o certain_a general_a motive_n to_o believe_v wherefore_o i_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n can_v not_o possible_o be_v the_o church_n because_o they_o do_v renounce_v the_o claim_n of_o such_o authority_n i_o say_v also_o that_o neither_o they_o nor_o no_o other_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n be_v so_o happy_a &_o sure_a of_o their_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v have_v a_o school_n and_o master_n that_o we_o may_v bold_o believe_v in_o all_o thing_n because_o christ_n have_v give_v they_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n 14._o joan._n 14._o and_o to_o we_o also_o according_o say_v d._n allen_n the_o spirit_n of_o obedience_n but_o thereunto_o fulke_n answer_v as_o more_o at_o large_a here_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 90._o that_o also_o the_o protestant_n will_v be_v rule_v by_o their_o superior_n what_o simple_o 58._o ar._n 58._o so_o far_o as_o their_o superior_n be_v rule_v by_o god_n word_n any_o other_o submission_n they_o allow_v not_o o_o humble_a submission_n of_o you_o who_o will_v over-rule_v your_o superior_n as_o it_o be_v by_o god_n word_n and_o o_o worthy_a authority_n of_o they_o who_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n may_v swerve_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n word_n but_o howsoever_o the_o protestant_n be_v affect_v to_o their_o superior_n the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o moschovite_n and_o russianes_n in_o doubt_n will_v be_v rule_v by_o their_o patriarche_n of_o constantinople_n and_o so_o will_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o oriental_a church_n by_o their_o chief_a patriarch_n &_o bishop_n though_o they_o be_v not_o of_o our_o fellowship_n and_o catholic_a communion_n so_o you_o say_v but_o if_o you_o know_v the_o story_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n wherein_o their_o patriarch_n agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a latin_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o yet_o can_v not_o for_o all_o that_o reduce_v their_o country_n from_o schism_n you_o will_v not_o so_o say_v 83.84_o ar._n 83.84_o and_o as_o towch_v your_o grammatication_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o our_o créed_a i_o believe_v the_o h._n catholic_a church_n i_o have_v show_v plain_o cap_n 8._o pag._n 138_o out_o of_o antiquity_n that_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v according_a to_o this_o present_a demand_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o h._n catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o you_o err_v where_o you_o say_v to_o believe_v all_o and_o every_o thing_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o common_a consent_n do_v maintain_v be_v no_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o goodly_a interpretation_n which_o you_o bring_v we_o say_v &_o confess_v against_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n or_o that_o god_n have_v a_o universal_a congregation_n for_o what_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n may_v not_o say_v the_o same_o and_o what_o catholic_a may_v not_o also_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v a_o lutherane_n church_n the_o meaning_n of_o the_o créede_v be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v i_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n who_o name_n be_v catholic_a as_o in_o the_o article_n afore_o go_v i_o believe_v that_o christ_n which_o be_v name_v jesus_n and_o that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o i_o believe_v all_o which_o the_o same_o church_n do_v bid_v i_o to_o believe_v as_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o she_o be_v the_o communion_n or_o company_n of_o the_o holy_a so_o that_o none_o be_v holy_a which_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o she_o i_o believe_v that_o we_o have_v remission_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o shall_v have_v resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n in_o glory_n and_o for_o ever_o afterwards_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n together_o life_n everlasting_a all_o which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o our_o sanctification_n and_o appropriate_v in_o the_o créede_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o our_o redemption_n to_o the_o son_n and_o creation_n to_o the_o father_n in_o call_v this_o a_o foolish_a and_o false_a interpretation_n you_o do_v but_o utter_v your_o ignorance_n in_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n they_o be_v the_o boy_n that_o you_o count_v worthy_a to_o have_v many_o stripe_n for_o their_o construe_v it_o otherwise_o then_o thus_o i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n suppose_v the_o apostle_n have_v say_v credo_fw-la s._n romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la how_o will_v you_o have_v construe_v it_o not_o i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o roman_a church_n for_o so_o much_o you_o may_v confess_v be_v yet_o a_o protestant_n but_o i_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o what_o shall_v that_o mean_a but_o as_o i_o have_v here_o say_v out_o of_o the_o father_n as_o also_o against_o all_o apocriphalle_n to_o say_v credo_fw-la sanctas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la canonicas_fw-la i_o believe_v the_o h._n canonical_a scripture_n item_n against_o manicheus_fw-la montanus_n luther_n and_o all_o other_o falsenamed_n apostles_n or_o evangelist_n of_o christ_n to_o say_v credo_fw-la s_n s._n duodecim_fw-la apostolos_fw-la credo_fw-la s_n s._n quatuor_fw-la euangelistas_fw-la i_o believe_v the_o h._n twelve_o apostle_n i_o believe_v the_o h._n four_o evangelist_n 35_o unity_n 15.17_o motive_n 27._o arti_fw-la 15.17_o well_o of_o this_o irrefragable_a authority_n of_o god_n church_n over_o we_o and_o of_o our_o humble_a submission_n again_o and_o affection_n unto_o it_o procee_v i_o say_v in_o my_o next_o demand_n our_o inseparable_a unity_n 17._o aug._n contra_fw-la epi._n fund_z ca._n 4._o joan._n 17._o which_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o motive_n to_o the_o manichy_n call_v confentionem_fw-la populorum_fw-la atque_fw-la gentium_fw-la consent_v of_o peoples_n and_o nation_n in_o one_o which_o christ_n in_o his_o prayer_n for_o it_o account_v a_o most_o just_a motive_n for_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o fulke_o notwithstanding_o because_o his_o protestant_n have_v it_o not_o 93._o ar._n 93._o nor_o can_v not_o possible_o atteyne_v unto_o it_o tell_v we_o that_o also_o the_o mahometiste_n and_o turk_n have_v their_o
than_o they_o be_v the_o church_n now_o answer_v whatsoever_o objection_n you_o have_v bring_v against_o they_o 5._o ar._n 5._o again_o you_o say_v as_o for_o the_o popish_a church_n she_o be_v so_o blind_a that_o she_o can_v not_o discern_v between_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scriprere_n from_o the_o apocryphal_a writing_n as_o appear_v by_o receive_v the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n psalm_n etc._n etc._n the_o popish_a church_n that_o canonize_v those_o book_n be_v the_o primitive_a although_o you_o call_v they_o heretic_n which_o do_v it_o as_o i_o have_v show_v plain_o 214._o pur._n 214._o and_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n cap._n 9_o pag._n 165._o and_o that_o you_o be_v fain_o to_o say_v that_o also_o the_o primitive_a church_n therein_o do_v err_v s._n augustine_n therefore_o as_o he_o say_v to_o the_o manichie_n deny_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n cui_fw-la libro_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la i_o credere_fw-la si_fw-la credo_fw-la euangelio_fw-la quoniam_fw-la utramque_fw-la scripturam_fw-la similiter_fw-la mihi_fw-la catholica_fw-la commendat_fw-la authoritas_fw-la i_o must_v needs_o believe_v this_o book_n if_o i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n because_o the_o catholic_a authority_n commend_v unto_o i_o both_o those_o scripture_n alike_o so_o he_o say_v unto_o you_o deny_v the_o machabée_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la judith_n etc._n etc._n i_o must_v needs_o believe_v they_o if_o i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n because_o they_o also_o be_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o church_n as_o he_o tell_v you_o plain_o here_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 165._o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v but_o word_n when_o you_o say_v erewhile_o we_o allow_v and_o believe_v the_o primitive_a church_n testimony_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o again_o 10.9_o ar._n 10.9_o we_o have_v most_o steadfast_a assurance_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n book_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n and_o so_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a you_o believe_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o church_n testimony_n even_o as_o much_o as_o the_o manichy_n do_v because_o you_o reject_v her_o authority_n &_o canon_n in_o other_o book_n as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o act_n and_o therefore_o again_o you_o do_v but_o condemn_v yourself_o when_o you_o say_v 4.5_o ar._n 4.5_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n commend_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n and_o again_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o judgement_n to_o discern_v the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o infallible_a verity_n from_o the_o write_n of_o man_n which_o may_v err_v in_o so_o say_v you_o both_o justify_v we_o who_o as_o we_o confess_v that_o church_n so_o we_o believe_v her_o canon_n and_o condemn_v yourselves_o who_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o yet_o deny_v her_o canon_n yea_o and_o general_o her_o authority_n here_o in_o the_o 34._o dem._n hold_v stiff_o that_o she_o may_v err_v and_o do_v err_v in_o many_o thing_n and_o therefore_o make_v only_a scripture_n your_o ground_n for_o all_o thing_n wherein_o how_o contrary_a you_o be_v to_o yourself_o any_o man_n may_v see_v and_o i_o must_v note_v it_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o note_v 8._o cap._n 11._o contradict_v 33.34.35_o ar._n 8._o that_o you_o show_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v the_o church_n that_o command_v s._n augustine_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n in_o that_o you_o say_v free_o we_o do_v not_o challenge_v credit_n to_o ourselves_o in_o any_o point_n so_o presumptuous_o as_o the_o papist_n that_o man_n must_v believe_v it_o because_o we_o affirm_v it_o but_o because_o we_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n do_v either_o the_o primitive_a catholic_a church_n prove_v to_o s._n augustine_n or_o can_v you_o prove_v to_o the_o manichée_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v of_o canonical_a authority_n the_o true_a church_n of_o all_o time_n be_v of_o like_a authority_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v not_o presumption_n then_o be_v not_o presumption_n now_o but_o what_o will_v not_o your_o term_n of_o only_a scripture_n serve_v you_o unto_o when_o by_o it_o you_o argue_v &_o say_v 6._o ar._n 6._o our_o congregation_n have_v ever_o have_v both_o right_a and_o possession_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o our_o church_n &_o congregation_n beleve_v nothing_o but_o that_o she_o learn_v in_o they_o and_o that_o be_v not_o a_o notable_a plea_n to_o prove_v a_o right_n and_o a_o possession_n yea_o and_o a_o continual_a possession_n i_o report_v i_o to_o your_o lawyer_n what_o a_o forehead_n and_o face_n have_v you_o to_o say_v lie_n a_o substantial_a lie_n that_o your_o company_n have_v evermore_o possession_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v it_o not_o evident_a that_o luther_n and_o all_o that_o be_v come_v of_o he_o take_v their_o bibles_n of_o the_o papist_n leave_v your_o impudent_a face_n it_o be_v not_o your_o new_a upstart_n congregation_n it_o be_v our_o catholic_a roman_a church_n which_o have_v continual_o keep_v her_o possession_n of_o this_o treasure_n which_o she_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n she_z it_o be_v that_o reject_v no_o one_o book_n thereof_o she_o it_o be_v that_o with_o god_n spirit_n have_v keep_v they_o from_o corruption_n of_o all_o heretic_n 5._o ar._n 5._o if_o also_o the_o arrian_n donatist_n novatian_n eutichian_o and_o other_o heretic_n receive_v all_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n what_o do_v that_o prove_v but_o only_o that_o those_o heretic_n shall_v rather_o be_v the_o true_a church_n than_o you_o and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o use_v against_o they_o this_o piece_n of_o our_o argument_n as_o we_o do_v against_o you_o but_o this_o rather_o that_o they_o have_v those_o scripture_n of_o we_o and_o carry_v they_o out_o with_o they_o when_o they_o go_v out_o from_o us._n so_o do_v also_o the_o greek_a church_n 6._o ar._n 6._o and_o other_o eastern_a church_n of_o asia_n and_o therefore_o if_o unto_o this_o day_n they_o have_v keep_v they_o never_o so_o safe_o they_o be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o the_o true_a church_n every_o article_n of_o d._n allens_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v absolute_o that_o we_o be_v the_o church_n but_o some_o only_a that_o you_o be_v not_o the_o church_n when_o our_o church_n be_v oppugn_v by_o other_o enemy_n she_o know_v what_o she_o have_v then_o also_o to_o do_v so_o she_o have_v &_o have_v her_o proper_a motive_n against_o the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o wise_a demand_n of_o you_o when_o you_o say_v why_o be_v not_o the_o jew_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v keep_v the_o old_a testament_n in_o hebrew_n more_o faithful_o than_o ever_o the_o papist_n we_o do_v not_o now_o encounter_v with_o the_o jew_n but_o presuppose_v the_o religion_n and_o church_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v institute_v to_o be_v true_a we_o geve_v plain_a note_n how_o a_o man_n may_v know_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v it_o not_o as_o because_o they_o deny_v some_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n &_o the_o church_n authority_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o therefore_o that_o no_o wise_a man_n shall_v be_v move_v when_o he_o hear_v they_o to_o claim_v it_o and_o that_o by_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n and_o false_a card_n of_o only_a scripture_n from_o we_o who_o do_v so_o faithful_o believe_v and_o have_v so_o uncorruptible_o keapt_v all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o same_o as_o for_o the_o jew_n old_a testament_n i_o towch_v your_o blindness_n therein_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 103._o sufficient_o and_o also_o your_o desperate_a impudency_n pag._n 103._o in_o charginge_v the_o church_n with_o reject_v of_o the_o scripture_n 37._o stoarehouse_n of_o all_o truth_n 29._o motive_n 29._o as_o in_o our_o church_n at_o this_o day_n a_o man_n may_v find_v all_o the_o holy_a book_n which_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n lay_v up_o in_o her_o canon_n thereof_o so_o likewise_o all_o other_o truth_n i_o say_v in_o my_o next_o demand_n which_o in_o any_o of_o her_o counsel_n or_o otherwise_o she_o rule_v over_o &_o canonize_v at_o any_o time_n against_o any_o heresy_n of_o her_o rebel_n or_o against_o any_o error_n of_o her_o own_o obedient_a child_n &_o that_o the_o protestant_n &_o all_o other_o heretic_n have_v no_o truth_n among_o they_o but_o they_o have_v it_o of_o our_o church_n which_o church_n therefore_o i_o say_v be_v now_o and_o ever_o and_o she_o only_o the_o stoarehouse_n both_o of_o canonical_a scripture_n 4._o iren._n contra_fw-la heraeses_fw-la li._n 3_o ca._n 4._o and_o of_o all_o truth_n beside_o and_o therefore_o again_o
as_o s._n irenée_n say_v non_fw-la oportet_fw-la adhuc_fw-la quaerere_fw-la apud_fw-la alios_fw-la veritatem_fw-la quam_fw-la facile_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sumere_fw-la no_o man_n must_v yet_o after_o all_o these_o most_o evident_a demonstration_n seek_v the_o truth_n among_o any_o other_o which_o they_o may_v so_o easy_o take_v of_o the_o churth_n because_o it_o be_v depositorium_n dive_v the_o scotfree_a stoarehouse_n of_o the_o apostle_n 38_o old_a heresy_n 4._o motive_n 4._o among_o the_o protestant_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v very_o many_o of_o the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n which_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o fulke_n confess_v here_o cap._n 3_o aerius_n jovinianus_n and_o vigilantius_n to_o have_v be_v count_v heretic_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a church_n for_o sundry_a opinion_n of_o they_o now_o reviue_v by_o the_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o be_v fain_o cap._n 7._o pag._n 80._o for_o his_o own_o cause_n to_o go_v about_o to_o defend_v they_o partly_o with_o his_o stale_n of_o only_a scripture_n cap._n 7._o pag._n 80._o to_o the_o which_o i_o have_v make_v answer_n cap._n 8._o pag._n 110._o and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 171._o partly_o with_o abuse_v sundry_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o same_o father_n which_o condemn_v those_o heretic_n to_o the_o which_o i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 8._o and_o 9_o partly_o also_o with_o more_o insolency_n to_o charge_v those_o father_n rather_o as_o defend_v heresy_n against_o aerius_n etc._n etc._n cap._n 3._o whereunto_o i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 6._o save_v that_o the_o two_o heresy_n which_o he_o lay_v to_o they_o that_o hold_v with_o the_o machabée_n and_o with_o tradition_n as_o the_o father_n do_v cap._n 9_o pag._n 165._o &_o cap._n 3.7_o pa._n 12.85_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o this_o present_a chap._n in_o the_o 36._o &_o 29._o demand_n and_o so_o with_o one_o labour_n i_o have_v clear_v both_o the_o father_n &_o ourselves_o together_o not_o to_o be_v gnostici_n valentinian_o carpocratian_o collyridians_n ossenes_n caianes_n in_o our_o tradition_n in_o our_o cross_n and_o other_o image_n in_o our_o invocation_n of_o angel_n and_o sant_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n nor_o to_o be_v manichée_n tiacianiste_n montaniste_n aerian_o in_o our_o abstinence_n and_o fastingdaye_n in_o our_o single_a life_n nor_o gentile_n carpocratian_o origenist_n heracleonite_n montaniste_n in_o our_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o our_o purgatory_n aneal_v and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a nor_o arrian_n in_o our_o beere_n for_o bury_v for_o such_o be_v his_o modesty_n and_o christianity_n and_o truth_n to_o charge_v the_o pillar_n of_o christ_n with_o such_o heresy_n yea_o and_o moreover_o to_o say_v general_o as_o i_o note_v cap._n 3._o pag._n 9_o that_o if_o the_o gentile_n or_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n they_o will_v draw_v it_o into_o use_n which_o be_v the_o great_a corrupt_v of_o those_o ancient_a time_n that_o we_o may_v now_o be_v more_o content_a to_o hear_v he_o charge_v we_o and_o say_v with_o all_o generality_n that_o be_v possible_a 287._o pur._n 287._o in_o all_o time_n when_o soever_o and_o wheresoever_o be_v any_o piece_n of_o mist_n or_o dark_a corner_n though_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v light_a there_o be_v the_o step_n of_o your_o walk_n which_o two_o golden_a say_n of_o he_o proceed_v of_o these_o two_o divine_a opinion_n of_o their_o new_a gospel_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n shall_v prepare_v the_o way_n to_o antichrist_n and_o that_o christ_n vicar_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v enough_o cap._n 8._o and_o 9_o such_o opinion_n must_v utter_v such_o say_n and_o yet_o not_o able_a for_o all_o that_o true_o to_o charge_v the_o church_n either_o primitive_a or_o of_o late_a time_n with_o so_o much_o as_o one_o point_n of_o antichristianisme_n or_o heresy_n as_o partly_o i_o have_v declare_v cap._n 6._o and_o now_o will_v declare_v for_o the_o rest_n they_o be_v such_o matter_n as_o agree_v not_o otherwise_o to_o we_o then_o to_o they_o who_o he_o dare_v not_o to_o condemn_v and_o therefore_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o to_o the_o old_a heretic_n 44._o ar._n 21.22_o epiph._n s_o 3._o haer._n 80._o 1._o cor_fw-la 11._o hier._n in_o ezech_n 44._o of_o the_o messalian_o or_o martyrian_o you_o learned_a say_v he_o to_o shave_v your_o beard_n and_o to_o let_v your_o lock_n grow_v long_o comas_fw-la muliebres_fw-la producunt_fw-la they_o keep_v their_o hear_v long_o like_a woman_n do_v we_o so_o be_v our_o head_n like_o woman_n long_a head_n woman_n head_n belike_o be_v round_v head_n or_o s._n paul_n do_v mean_v that_o man_n shall_v poll_v their_o head_n ita_fw-la ad_fw-la pressum_fw-la tondentes_fw-la ut_fw-la rasorum_fw-la simile_n videantur_fw-la cut_v they_o so_o near_o the_o skin_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v like_a to_o shave_a head_n or_o do_v not_o some_o protestant_n wear_v round_a head_n and_o shave_v their_o beard_n as_o well_o as_o some_o catholic_n and_o some_o catholic_n even_o also_o the_o clergy_n in_o italy_n and_o spain_n wear_v beard_n and_o poll_a head_n as_o well_o as_o some_o protestant_n epiphanius_n note_v it_o in_o those_o monk_n because_o they_o do_v it_o in_o contentione_n of_o contention_n and_o at_o that_o time_n and_o in_o that_o place_n when_o and_o where_o the_o apostle_n statute_n and_o the_o church_n order_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_a as_o yet_o they_o be_v touch_v womanly_a head_n but_o not_o also_o every_o where_o touch_v shave_a beard_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o you_o abound_v with_o substantial_a stuff_n against_o we_o that_o you_o lay_v our_o hair_n to_o our_o charge_n nothing_o be_v wont_v with_o you_o to_o be_v heresy_n unless_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n 36._o sup._n they_fw-mi 36._o so_o easy_o we_o may_v answer_v all_o by_o your_o principle_n and_o that_o also_o except_v ceremony_n yet_o now_o conformity_n and_o obedience_n to_o comely_a order_n for_o lack_n of_o better_a matter_n must_v go_v for_o heresy_n see_v whether_o we_o do_v not_o more_o substantial_o charge_v you_o with_o the_o messalian_o heresy_n for_o say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n and_o namely_o baptism_n 80._o theo_n haer._n fab_n li._n 4._o dam._n haer._n 80._o eucharist_n and_o order_n do_v not_o confer_v grace_n read_v theodorete_n and_o damascene_fw-la of_o the_o pharisee_n you_o receive_v your_o superstitious_a mask_a garment_n which_o you_o call_v amictus_fw-la dalmaticus_n and_o pallia_fw-la as_o witness_v epiphanius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o acacius_n and_o paulus_n do_v not_o also_o your_o own_o order_n appoint_v special_a and_o gorgeous_a garment_n in_o the_o ministration_n and_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n also_o be_v such_o i_o have_v show_v here_o in_o the_o 21._o demand_n and_o by_o name_n if_o you_o will_v you_o may_v read_v of_o the_o deacon_n dalmatica_fw-la and_o alba_n to_o be_v wear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o oblation_n and_o lesson_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n con._n carth._n 4._o cap._n 41._o as_o also_o in_o other_o place_n both_o of_o they_o and_o the_o rest_n you_o may_v as_o well_o or_o also_o better_o have_v bring_v this_o against_o the_o leviticall_a garment_n in_o the_o ministery_n of_o the_o judaical_a temple_n 15.16_o epipha_n ep_v ante_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr haer._n &_o haer._n 15.16_o you_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o epiphanius_n there_o report_v the_o seven_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o describe_v they_o namely_o the_o scribe_n and_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr in_o their_o common_a daily_a garment_n be_v stolae_fw-la sive_fw-la pallia_fw-la and_o dalmaticae_fw-la sive_fw-la amicula_fw-la as_o we_o may_v say_v cassock_n and_o gown_n or_o cloak_n upon_o they_o with_o simbriae_fw-la fringe_n command_v nu._n 15._o deut._n 22._o to_o have_v make_v for_o ostentation_n of_o holiness_n certain_a superstitious_a addition_n &_o enlargemente_n by_o which_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 23._o do_v note_v their_o hypocrisy_n do_v not_o this_o make_v sore_o against_o holy_a vestment_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n an_o other_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v hemerobaptistae_fw-la touch_v by_o our_o saviour_n mar._n 7._o 17._o epipha_n ep_v ad_fw-la acac._n &_o paulum_fw-la &_o haer._n 17._o who_o say_v neminen_n assequi_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la nisi_fw-la qui_fw-la quotidie_fw-la baptizaretur_fw-la none_o to_o obtain_v life_n everlasting_a but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v baptize_v or_o wash_v every_o day_n of_o these_o be_v derive_v your_o holy_a water_n say_v fulke_n to_o we_o which_o you_o say_v you_o use_v to_o put_v man_n in_o mind_n of_o their_o baptism_n o_o i_o see_v our_o fault_n although_o we_o baptize_v but_o once_o for_o life_n everlasting_a yet_o we_o will_v have_v man_n to_o remember_v it_o every_o day_n s._n paul_n deceive_v we_o rom._n
and_o that_o no_o man_n for_o much_o more_o than_o a_o .1000_o year_n together_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n either_o deny_v it_o 15._o roff._n in_o li._n a●_n petrus_n fuerit_fw-la romae_fw-la con_fw-mi vellaeum_n cochl_n de_fw-fr petro_n &_o roma_n con_fw-mi velli_fw-la wald._a li_n 2._o doct._n be_v 1._o c._n 7._o &_o tom_fw-mi 3._o ca._n 129._o cop._n dial_n 1_o ca._n 15._o or_o doubt_v of_o it_o beside_o sundry_a most_o manifest_a argument_n to_o prove_v it_o whereas_o the_o wickle●istes_n and_o protestant_n argument_n against_o it_o which_o he_o say_v can_v never_o be_v answer_v be_v the_o most_o ridiculous_a thing_n that_o ever_o man_n hear_v though_o fulke_n bring_v not_o forth_o any_o one_o of_o they_o yet_o i_o have_v answer_v the_o very_o best_a of_o they_o here_o pag._n 237._o and_o most_o excellent_a author_n among_o the_o catholic_n have_v already_o write_v whole_a book_n of_o this_o question_n as_o roffensis_n &_o cochleus_fw-la beside_o thomas_n waldensis_n and_o many_o other_o that_o have_v chapter_n of_o it_o in_o other_o book_n howbeit_o the_o scripture_n also_o itself_o be_v plain_a enough_o in_o it_o if_o one_o be_v not_o too_o contentious_a where_o s._n peter_n himself_o do_v say_v that_o he_o write_v his_o first_o epistle_n in_o rome_n call_v it_o babylon_n as_o i_o note_v cap._n 9_o pag._n 156._o and_o for_o s._n paul_n be_v there_o which_o be_v enough_o to_o prove_v the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o that_o church_n the_o act_n be_v most_o evident_a act._n 28._o in_o so_o much_o that_o also_o fulke_v himself_o after_o this_o manner_n to_o contrary_n himself_o do_v confess_v here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 3._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o place_n also_o he_o grant_v that_o in_o the_o father_n time_n it_o be_v a_o apostolic_a church_n howsoever_o now_o he_o will_v draw_v his_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o collar_n by_o deny_v peter_n to_o have_v be_v there_o but_o be_v it_o that_o peter_n be_v there_o he_o say_v in_o his_o 2._o shift_n except_o you_o prove_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n aswell_o as_o succession_n of_o man_n your_o succession_n be_v not_o worth_a a_o straw_n yes_o sir_n in_o prove_v the_o succession_n of_o man_n only_o we_o do_v as_o much_o as_o the_o father_n do_v unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o their_o do_v also_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o straw_n for_o a_o succession_n of_o man_n there_o must_v be_v the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a therein_o as_o the_o father_n show_n but_o no_o company_n save_v the_o roman_n company_n can_v show_v a_o succession_n of_o man_n therefore_o no_o company_n but_o they_o be_v the_o church_n in_o so_o much_o also_o that_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n together_o do_v say_v of_o that_o succession_n and_o of_o that_o only_a ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la petra_n donati_n mat._n 16._o aug._n in_o ps_n count_v partem_fw-la donati_n quam_fw-la non_fw-la vincunt_fw-la superbae_fw-la inferorum_fw-la porte_fw-fr that_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o overcome_v and_o yourself_o with_o your_o master_n caluin_n do_v confess_v here_o cap._n 2._o pag._n 3._o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n faith_n and_o sound_o doctrine_n for_o the_o first_o .400_o year_n which_o be_v enough_o against_o you_o because_o you_o also_o confess_v cap._n 3._o that_o within_o the_o same_o time_n in_o it_o be_v pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o many_o other_o point_n against_o your_o doctrine_n 45._o change_a 14._o moti_fw-la 24._o article_n 11._o dem._n 14._o but_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o such_o evasion_n i_o make_v my_o next_o demand_n express_o of_o that_o matter_n note_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o have_v succession_n of_o man_n so_o also_o have_v succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n never_o to_o this_o day_n change_v the_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n which_o it_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n now_o what_o have_v you_o to_o the_o contrary_a of_o s._n victor_n who_o excommunicate_v the_o asian_o 47._o ar._n 47._o i_o have_v answer_v dem._n 28._o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o your_o blasphemous_a audacity_n to_o say_v that_o he_o change_v from_o his_o predecessor_n and_o usurp_a authority_n in_o that_o do_n touch_v also_o s._n boniface_n the_o three_o against_o who_o you_o allege_v the_o say_n of_o his_o predecessor_n s._n gregory_n none_o of_o my_o predecessor_n will_v use_v this_o profane_a title_n to_o call_v himself_o universal_a bishop_n i_o have_v answer_v cap._n 3._o pag._n 24._o that_o you_o belie_v s._n boniface_n for_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o since_o he_o no_o more_o than_o they_o before_o he_o use_v that_o title_n but_o the_o clean_a contrary_a title_n seruus_fw-la seruorum_fw-la dei_fw-la which_o s._n gregory_n of_o humility_n do_v begin_v three_o you_o say_v that_o the_o same_o gregory_n as_o hulderichus_fw-la bishop_n of_o auspurge_n do_v testify_v be_v the_o first_o that_o compel_v priest_n to_o live_v unmarried_a which_o afterward_o when_o he_o see_v the_o inconvenience_n he_o revoke_v and_o so_o you_o destroy_v your_o own_o ensample_n for_o if_o he_o revoke_v it_o then_o be_v not_o he_o one_o that_o make_v a_o change_n from_o his_o father_n faith_n you_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v all_o antiquity_n say_v that_o peter_n be_v at_o rome_n will_v yet_o have_v no_o man_n doubt_v but_o s._n gregory_n see_v such_o inconvenience_n in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n that_o six_o thousand_o infant_n be_v straight_o beget_v by_o the_o fornication_n of_o only_a subdeacons_n yea_o and_o cruel_o murder_v yea_o and_o all_o their_o head_n cast_v into_o one_o certain_a pool_n and_o therefore_o find_v and_o take_v up_o by_o tale_n witness_v of_o all_o this_o one_o that_o be_v bishop_n of_o auspurge_n write_v to_o pope_n nicolas_n the_o first_o who_o be_v dead_a 56._o 22._o cop._n dial_n 1_o cap._n 22._o year_n before_o this_o man_n be_v make_v bishop_n he_o that_o will_v laugh_v more_o at_o large_a at_o the_o fable_n let_v he_o read_v m._n cope_n as_o for_o priest_n marriage_n i_o note_v cap._n 3._o pag._n 12._o &_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 43._o how_o they_o count_v jovinian_a a_o heretic_n and_o a_o monster_n long_o before_o s._n gregory_n time_n for_o allow_v of_o it_o these_o be_v all_o the_o change_n that_o you_o note_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n unless_o i_o must_v count_v this_o another_o where_o you_o note_v d._n allen_n to_o confess_v 68_o pur._n 68_o that_o the_o old_a usage_n of_o the_o church_n be_v first_o to_o set_v satisfaction_n and_o then_o to_o absolve_v though_o now_o of_o late_a to_o absolve_v before_o satisfaction_n have_v be_v more_o use_v both_o manner_n have_v be_v always_o use_v but_o the_o first_o of_o old_a more_o than_o the_o second_o and_o the_o second_o of_o late_o more_o than_o the_o first_o this_o say_v d._n allen_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o they_o that_o be_v skilful_a in_o antiquity_n namely_o such_o as_o do_v not_o make_v their_o confession_n before_o they_o fall_v sore_o sick_a they_o be_v absolve_v incontinent_o and_o do_v their_o penance_n afterward_o if_o they_o recover_v heretical_a bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v oftentimes_o receyve_v upon_o cause_n by_o only_a absolution_n without_o all_o satisfaction_n yea_o and_o permit_v to_o continue_v in_o their_o honour_n also_o the_o church_n care_v both_o then_o and_o now_o be_v and_o be_v to_o have_v all_o sinner_n true_o contrite_a before_o absolution_n and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a before_o god_n nevertheless_o such_o as_o have_v offend_v afore_o also_o be_v cause_v to_o do_v their_o duty_n according_o a_o strange_a matter_n that_o these_o heretic_n who_o have_v quite_o take_v all_o away_o shall_v control_v the_o church_n although_o she_o also_o have_v take_v all_o away_o how_o much_o less_o consider_v that_o she_o have_v not_o take_v any_o piece_n away_o but_o only_o put_v that_o more_o often_o to_o the_o second_o place_n which_o she_o be_v wont_a as_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a to_o put_v in_o the_o first_o place_n more_o often_o and_o that_o according_a to_o her_o power_n to_o edify_v and_o not_o to_o destroy_v see_v the_o people_n now_o so_o careless_a that_o rather_o than_o they_o will_v do_v such_o penance_n for_o satisfaction_n they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o confession_n and_o so_o die_v without_o absolution_n go_v to_o damnation_n and_o see_v withal_o that_o whereas_o satisfaction_n be_v no_o satisfaction_n unless_o the_o party_n be_v first_o in_o grace_n his_o own_o contrition_n before_o be_v alone_o but_o now_o it_o have_v the_o help_n of_o absolution_n which_o of_o itself_o confer_v grace_n that_o now_o his_o satisfaction_n much_o more_o probablye_o than_o before_o be_v not_o baren_a and_o therefore_o much_o less_o satisfaction_n now_o like_a to_o be_v more_o avayleable_a then_o much_o more_o before_o and_o
we_o to_o death_n for_o it_o 19_o joan._n 19_o to_o say_v we_o be_v no_o martyr_n but_o traitor_n even_o as_o the_o perfidious_a jew_n make_v as_o though_o our_o master_n can_v not_o be_v king_n over_o our_o soul_n but_o by_o treason_n against_o cesar_n so_o the_o heretic_n say_v of_o his_o vicar_n in_o such_o cast_n of_o their_o blasphemous_a mouth_n into_o heaven_n they_o do_v but_o consent_v to_o the_o wicked_a that_o shed_v the_o saint_n blood_n those_o who_o god_n church_n have_v declare_v to_o be_v saint_n it_o be_v not_o fulke_n nor_o his_o bawdy_a bale_n that_o with_o all_o their_o dirt_n can_v blot_n they_o out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n if_o s._n liberius_n be_v once_o a_o arrian_n may_v he_o not_o be_v canonize_v for_o a_o saint_n repent_v afterward_o be_v not_o s._n augustine_n once_o a_o manichée_n yet_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o d._n sanders_n show_v at_o large_a that_o he_o never_o be_v a_o arrian_n nor_o never_o say_v of_o any_o so_o to_o be_v but_o only_o by_o compulsion_n to_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o arrian_n against_o his_o own_o conscience_n or_o rather_o not_o to_o the_o arrian_n but_o only_o to_o the_o deposition_n of_o athanasius_n so_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o doctor_n write_v be_v deceive_v with_o the_o false_a rumour_n that_o the_o heretic_n have_v spread_v before_o the_o truth_n be_v set_v out_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n but_o where_o be_v your_o wit_n when_o you_o allege_v against_o canonization_n the_o example_n of_o burn_a hermannus_n the_o heretic_n bone_n who_o never_o be_v canonize_v by_o commandment_n of_o bonifacius_n 8._o in_o ferraria_n where_o they_o have_v worship_v he_o twenty_o year_n apocryphally_n you_o say_v king_n henry_n the_o sixth_o shall_v have_v be_v canonize_v but_o only_o for_o lack_v of_o money_n enough_o when_o you_o bring_v your_o author_n you_o shall_v receive_v your_o answer_n we_o can_v not_o prove_v you_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o our_o church_n have_v canonize_v the_o apostle_n and_o principal_a martyr_n to_o make_v holiday_n of_o they_o &_o to_o name_v they_o among_o the_o saint_n in_o diptychis_fw-la in_o the_o holy_a canon_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o this_o proufe_v sufficient_a of_o their_o canonisation_n yea_o and_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o do_v so_o canonize_v they_o be_v not_o your_o church_n because_o you_o have_v take_v away_o their_o dyptica_fw-la and_o their_o day_n of_o s._n laurence_n i_o say_v and_o of_o so_o many_o other_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n which_o have_v such_o canonical_a memory_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n also_o yea_o and_o will_v take_v away_o the_o apostle_n day_n also_o if_o you_o may_v have_v your_o will_n as_o you_o utter_v here_o in_o the_o 22._o dem._n in_o speak_v against_o all_o day_n of_o saint_n o_o but_o you_o have_v a_o better_a way_n to_o know_v saint_n to_o wit_n they_o who_o name_n be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n you_o may_v do_v well_o to_o set_v out_o that_o book_n in_o print_n that_o we_o may_v correct_v our_o callendar_n after_o it_o if_o you_o have_v not_o the_o book_n itself_o have_v you_o any_o more_o certain_a way_n to_o know_v who_o be_v write_v in_o it_o then_o be_v the_o church_n declaration_n or_o do_v you_o allow_v her_o testimony_n in_o canonise_a some_o scripture_n for_o god_n word_n industry_n saint_n fulke_n by_o his_o own_o industry_n &_o reject_v it_o in_o canonise_a some_o man_n for_o god_n saint_n but_o it_o be_v great_a injury_n to_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o account_v while_o they_o live_v belike_o you_o will_v be_v call_v saint_n fulke_n &_o that_o out_o of_o hand_n but_o for_o aught_o that_o i_o know_v you_o must_v tarry_v until_o you_o extend_v your_o doctrine_n and_o certainty_n of_o predestination_n far_o for_o as_o yet_o you_o teach_v no_o more_o but_o that_o yourself_o must_v and_o do_v know_v yourself_o to_o be_v predestinate_a and_o so_o may_v canonize_v yourself_o for_o a_o saint_n for_o ever_o when_o you_o teach_v that_o other_o must_v know_v as_o much_o of_o you_o then_o blame_v they_o if_o they_o also_o do_v not_o canonize_v you_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n blame_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o canonisation_n nor_o compare_v it_o to_o the_o make_n of_o god_n which_o the_o heathen_a use_v see_v it_o be_v no_o great_a a_o matter_n then_o yourself_o can_v do_v nor_o the_o title_n great_a than_o man_n alive_a shall_v have_v and_o special_o see_v john_n hus_n and_o jerome_n of_o prage_n have_v as_o you_o say_v as_o solemn_a feast_n in_o your_o bohemian_o calendar_n as_o peter_n and_o paul_n no_o man_n else_o need_v to_o take_v the_o pain_n yourself_o build_v up_o again_o with_o one_o hand_n that_o which_o you_o pull_v down_o with_o the_o other_o 47_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o next_o demand_n be_v about_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n 43._o moti_fw-la 43._o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o all_o christian_n to_o show_v our_o countryman_n to_o what_o a_o paucity_n and_o against_o what_o a_o multitude_n they_o join_v themselves_o and_o that_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n so_o it_o be_v that_o fulke_n do_v brag_v of_o the_o most_o part_n of_o europe_n here_o in_o the_o 9_o dem._n and_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 177._o name_v england_n scotland_n ireland_n france_n germany_n denmark_n suetia_n bohemia_n polonia_n spain_n &_o italy_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o be_v heretic_n in_o all_o these_o country_n at_o the_o least_o in_o corner_n and_o therefore_o if_o all_o heretic_n be_v of_o your_o religion_n and_o communion_n that_o you_o may_v brag_v as_o you_o do_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o even_o those_o heretic_n also_o which_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n out_o of_o england_n if_o any_o be_v for_o i_o doubt_v whether_o any_o will_v allow_v a_o woman_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o yourselves_o to_o name_v no_o other_o of_o your_o peculiar_a article_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o i_o say_v of_o your_o communion_n nor_o you_o of_o they_o as_o appear_v evident_o by_o this_o that_o neither_o in_o a_o general_n council_n if_o you_o shall_v hold_v any_o you_o have_v authority_n one_o over_o another_o no_o more_o than_o two_o distinct_a realm_n with_o their_o several_a king_n have_v authority_n one_o over_o the_o other_o in_o worldly_a matter_n but_o catholic_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n whersoever_o they_o be_v they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o religion_n &_o of_o one_o communion_n therefore_o to_o give_v the_o ignorant_a some_o light_n in_o these_o matter_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v often_o against_o the_o donatist_n 8._o aug._n de_fw-fr un_fw-fr eccl._n 3_o de_fw-fr pastorib_n ca._n 8._o so_o do_v i._o i_o say_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o all_o nation_n &_o part_n of_o nation_n where_o any_o of_o all_o these_o sect_n be_v find_v catholic_n also_o be_v find_v &_o daily_o do_v increase_v one_o example_n for_o all_o of_o our_o own_o country_n best_a know_v to_o our_o countryman_n where_o although_o they_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o all_o their_o church_n as_o in_o very_a few_o other_o yet_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o people_n be_v know_v to_o be_v still_o catholic_a &_o in_o hart_n of_o our_o communion_n though_o draw_v against_o their_o will_n to_o the_o contrary_a yea_o and_o innumerable_a of_o they_o reconcile_v as_o all_o in_o manner_n will_v be_v who_o see_v not_o if_o they_o be_v at_o their_o own_o liberty_n second_o i_o say_v that_o catholic_n be_v in_o many_o nation_n and_o part_n of_o nation_n where_o none_o at_o all_o of_o the_o sect_n be_v or_o so_o few_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v of_o as_o in_o all_o spain_n all_o portugal_n all_o italy_n most_o part_n of_o france_n many_o part_n of_o germany_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o any_o man_n may_v easy_o conceive_v that_o the_o catholic_n at_o this_o day_n in_o europe_n be_v incomparable_o more_o than_o all_o the_o sectary_n put_v together_o increase_a withal_o every_o day_n special_o by_o mean_n of_o seminary_n and_o jesuite_n for_o the_o purpose_n and_o they_o diminish_v how_o much_o more_o add_v to_o these_o the_o catholic_n that_o be_v in_o africa_n and_o in_o asia_n among_o the_o old_a name_v christian_n of_o those_o part_n and_o more_o again_o infinite_o add_v yet_o the_o innumerable_a new_a christian_n in_o the_o far_a part_n of_o they_o both_o convert_v within_o these_o fifty_o year_n by_o the_o jesuite_n and_o again_o the_o like_a in_o novo_fw-la orbe_fw-la under_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n by_o the_o friar_n in_o so_o much_o that_o many_o year_n since_o it_o be_v write_v of_o that_o alone_a 1558._o surius_n ad_fw-la an._n do_v 1558._o tot_o autem_fw-la hominum_fw-la millia_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la novo_fw-la orbe_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o
also_o for_o hereafter_o even_o as_o fulke_v also_o himself_o say_v 298._o ar._n 78._o pur._n 298._o in_o despite_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o her_o enemy_n she_o be_v to_o this_o day_n preserve_v and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o none_o other_o but_o she_o 48._o moti_fw-la 48._o 51_o apostasy_n last_o of_o all_o i_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o heresy_n as_o a_o plain_a apostasy_n from_o christ_n that_o the_o protestant_n have_v bring_v in_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o also_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o ca._n 8._o pag._n 118._o so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v ever_o damnable_a to_o give_v ear_n to_o any_o heretic_n it_o be_v damnable_a to_o give_v ear_n to_o these_o which_o it_o be_v good_a for_o all_o man_n to_o think_v earnest_o upon_o before_o it_o be_v to_o late_o ¶_o the_o eleven_o chapter_n what_o gross_a contradiction_n fulke_n be_v drive_v to_o utter_v against_o himself_o while_o he_o struggle_v against_o god_n church_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o beside_o all_o that_o have_v be_v yet_o say_v another_o most_o just_a motive_n not_o to_o follow_v the_o protestant_n may_v be_v this_o to_o any_o reasonable_a man_n because_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o what_o to_o hold_v nor_o what_o to_o say_v and_o therefore_o do_v utter_v strange_a contradiction_n in_o their_o book_n by_o reason_n that_o they_o will_v say_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o yield_v plain_o to_o the_o truth_n a_o notable_a ensample_n hereof_o we_o have_v in_o fulke_n special_o about_o the_o question_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o article_n as_o i_o will_v here_o note_v very_o brief_o leave_v to_o the_o discrete_a reader_n consideration_n what_o i_o may_v enlarge_v upon_o every_o particular_a first_o as_o touch_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o one_o side_n thus_o he_o say_v 96._o ar._n 96._o you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o peter_n be_v never_o at_o rome_n and_o then_o where_o be_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n &_o succession_n &_o c_o then_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n 373.361.374_o apostle_n pur._n 373.361.374_o it_o be_v a_o apostolic_a church_n 2_o 373.374_o 2_o pur._n 373.374_o those_o ancient_a father_n who_o d._n allen_n do_v name_n the_o last_o of_o they_o be_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n an._n 420._o do_v appeal_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o all_o heresy_n and_o 373.374_o and_o pur._n 373.374_o among_o the_o apostolic_a church_n special_o name_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o contra_fw-la where_o 43_o where_o apud_fw-la au._n de_fw-fr gra_fw-mi chr._n count_n pelag._n c._n 43_o pelagius_n within_o that_o compass_n commend_v s._n ambrose_n for_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o most_o pure_a sense_n in_o the_o scripture_n fulke_n say_v thereupon_o 405._o thereupon_o pu._n 405._o and_o by_o the_o way_n note_v here_o the_o heretical_a brag_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n 3_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o father_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n 374._o rome_n pur._n 374._o it_o have_v by_o succession_n retain_v even_o until_o their_o day_n that_o faith_n which_o it_o do_v first_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n contra_fw-la 85._o contra_fw-la ar._n 85._o she_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v no_o orderly_a succession_n of_o bishop_n except_o so_o many_o schism_n as_o they_o write_v of_o be_v orderly_a succession_n by_o the_o time_n of_o those_o father_n there_o have_v be_v four_o schism_n 4_o 373.374_o 4_o pur._n 373.374_o it_o continue_v at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n 373.374_o apostle_n pur._n 373.374_o it_o retain_v by_o succession_n that_o faith_n which_o it_o do_v first_o receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n contra_fw-la he_o charge_v it_o with_o sundry_a error_n here_o cap._n 3._o &_o .4_o namely_o p._n liberius_n with_o arrianisme_n p._n innocentius_n for_o housle_v of_o infant_n &_o eight_o pope_n for_o the_o supremacy_n 5_o 79._o 5_o pur._n 374._o ar._n 79._o it_o be_v a_o true_a church_n a_o apostolic_a church_n 79._o church_n pur._n 374._o ar._n 79._o a_o faithful_a church_n true_a 79._o true_a pur._n 374._o ar._n 79._o and_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o religion_n have_v dwell_v in_o she_o contra_fw-la 106.10.27_o contra_fw-la ar._n 85.16_o 106.10.27_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n never_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n she_o never_o have_v sense_n she_o first_o arise_v the_o minister_a of_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n have_v overthrow_v heresy_n of_o all_o sort_n but_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v never_o able_a to_o encounter_v with_o heretic_n 106.10.27_o heretic_n ar._n 85.16_o 106.10.27_o rome_n may_v be_v a_o nurse_n of_o antichristian_o but_o never_o do_v good_a unto_o christian_n 106.10.27_o christian_n ar._n 85.16_o 106.10.27_o i_o be_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n affirm_v 29._o affirm_v supra_fw-la pag._n 29._o your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n he_o mean_v the_o 155._o the_o supra_fw-la ca._n 9_o pag._n 155._o place_n of_o s._n irenée_n s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n call_v rome_n babylon_n which_o he_o understand_v as_o though_o they_o have_v so_o call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o time_n also_o as_o the_o protestant_n do_v now_o at_o this_o time_n 6_o 287._o 6_o ar._n 102.38_o pur._n 287._o the_o popish_a church_n be_v a_o puddle_n of_o all_o false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n whereof_o the_o whore_n bear_v a_o cup_n full_a out_o of_o which_o all_o nation_n have_v drink_v 287._o drink_v ar._n 102.38_o pur._n 287._o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o devil_n never_o leave_v to_o set_v in_o his_o foot_n for_o his_o son_n antichristes_n dominion_n until_o he_o have_v place_v he_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n &_o prepare_v the_o wide_a world_n for_o his_o walk_n and_o then_o come_v 287._o come_v ar._n 102.38_o pur._n 287._o the_o general_n defection_n contra_fw-la 117._o ar._n 38.16.33.34_o supr_fw-la p._n 117._o all_o nation_n never_o consent_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n for_o as_o it_o have_v be_v often_o say_v the_o greek_a church_n and_o all_z other_o oriental_a church_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n never_o receive_v the_o popish_a religion_n in_o many_o chief_a point_n and_o special_o in_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n they_o will_v not_o unto_o this_o day_n acknowledge_v her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_a nor_o her_o authority_n to_o be_v lawful_a and_o yet_o we_o shall_v now_o hear_v that_o the_o prevail_a of_o the_o pope_n religion_n and_o his_o antichristian_a exaltation_n consist_v special_o in_o that_o point_n 36._o ar._n 36._o 7_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o and_o prevail_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 607._o in_o which_o the_o pope_n first_o obtain_v his_o antichristian_a exaltation_n to_o wit_n bonifacius_n the_o 3._o of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o count_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n contra_fw-la in_o the_o same_o place_n because_o you_o speak_v of_o the_o first_o enter_v of_o popish_a religion_n which_o depend_v chief_o upon_o the_o pope_n authority_n it_o first_o begin_v to_o advance_v itself_o in_o victor_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 200._o and_o likewise_o in_o diverse_a other_o before_o s._n bonifacius_n the_o three_o as_o he_o confess_v here_o cap._n 3._o and_o withal_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o that_o while_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o antichrist_n 287.238_o ar._n 102._o pur._n 287.238_o 8_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v a_o puddle_n of_o all_o false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o from_o that_o time_n in_o all_o time_n whensoever_o and_o wheresoever_o be_v any_o piece_n of_o mist_n or_o dark_a corner_n though_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v light_a there_o be_v the_o step_n of_o your_o walk_n it_o may_v be_v a_o shame_n for_o you_o papist_n to_o leave_v and_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n all_o that_o be_v true_a in_o the_o father_n writing_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n 43._o ar._n 43._o contra_fw-la where_o he_o distinguish_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n from_o the_o great_a heresy_n and_o open_a adversary_n that_o seek_v to_o beat_v down_o the_o chief_a foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o the_o valentinian_o marcioniste_n manichee_n arrian_n sabellian_o and_o such_o like_a monster_n 223._o ar._n 43.36.38_o supra_fw-la c._n 10._o pag._n 223._o 9_o we_o say_v not_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n come_v in_o sudden_o but_o that_o it_o enter_v by_o small_a degree_n at_o the_o first_o and_o therefore_o be_v less_o espy_v by_o the_o true_a pastor_n be_v earnest_o occupy_v against_o great_a
heresy_n not_o preach_v against_o wink_v at_o because_o it_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n and_o at_o length_n allow_v of_o augustine_n and_o other_o who_o follow_v the_o common_a error_n of_o their_o time_n special_o when_o a_o general_n defection_n and_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n be_v foreshow_v what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o none_o can_v preach_v against_o it_o as_o it_o first_o enter_v 92.36.37_o ar._n 92.36.37_o contra_fw-la the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o place_n as_o she_o be_v suffer_v no_o man_n damnable_o abuse_v her_o religion_n without_o open_a reprehension_n 11._o ar._n 11._o 10_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n have_v always_o resist_v all_o false_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o her_o duty_n be_v and_o fight_v against_o they_o and_o obtain_v the_o victory_n and_o triumph_v over_o they_o 35.36_o pur._n 419._o ar._n 35.36_o contra_fw-la in_o those_o ancient_a time_n they_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n do_v not_o always_o weigh_v what_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o heretic_n have_v any_o thing_n that_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n or_o charity_n they_o will_v draw_v it_o into_o use_n so_o they_o take_v into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n many_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n until_o at_o the_o length_n an._n 607._o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n prevail_v and_o c_o since_o that_o time_n that_o devilish_a heresy_n have_v always_o increase_v in_o error_n until_o the_o year_n 1414._o 11_o that_o blasphemous_a heresy_n of_o purgatory_n 26.166.184.177.269.362.363.419.186_o to_o the_o reader_n pu._n 26.166.184.177.269.362.363.419.186_o which_o be_v most_o blasphemous_a against_o christ_n against_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n against_o his_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o against_o god_n unspeakable_a mercy_n and_o occasion_n of_o most_o licentious_a wickedness_n in_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o nothing_o convenient_a for_o the_o disciple_n &_o member_n of_o christ_n no_o suffrage_n be_v make_v for_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o apostle_n or_o their_o lawful_a successor_n contra_fw-la here_o cap._n 3._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n hold_v it_o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n ca._n 2._o and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n jesus_n christ_n cap._n 5._o and_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o true_a doctrine_n 393.405_o doctrine_n pur._n 393.405_o and_o also_o that_o they_o do_v invocate_v saint_n deny_v in_o other_o 139.140_o other_o supr_fw-la pa._n 139.140_o place_n that_o such_o be_v true_a christian_n the_o like_a 141._o like_a su._n p._n 141._o of_o fast_v 12_o 51.26.166.177.184_o 12_o pur._n 51.26.166.177.184_o the_o opinion_n of_o purgatory_n &_o satisfaction_n of_o sin_n after_o this_o life_n be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o licentiousness_n to_o maintain_v wicked_a man_n in_o their_o presumptuousnes_n for_o what_o haste_n will_v they_o make_v to_o amendment_n &_o newness_n of_o life_n when_o they_o have_v hope_n of_o release_n after_o their_o death_n contra_fw-la as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 448._o pur._n 448._o it_o be_v but_o for_o small_a fault_n or_o as_o m._n allen_n say_v for_o great_a fault_n that_o by_o penance_n be_v make_v small_a and_o be_v god_n such_o a_o merciful_a father_n to_o punish_v small_a fault_n so_o extreme_o in_o his_o child_n who_o he_o pardon_v of_o all_o their_o great_a and_o heinous_a sin_n o_o blasphemous_a hellhound_n see_v how_o vehement_a he_o be_v in_o contradict_v himself_o to_o justify_v that_o say_n of_o d._n allens_n i_o be_o well_o assure_v there_o dare_v no_o man_n 150._o pur._n 150._o though_o he_o be_v destitute_a of_o god_n grace_n yet_o not_o for_o shame_n of_o himself_o affirm_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v hurtful_a to_o virtuous_a life_n consider_v that_o people_n with_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o to_o escape_v hell_n itself_o they_o must_v do_v much_o more_o than_o the_o protestant_n require_v and_o more_o again_o to_o escape_v purgatory_n according_a to_o s._n augustine_n threaten_v here_o cap._n 9_o pag._n 212._o 13_o how_o long_o soever_o the_o true_a church_n be_v hide_v 1._o ar._n 73._o supra_fw-la ca._n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v a_o 1000_o year_n or_o 2000_o year_n this_o be_v certain_a that_o out_o of_o this_o church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v contra_fw-la here_o ca._n 5._o he_o count_v it_o enough_o if_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v in_o the_o only_a foundation_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o agree_v to_o man_n in_o deed_n out_o of_o the_o church_n 238._o ar._n 61_o 74._o pur._n 238._o 14_o they_o which_o hold_v the_o foundation_n that_o be_v christ_n to_o wit_n the_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o the_o only_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n be_v doubtless_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n contra_fw-la here_o cap._n 10._o pag._n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o anabaptiste_n be_v abominable_a heretic_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o protestant_n who_o yet_o do_v hold_v that_o article_n jump_v as_o the_o protestant_n do_v 71.78.79.80_o ar._n 36.38_o ar._n 71.78.79.80_o 15_o a_o general_a depart_n from_o the_o faith_n be_v foreshow_v and_o it_o be_v fulfil_v an._n 607._o contra_fw-la the_o church_n be_v never_o lose_v neither_o when_o the_o depart_n be_v general_n but_o hide_a in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o be_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n she_o be_v to_o this_o day_n preserve_v and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o world_n end_n christ_n have_v never_o want_v his_o spouse_n in_o earth_n he_o have_v never_o be_v a_o head_n without_o a_o body_n 2.96.26.27_o ar._n 2.96.26.27_o 16_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v continue_v unto_o this_o day_n by_o succession_n not_o of_o person_n and_o place_n but_o of_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o truth_n these_o very_a word_n contain_v a_o manifest_a contradiction_n for_o how_o can_v a_o church_n or_o doctrine_n faith_n and_o truth_n continue_v but_o in_o person_n and_o place_n in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o say_v also_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o god_n have_v always_o stir_v up_o some_o faithful_a teacher_n that_o have_v instruct_v his_o church_n in_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n 15.79_o ar._n 15.79_o 17_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o stand_v steadfast_a &_o inseparable_a from_o christ_n her_o head_n though_o the_o blind_a world_n when_o they_o see_v she_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v his_o spouse_n but_o persecute_v she_o as_o if_o she_o be_v a_o adulteress_n contra_fw-la in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o true_a church_n under_o the_o emperor_n constantinus_n constans_n and_o valens_n be_v great_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n and_o in_o another_o place_n 79._o ar._n 79._o the_o visible_a church_n may_v become_v a_o adultress_n and_o be_v divorce_v from_o christ_n and_o so_o be_v that_o faithful_a church_n of_o rome_n become_v a_o harlot_n 79._o ar._n 79._o 18_o the_o true_a church_n consist_v of_o god_n elect_v and_o the_o lively_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n shall_v never_o commit_v such_o adultery_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v separate_v herself_o from_o christ_n as_o though_o there_o be_v another_o church_n beside_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o so_o two_o church_n 65._o ar._n 65._o contra_fw-la wheresoever_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o part_n it_o be_v one_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o in_o deed_n there_o be_v never_o no_o church_n but_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o other_o be_v but_o a_o imagination_n of_o the_o protestant_n to_o delude_v the_o world_n withal_o as_o though_o luther_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o appear_v with_o he_o have_v afore_o their_o appear_v be_v secret_a protestant_n whereas_o in_o deed_n they_o be_v open_a papist_n 19_o anno_fw-la 607._o the_o church_n flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n that_o be_v 16.27.79.36_o ar._n 16.27.79.36_o out_o of_o the_o sight_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o world_n there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n where_o all_o this_o while_n god_n have_v preserve_v she_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o think_v good_a now_o in_o our_o day_n to_o bring_v she_o out_o of_o her_o secret_a place_n in_o the_o wilderness_n into_o the_o open_a sight_n of_o the_o world_n again_o contra_fw-la 77._o ar._n 77._o diverse_a time_n it_o be_v bold_a to_o challenge_v preach_v and_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o so_o bold_o that_o it_o cost_v many_o of_o the_o challenger_n their_o life_n as_o berengarius_fw-la bruno_n marsilius_n de_fw-fr padua_n joannes_n de_fw-fr gaudano_n joannes_n wickleve_v walden_n joannes_n hus_n jeronymus_n de_fw-fr praga_n etc._n etc._n where_o beside_o his_o manifest_a contradiction_n i_o note_v two_o thing_n against_o he_o one_o that_o it_o cost_v not_o all_o these_o yea_o very_o few_o of_o these_o
mean_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n he_o teach_v they_o above_o all_o other_o man_n to_o look_v diligent_o to_o their_o life_n &_o conversation_n for_o as_o they_o excel_v in_o place_n &_o dignity_n so_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n be_v set_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o city_n build_v upon_o a_o hill_n must_v needs_o be_v see_v of_o all_o that_o come_v near_o it_o so_o they_o be_v place_v in_o so_o high_a a_o office_n and_o dignity_n shall_v be_v note_v and_o mark_v above_o all_o other_o man_n one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n and_o can_v not_o be_v hide_v and_o yet_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o also_o that_o part_n be_v not_o always_o visible_a but_o may_v be_v hide_v and_o be_v hide_v for_o a_o 1000_o year_n so_o he_o say_v 31_o 458._o 31_o ar._n 35._o pur._n 458._o the_o true_a church_n decay_v immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o so_o the_o error_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v continue_v from_o a_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n unto_o a_o plain_a depart_v away_o into_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n contra_fw-la the_o primitive_a pure_a church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n again_o 458._o ar._n 16._o pur._n 458._o an._n 607._o the_o church_n flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n there_o to_o remain_v a_o long_a season_n where_o she_o have_v not_o decay_v but_o be_v always_o preserve_v until_o god_n shall_v bring_v she_o again_o to_o open_a light_n now_o in_o our_o day_n 364._o day_n pur._n 364._o the_o true_a church_n shall_v never_o decay_v but_o always_o reign_v with_o christ_n the_o false_a synagoge_n shall_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o decay_n until_o it_o be_v utter_o destroy_v with_o antichrist_n the_o head_n thereof_o if_o this_o be_v not_o contradiction_n it_o be_v much_o worse_o to_o wit_n that_o luther_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v give_v we_o a_o visible_a church_n which_o shall_v not_o decay_v whereas_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n give_v we_o a_o visible_a church_n which_o do_v decay_v yea_o and_o plain_o depart_v away_o into_o apostasy_n 32_o at_o every_o word_n he_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o malignant_a church_n contra_fw-la in_o some_o place_n he_o make_v two_o distincte_n head_n and_o their_o distincte_n company_n 16.95_o ar._n 16.95_o as_o when_o mahomet_n in_o the_o east_n and_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n in_o the_o west_n seduce_v the_o world_n than_o the_o church_n flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n again_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v not_o in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o world_n for_o mahomet_n sect_n be_v in_o the_o great_a part_n 33_o that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v notwithstanding_o any_o privilege_n it_o have_v by_o god_n spirit_n we_o hear_v he_o say_v cap._n 3._o now_o to_o the_o contrary_n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o neither_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n fail_v to_o lead_v she_o into_o all_o truth_n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o there_o be_v some_o prerogative_n of_o god_n spirit_n that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n elect_v as_o the_o gift_n of_o understanding_n the_o gift_n of_o faith_n &c_n &c_n and_o these_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n have_v never_o want_v 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o true_a faith_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n hear_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v rule_v thereby_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v the_o pillar_n &_o stay_n of_o truth_n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o so_o call_v because_o that_o wheresoever_o the_o church_n be_v either_o visible_a or_o invisible_a there_o be_v the_o truth_n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o s._n paul_n by_o this_o title_n do_v admonish_v pastor_n and_o preacher_n how_o great_a a_o burden_n and_o charge_n they_o sustain_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v not_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o world_n but_o by_o their_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o truth_n this_o their_o duty_n true_a preacher_n consider_v be_v diligent_a in_o their_o calling_n to_o preach_v the_o truth_n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o as_o our_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stay_n of_o truth_n so_o be_v she_o also_o the_o house_n of_o truth_n which_o know_v nothing_o but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o truth_n itself_o jesus_n christ_n &_o his_o most_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o this_o truth_n be_v sign_v and_o testify_v 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o ar._n 82.81.93.99.62.77.100.108.62_o we_o require_v you_o to_o believe_v the_o true_a cathòlike_a church_n only_o and_o immediate_o again_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o require_v you_o not_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o company_n of_o man_n more_o than_o another_o 34_o the_o error_n of_o purgatory_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v continue_v from_o a_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 458._o pur._n 458._o unto_o a_o plain_n depart_v away_o into_o the_o church_n of_o antichrist_n contra_fw-la the_o true_a and_o only_a church_n of_o god_n be_v so_o guide_v by_o god_n spirit_n 88_o ar._n 88_o and_o direct_v by_o his_o word_n that_o she_o can_v not_o induce_v any_o damnable_a error_n to_o continue_v no_o nor_o suffer_v any_o man_n damnable_o abuse_v her_o religion_n without_o open_a reprehension_n and_o yet_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n come_v in_o with_o silence_n 35_o 5.4.9_o ar._n 5.4.9_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n a_o judgement_n to_o discern_v true_a writing_n from_o counterfecte_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o infallible_a verity_n from_o the_o write_n of_o man_n which_o may_v err_v 5.4.9_o ar._n 5.4.9_o she_o have_v commend_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o true_a christian_n 5.4.9_o ar._n 5.4.9_o we_o persuade_v we_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n book_n because_o we_o have_v most_o steadfast_a assurance_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o it_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o all_o age_n contra_fw-la 219._o pur._n 219._o all_o other_o writing_n be_v in_o better_a case_n than_o the_o scripture_n be_v with_o you_o for_o other_o writing_n may_v be_v count_v the_o work_n of_o their_o author_n without_o your_o censure_n the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v not_o be_v count_v the_o word_n of_o god_n except_o you_o list_v so_o to_o allow_v it_o other_o writing_n be_v of_o credit_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o writer_n the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o you_o have_v not_o credit_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o author_n of_o they_o but_o according_a to_o your_o determination_n 82._o ar._n 65._o ar._n 82._o 36_o those_o that_o by_o true_a christian_n have_v be_v call_v and_o count_v for_o heretic_n have_v prove_v so_o in_o deed_n contra_fw-la this_o demand_n have_v a_o false_a principle_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a man_n only_o it_o be_v not_o in_o d._n allens_n principle_n stay_n in_o all_o trouble_n and_o tempest_n 65._o ar._n 65._o 37_o and_o therefore_o the_o papist_n be_v call_v and_o count_v heretic_n of_o true_a christian_n that_o be_v of_o the_o protestant_n without_o doubt_n be_v heretic_n in_o deed_n contra_fw-la he_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n 66._o ar._n 66._o that_o reason_v from_o name_n to_o thing_n as_o you_o do_v most_o vain_o and_o childish_o 367._o ar._n 86._o pur._n 367._o 38_o there_o be_v never_o heresy_n but_o there_o be_v as_o great_a doubt_n of_o the_o church_n as_o of_o the_o matter_n in_o question_n contra_fw-la augustine_n argument_n of_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n take_v no_o hold_n of_o the_o pelagian_o by_o force_n of_o truth_n that_o be_v in_o it_o but_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o grant_n of_o that_o prayer_n to_o be_v godly_a and_o they_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o so_o pray_v but_o now_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n but_o of_o the_o church_n itself_o also_o the_o donati_v challenge_v the_o church_n to_o themselves_o 60.61_o ar._n 60.61_o 39_o but_o for_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n the_o most_o approve_a writer_n be_v utter_o against_o you_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v of_o your_o church_n contra_fw-la but_o the_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n as_o it_o please_v you_o to_o call_v they_o be_v of_o one_o true_a church_n although_o they_o differ_v in_o one_o opinion_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n the_o one_o affirm_v a_o real_a presence_n the_o other_o deny_v it_o out_o
of_o jamnia_n for_o the_o which_o god_n suffer_v 32.40_o suffer_v 2._o mac._n 12._o ver_fw-la 32.40_o they_o to_o be_v overthrow_v after_o pentecost_n by_o the_o soldier_n of_o gorgias_n and_o then_o judas_n send_v that_o money_n to_o those_o unspotted_a priest_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o their_o sin_n the_o chief_a of_o which_o priest_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o judas_n himself_o be_v his_o brethren_n jonathas_n and_o simon_n and_o not_o menelaus_n nor_o any_o of_o those_o other_o apostate_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v by_o those_o book_n that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o true_a pontifices_fw-la or_o high_a priest_n for_o that_o time_n be_v this_o 5.7.9_o this_o 2._o mac._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1._o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 7.10.14.26_o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 33_o 34._o 2._o ma._n 5._o ve_fw-la 5.7.9_o onias_n 1.70_o onias_n 1._o mac._n 2._o ver_fw-la 1.70_o mathathias_n 18_o mathathias_n 1._o m._n 3._o v._n 1._o 1._o m._n 9_o v._n 18_o judas_n ay_o jonathas_n k_n simon_n and_o that_o these_o other_o 5.7.9_o other_o 2._o mac._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1._o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 7.10.14.26_o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 33_o 34._o 2._o ma._n 5._o ve_fw-la 5.7.9_o jason_n 13._o jason_n 2._o mac._n 4._o v._n 24.29_o 2._o ma._n 13._o menelaus_n 29.41_o menelaus_n 2._o ma._n 4._o ver_fw-la 29.41_o lysimachus_z g_o alcimus_n be_v but_o antipontifices_fw-la or_o false_a usurper_n against_o these_o to_o wit_n 5.7.9_o wit_n 2._o mac._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1._o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 7.10.14.26_o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 33_o 34._o 2._o ma._n 5._o ve_fw-la 5.7.9_o jason_n the_o author_n of_o the_o apostasy_n from_o the_o law_n against_o his_o brother_n onias_n and_o second_o menelaus_n against_o the_o same_o 5.7.9_o same_o 2._o mac._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1._o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 7.10.14.26_o 2._o ma._n 4._o ve_fw-la 33_o 34._o 2._o ma._n 5._o ve_fw-la 5.7.9_o onias_n and_o three_o lysimachus_n brother_n to_o menelaus_n after_z the_o apostasy_n thus_o begin_v that_o lively_a image_n of_o antichrist_n king_n 11_o king_n 1._o mac._n 1._o 2._o m._n 5._o v._n 11_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n take_v jerusalem_n martyr_v the_o law-kéepers_a &_o final_o set_v up_o in_o the_o temple_n the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n be_v a_o statuee_n of_o jupiter_n against_o he_o &_o he_o rise_v the_o foresay_a 1.70_o foresay_a 1._o mac._n 2._o ver_fw-la 1.70_o mathathias_n and_o after_o he_o his_o son_n 18_o son_n 1._o m._n 3._o v._n 1._o 1._o m._n 9_o v._n 18_o judas_n machabeus_n who_o repurged_a the_o temple_n the_o same_o day_n three_o year_n that_o it_o be_v pollute_v anno_fw-la 148._o and_o the_o next_o year_n antiochus_n die_v his_o son_n antiochus_n eupator_n succéede_v with_o he_o strive_v for_o the_o kingdom_n g_o demetrius_n soter_n an._n 151._o to_o who_o flee_v the_o wicked_a of_o israel_n and_o alcimus_n their_o capteine_n qui_fw-la volebat_fw-la fieri_fw-la sacerdos_n to_o complain_v of_o judas_n 54.55_o judas_n 1_o mac._n 7._o ver_fw-la 1.5.9_o 1._o mac._n 9_o ver_fw-la 54.55_o which_o alcimus_n die_v of_o god_n hand_n the_o next_z year_n after_o the_o kill_n of_o judas_n 23._o judas_n 1._o m._n 9_o ve_fw-la 31.10_o v._o 18.13_o v._o 23._o and_o can_v never_o get_v jerusalem_n &_o the_o temple_n but_o always_o after_o the_o repurgation_n it_o continue_v in_o the_o government_n of_o judas_n and_o of_o jonathas_n after_o he_o and_o then_o of_o his_o other_o brother_n 8.36.41.43_o brother_n 1._o mac._n 13._o v._n 8.36.41.43_o simon_n of_o who_o priesthood_n also_o &_o high_a priesthood_n the_o text_n be_v plain_a in_o their_o several_a place_n here_o note_v in_o the_o margin_n i_o will_v recite_v the_o word_n that_o be_v write_v of_o the_o last_o 42._o last_o 1._o mac._n 13._o ver_fw-la 42._o the_o year_n 170._o the_o people_n of_o israel_n begin_v to_o write_v in_o their_o court-rolle_n and_o record_n thus_o anno_fw-la primo_fw-la sub_fw-la simone_n summo_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la magno_fw-la deuce_n &_o principe_n judaeorum_n the_o first_o year_n under_o simon_n the_o high_a priest_n the_o great_a duke_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o jew_n certain_a other_o point_n of_o your_o gross_a or_o rather_o malicious_a ignorance_n in_o the_o scrirture_n be_v about_o antichrist_n as_o that_z the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v prepare_v his_o way_n or_o work_v his_o mystery_n that_o his_o revelation_n or_o come_n shall_v be_v so_o soon_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o long_o before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o church_n fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n in_o his_o time_n shall_v be_v to_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o world_n that_o his_o reign_n shall_v last_v so_o many_o hundred_o year_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o certain_a man_n and_o not_o one_o only_a certain_a person_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v come_v again_o out_o of_o the_o wilderness_n and_o yet_o antichrist_n reign_v still_o these_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o your_o new_a lutheran_n and_o caluinistical_a gospel_n and_o yet_o no_o ground_n at_o all_o for_o they_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o god_n but_o only_o in_o the_o weak_a sand_n of_o your_o own_o blasphemon_n but_o bold_a asseveration_n in_o presence_n of_o fool_n who_o have_v avert_v their_o unhappy_a year_n away_o from_o truth_n and_o convert_v they_o unto_o your_o fable_n again_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o offer_v to_o himself_o but_o thanksgiving_n be_v offer_v to_o he_o for_o the_o offering_n of_o his_o body_n for_o us._n 316._o pur._n 316._o why_o sir_n do_v not_o he_o upon_o the_o cross_n offer_v his_o own_o body_n as_o a_o man_n and_o a_o priest_n to_o himself_o as_o to_o god_n you_o note_a other_o here_o cap._n 4._o pag._n 28._o and_o cap._n 6._o pag._n 63._o as_o for_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o pray_v to_o god_n the_o son_n and_o there_o s._n fulgentius_n tell_v you_o as_o the_o father_n créede_v do_v that_o each_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a individual_a trinity_n simul_fw-la odoratur_fw-la &_o conglorificatur_fw-la be_v with_o other_o at_o once_o adore_v and_o conglorify_v no_o sacrifice_n neither_o that_o of_o christ_n body_n whether_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n or_o upon_o the_o altar_n be_v private_a to_o one_o but_o common_a to_o all_o three_o again_o that_o you_o call_v it_o a_o vain_a amplification_n and_o fond_a supposition_n 155._o pur._n 155._o to_o extend_v the_o force_n of_o christ_n death_n beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o his_o will_n as_o though_o it_o be_v not_o of_o force_n to_o work_v any_o whit_n more_o than_o it_o work_v in_o act_n as_o to_o save_v so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o that_o shall_v not_o be_v save_v contrary_a to_o this_o express_a scripture_n he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n 2._o 1._o joan._n 2._o and_o not_o for_o our_o sin_n only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o contrary_a to_o this_o say_n of_o your_o own_o in_o another_o place_n 34._o pur._n 34._o concern_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n redemption_n there_o be_v nothing_o can_v be_v speak_v so_o magnifical_o but_o that_o the_o worthiness_n thereof_o pass_v and_o excel_v it_o again_o that_o to_o remit_v sin_n be_v proper_a unto_o his_o divinity_n as_o though_o he_o 26._o pur._n 26._o that_o be_v to_o say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v not_o remit_v sin_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n also_o no_o marvel_n to_o see_v you_o deny_v this_o power_n to_o his_o minister_n when_o you_o deny_v it_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n himself_o 9_o mat._n 9_o the_o people_n in_o the_o gospel_n understand_v he_o otherwise_o when_o your_o father_n the_o scribe_n call_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n for_o any_o to_o remit_v sin_n but_o only_a god_n and_o the_o people_n contrariwise_o see_v his_o mirable_a that_o he_o wrought_v to_o prove_v his_o and_o his_o church_n doctrine_n herein_o do_v glorify_v god_n for_o give_v such_o power_n to_o man_n hominibus_fw-la whereupon_o he_o when_o the_o time_n be_v come_v give_v commission_n to_o his_o apostle_n 20._o joan._n 20._o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o i_o also_o send_v you_o who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o again_o that_o pestilent_a doctrine_n of_o desperation_n wherein_o you_o say_v 274.127.128.135.283_o say_v pur._n 274.127.128.135.283_o there_o be_v sin_n for_o which_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o pray_v even_o of_o man_n remain_v in_o this_o life_n 274.127.128.135.283_o life_n pur._n 274.127.128.135.283_o for_o which_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o pray_v 274.127.128.135.283_o pray_v pur._n 274.127.128.135.283_o which_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v not_o pardonable_a for_o 274.127.128.135.283_o for_o pur._n 274.127.128.135.283_o it_o be_v false_a that_o so_o long_o as_o man_n be_v in_o this_o world_n they_o may_v
of_o all_o the_o saint_n as_o you_o may_v also_o see_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n another_o point_n of_o your_o great_a skill_n be_v where_o to_o supply_v d._n allens_n lack_v 12._o pur._n 12._o you_o bring_v forsooth_o the_o right_a definition_n or_o description_n of_o a_o heretic_n and_o say_v that_o a_o heretic_n be_v a_o man_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o what_o pretty_a conclusion_n do_v follow_v you_o may_v consider_v as_o because_o papist_n be_v heretic_n with_o you_o fulke_n ministerlike_a conclusion_n of_o fulke_n therefore_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n item_n anabaptistes_n seruetian_o etc._n etc._n and_o of_o old_a the_o arrian_n pelagian_o etc._n etc._n again_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n because_o these_o be_v not_o nor_o be_v not_o by_o you_o in_o the_o church_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o heretic_n it_o follow_v in_o your_o definition_n that_o obstinate_o maintain_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o you_o add_v which_o if_o any_o of_o we_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o do_v then_o let_v we_o not_o be_v spare_v but_o condemn_v for_o heretic_n we_o say_v to_o you_o the_o same_o of_o any_o of_o we_o also_o but_o you_o shall_v have_v define_v also_o who_o be_v obstinate_a you_o bring_v no_o scripture_n against_o we_o but_o we_o answer_v it_o clear_o much_o less_o do_v you_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v obstinate_a but_o we_o bring_v plain_a scripture_n against_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o very_a many_o particular_a point_n of_o controversy_n express_o against_o you_o as_o namely_o that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v ever_o fly_v out_o of_o sight_n much_o less_o any_o thing_n near_o the_o year_n 607._o nor_o antichrist_n reign_v so_o long_o as_o from_o that_o time_n nor_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v so_o long_o after_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n again_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o forth_o and_o if_o you_o also_o go_v about_o to_o answer_v some_o of_o our_o scripture_n it_o be_v no_o otherwise_o then_o the_o arrian_n pelagian_o etc._n etc._n do_v in_o old_a time_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v obstinate_a against_o the_o truth_n because_o they_o yield_v not_o neither_o when_o the_o church_n have_v give_v her_o sentence_n so_o do_v we_o prove_v you_o to_o be_v obstinate_a &_o much_o more_o than_o any_o because_o you_o neither_o yield_v after_o sentence_n and_o also_o do_v hold_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o such_o authority_n to_o end_v contention_n your_o ignorance_n in_o so_o wonder_v at_o d._n allen_n for_o say_v that_o a_o christian_a scholar_n shall_v first_o believe_v and_o after_o seek_v for_o understanding_n i_o note_v before_o cap._n 10._o dem._n 34._o of_o the_o like_a ignorance_n it_o be_v where_o you_o wonder_v to_o hear_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o likeness_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o say_v 200._o pur._n 200._o that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a 24._o whole_a see_v here_o cap._n 10._o dem._n 24._o scope_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v now_o any_o shadow_n or_o resemblance_n when_o the_o body_n and_o substance_n itself_o be_v come_v as_o though_o we_o have_v now_o no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o all_o sacrament_n be_v likness_n of_o other_o thing_n as_o s._n augustine_n who_o yourself_o somewhere_o allege_v say_v si_fw-la enim_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la quandam_fw-la similitudinem_fw-la etc._n etc._n 24._o aug._n ep_v 23._o pur._n 292._o sup._n de_fw-fr 24._o for_o if_o sacrament_n have_v not_o a_o certain_a likeness_n of_o those_o thing_n who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v they_o shall_v not_o at_o all_o be_v sacrament_n and_o so_o you_o may_v remember_v that_o s._n paul_n himself_o will_v have_v baptism_n to_o be_v a_o likeness_n or_o similitude_n of_o christ_n death_n 6._o rom._n 6._o burial_n and_o resurrection_n as_o again_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o foresay_a place_n note_v that_o it_o be_v true_o say_v christum_fw-la immolari_fw-la quotidie_fw-la in_o sacramento_n christ_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v every_o day_n in_o the_o sacrament_n although_o he_o be_v but_o once_o sacrifice_v in_o seipso_fw-la in_o himself_o that_o be_v in_o his_o own_o visible_a and_o not_o sacramental_a form_n because_o of_o the_o likeness_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o that_o immolation_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o there_o be_v visible_a separation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o here_o be_v mystical_a or_o sacramental_a separation_n of_o the_o same_o as_o the_o sacramental_a word_n do_v signify_v and_o therefore_o this_o separation_n be_v but_o like_a to_o that_o if_o we_o attend_v the_o manner_n of_o both_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o separation_n if_o we_o attend_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v and_o be_v separate_v which_o d._n allen_n utter_v very_o apt_o in_o these_o few_o word_n it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o in_o another_o manner_n 198.201_o pur._n 198.201_o whereunto_o you_o say_v that_o every_o boy_n in_o oxford_n can_v tell_v he_o that_o by_o logic_n like_a be_v not_o the_o same_o a_o high_a point_n d._n allen_n know_v it_o not_o how_o then_o do_v he_o say_v in_o another_o manner_n do_v he_o not_o thereby_o geve_v you_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o logical_a principle_n to_o wit_n that_o like_a be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o otherwise_o what_o boy_n have_v not_o hear_v it_o say_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o man_n be_v change_v by_o age_n sickness_n apparel_n shave_v etc._n etc._n he_o be_v like_a or_o unlike_o himself_o against_o so_o plain_a a_o declaration_n you_o can_v not_o reply_n and_o yet_o you_o must_v needs_o say_v something_o but_o yet_o that_o which_o neither_o boy_n nor_o man_n nor_o yourself_o can_v understand_v this_o it_o be_v to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o in_o another_o manner_n will_v not_o help_v so_o long_o as_o the_o same_o respect_n remain_v which_o same_o respect_n i_o pray_v you_o for_o i_o be_o not_o so_o quick_a to_o understand_v he_o who_o understand_v not_o himself_o for_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o very_a same_o respect_n remain_v when_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v not_o remain_v 20.21_o pur._n 20.21_o again_o where_o you_o attribute_v that_o to_o divorsement_n which_o the_o scripture_n in_o many_o place_n both_o 7._o both_o mat._n 5._o mar._n 10._o luc._n 16._o ●_o cor._n 7._o deny_v to_o divorsement_n and_o do_v 7._o do_v rom._n 7._o attribute_v only_o to_o death_n to_o wit_n to_o make_v she_o no_o wife_n that_o be_v a_o wife_n there_o you_o utter_v your_o great_a skill_n in_o many_o matter_n as_o in_o say_v that_o such_o marriage_n after_o divorsement_n be_v dispense_v withal_o by_o the_o pope_n item_n that_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n have_v far_o many_o more_o cause_n of_o divorsement_n then_o for_o adultery_n which_o only_o christ_n allow_v and_o we_o 5._o mat._n 5._o quoth_v you_o as_o though_o also_o the_o canon_n law_n allow_v not_o that_o only_o as_o a_o cause_n of_o perpetual_a divorce_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o if_o the_o adulterer_n become_v afterwards_o never_o so_o chaste_a yet_o the_o innocent_a can_v be_v compel_v to_o receive_v he_o again_o but_o otherwise_o if_o the_o man_n fury_n be_v such_o that_o the_o wife_n in_o his_o house_n be_v in_o continual_a fear_n &_o danger_n of_o her_o life_n do_v not_o you_o also_o allow_v she_o to_o dwell_v away_o from_o he_o until_o such_o time_n as_o his_o amendment_n do_v appear_v sufficient_o item_n you_o speak_v there_o as_o though_o moses_n judicial_a law_n ought_v to_o be_v still_o observe_v 20._o leu._n 20._o we_o wish_v that_o adulterer_n be_v punish_v as_o god_n command_v in_o his_o law_n it_o follow_v and_o then_o the_o other_o question_n of_o marriage_n be_v soon_o answer_v as_o though_o the_o man_n be_v punish_v by_o death_n if_o he_o sin_v against_o his_o wife_n with_o a_o single_a woman_n if_o not_o how_o then_o be_v the_o question_n of_o his_o wife_n marriage_n with_o another_o resolve_v by_o his_o punishment_n such_o be_v your_o skill_n in_o the_o law_n i_o note_v here_o your_o ignorance_n but_o i_o mislike_v not_o your_o moderation_n in_o say_v we_o wish_v why_o then_o do_v i_o charge_v you_o with_o such_o a_o opinion_n of_o that_o law_n for_o this_o that_o you_o there_o charge_v the_o catholic_n to_o allow_v dispensation_n for_o such_o person_n to_o marry_v as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n abhor_v what_o law_n of_o god_n do_v you_o mean_v but_o levi._n 18_o do_v you_o think_v then_o that_o law_n to_o bind_v christian_n and_o that_o so_o straight_o as_o neither_o to_o
this_o heretic_n pretend_v against_o the_o church_n or_o against_o any_o thing_n of_o she_o i_o have_v answer_v it_o all_o and_o every_o whit_n omit_v nothing_o to_o my_o knowledge_n and_o so_o shall_v be_v able_a with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o also_o ready_a to_o answer_v he_o hereafter_o also_o if_o he_o harden_v his_o heart_n yet_o further_o to_o make_v more_o resistance_n against_o the_o truth_n counsel_v he_o rather_o yea_o and_o beseech_v he_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v better_o to_o his_o own_o soul_n and_o to_o so_o innumerable_a other_o soul_n redeem_v with_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n then_o to_o stand_v any_o long_o against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o damnation_n of_o so_o many_o soul_n special_o have_v neither_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n nor_o any_o other_o authority_n catholic_a against_o the_o same_o church_n as_o i_o have_v here_o most_o evident_o declare_v but_o if_o he_o listen_v still_o without_o cause_n to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a city_n and_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n let_v he_o know_v 13.22.3_o apoc._n 13.22.3_o and_o all_o such_o as_o he_o be_v that_o his_o name_n will_v be_v strike_v out_o of_o it_o to_o his_o eternal_a confusion_n when_o our_o name_n that_o through_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v of_o it_o shall_v before_o all_o the_o world_n to_o our_o unspeakable_a glory_n appear_v write_v in_o it_o together_o and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o son_n of_o god_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n in_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o age_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n finis_fw-la the_o printer_n to_o the_o reader_n in_o two_o thing_n i_o be_o to_o desire_v thou_o courteous_a and_o friendly_a reader_n to_o extend_v thy_o accustom_a gentleness_n in_o peruse_v and_o read_v of_o this_o godly_a work_n one_o be_v that_o thou_o will_v friendly_o correct_v with_o thy_o pen_n these_o fault_n and_o what_o other_o else_o thou_o shall_v therein_o espy_v commit_v in_o the_o print_n for_o although_o i_o have_v have_v great_a care_n and_o be_v very_o diligent_a in_o the_o correct_v thereof_o yet_o because_o my_o compositor_n be_v a_o stranger_n and_o ignorant_a in_o our_o english_a tongue_n and_o orthographic_a some_o fault_n be_v pass_v unamend_v of_o i_o the_o other_o that_o thou_o will_v not_o like_v the_o worse_a of_o this_o learned_a work_n because_o it_o have_v not_o the_o variety_n of_o letter_n which_o be_v requisite_a in_o such_o a_o book_n and_o as_o the_o printer_n in_o england_n do_v customable_o use_v my_o ability_n be_v not_o otherwise_o to_o do_v it_o and_o have_v these_o character_n out_o of_o england_n i_o can_v not_o join_v they_o together_o with_o any_o other_o and_o so_o be_v force_v to_o use_v one_o character_n both_o for_o the_o word_n of_o fulke_n and_o for_o all_o allegation_n remember_v that_o when_o man_n can_v not_o do_v as_o he_o will_v he_o must_v do_v as_o he_o may_v john_n lyon_n the_o errata_fw-la cap._n 3._o fol._n 11._o for_o man_n read_v man_n pag._n 80._o for_o anima_fw-la read_v omne_fw-la pag._n 54._o for_o anima_fw-la read_v anna_fw-la pag._n 66_o for_o obnaxius_n read_v obnoxius_fw-la for_o lanacri_fw-la lavacri_fw-la pag._n 190._o for_o milenis_n read_v millevis_fw-la hag._n 355._o for_o ephata_n read_v epheta_n for_o ephphata_n ephpheta_n ¶_o the_o content_n of_o this_o book_n at_o large_a ¶_o chapter_n 1._o fulke_n confess_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o be_v no_o salvation_n ¶_o chapter_n 2._o he_o confess_v the_o know_a church_n of_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o the_o know_v member_n thereof_o ¶_o chapter_n 3._o he_o confess_v the_o foresay_a true_a church_n to_o have_v make_v so_o plain_o with_o we_o in_o very_o many_o of_o the_o controversy_n of_o this_o time_n that_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o hold_v that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v &_o also_o have_v err_v the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v err_v the_o second_o part_n that_o the_o true_a church_n do_v also_o err_v &_o that_o in_o the_o same_o point_n as_o we_o now_o do_v err_v in_o i._o where_o he_o charge_v they_o with_o many_o point_n together_o two_o as_o touch_v vigilantius_n &_o invocation_n of_o saint_n by_o itself_o iij._n as_o touch_v jovinian_a of_o fast_v of_o virginity_n merit_v of_o votary_n marriage_n iiij_o as_o touch_v ceremony_n v._o as_o touch_v purgatory_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a 1._o what_o he_o say_v of_o particular_a doctor_n and_o their_o particular_a time_n for_o it_o 2._o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o some_o of_o those_o time_n 3._o to_o what_o origin_n he_o confess_v the_o doctor_n to_o refer_v it_o to_o wit_n unto_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n 4._o he_o contrariwise_o fear_v not_o nor_o bash_v not_o to_o say_v they_o have_v it_o from_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o limb_n vj._n as_o touch_v the_o pope_n primacy_n ¶_o chapter_n 4._o he_o charge_v the_o say_v primitive_a true_a church_n also_o with_o sundry_a error_n wherewith_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o will_v nor_o can_v charge_v us._n ¶_o chapter_n 5._o what_o reason_n he_o render_v why_o they_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n have_v the_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o these_o their_o error_n ¶_o chapter_n 6._o a_o answer_n first_o to_o all_o the_o foresay_a error_n wherewith_o he_o have_v charge_v the_o church_n of_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n &_o afterward_o likewise_o to_o all_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v to_o the_o church_n of_o these_o late_a time_n his_o zeal_n in_o answer_v for_o caluine_n and_o other_o be_v in_o deed_n of_o his_o church_n the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n concern_v the_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v cap._n 3._o part_n 2._o both_o to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o us._n 1._o of_o cross_n and_o image_n 2._o of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n 3._o of_o abstinence_n from_o fleshmeate_n and_o from_o marriage_n 4._o of_o ceremony_n 5._o of_o sacrifice_n and_o for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n and_o purgatory_n fire_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o oblation_n for_o the_o dead_a beeres_n to_o carry_v home_o the_o corpse_n the_o second_o parte_fw-la concern_v the_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v cap._n 4._o to_o the_o father_n &_o not_o to_o us._n 1._o touch_v the_o heresy_n which_o be_v in_o their_o time_n 2._o touch_v the_o error_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n irenee_n and_o s._n justinus_n 3._o touch_v second_a marriage_n and_o s._n jerome_n 4._o touch_v pray_n to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 5._o of_o minister_a the_o b._n sacrament_n to_o infant_n the_o three_o part_n concern_v the_o error_n that_o he_o lay_v to_o the_o church_n of_o late_a time_n and_o not_o of_o old_a 1._o touch_v the_o body_n of_o angel_n 2._o touch_v the_o pope_n superiority_n over_o the_o council_n 3._o touch_v the_o constance_n counsel_n presumption_n 4._o touch_v certain_a false_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n ¶_o chapter_n 7._o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o shift_n against_o our_o manifold_a evidence_n so_o clear_a they_o be_v but_o the_o name_n of_o only_a scripture_n as_o well_o about_o each_o controversy_n as_o also_o about_o the_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n itself_o &_o how_o timorous_a he_o make_v we_o &_o how_o bold_a he_o ber_v himself_o thereupon_o the_o first_o part_n how_o he_o except_v by_o only_a scripture_n against_o all_o other_o euidency_n in_o the_o controversy_n that_o be_v between_o us._n 1._o against_o the_o rule_n to_o know_v heresy_n by_o find_v the_o first_o author_n and_o their_o old_a heresy_n by_o antiquity_n by_o name_n 2._o against_o the_o apostle_n tradition_n 3_o against_o the_o true_a church_n authority_n that_o be_v against_o her_o practice_n and_o her_o judgement_n against_o her_o counsel_n against_o her_o chief_a pastor_n determination_n and_o their_o whole_a succession_n 4_o against_o the_o father_n both_o in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a the_o second_o part_n be_v tell_v that_o the_o question_n between_o we_o be_v not_o as_o he_o make_v it_o of_o the_o scripture_n authority_n but_o of_o the_o meaning_n how_o there_o likewise_o against_o all_o expositor_n he_o take_v the_o same_o exception_n of_o only_a scripture_n require_v also_o scripture_n to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n the_o three_o part_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o his_o only_a scripture_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o except_v also_o against_o scripture_n itself_o the_o four_o part_n what_o great_a promise_n he_o make_v to_o bring_v most_o evident_a scripture_n against_o we_o and_o also_o by_o scripture_n to_o prove_v his_o sense_n of_o scripture_n triumph_v also_o before_o the_o victory_n and_o say_v that_o we_o dare_v not_o be_v try_v by_o scripture_n but_o reject_v the_o scripture_n whereupon_o